Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n communion_n particular_a schism_n 3,730 5 9.9397 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A56274 The moderation of the Church of England considered as useful for allaying the present distempers which the indisposition of the time hath contracted by Timothy Puller ... Puller, Timothy, 1638?-1693. 1679 (1679) Wing P4197; ESTC R10670 256,737 603

There are 59 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

body_n and_o by_o be_v dissever_v from_o the_o body_n how_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v retain_v communion_n with_o the_o head_n of_o that_o body_n god_n only_o know_v to_o who_o infinite_a mercy_n we_o leave_v they_o it_o be_v serious_o and_o hearty_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o duty_n and_o benefit_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v due_o consider_v by_o all_o and_o the_o many_o more_o grievous_a mischief_n of_o schism_n than_o have_v be_v here_o mention_v and_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o church_n of_o england_n in_o particular_a as_o certain_o her_o moderation_n be_v a_o great_a aggravation_n of_o the_o schism_n which_o be_v so_o i_o suppose_v it_o a_o most_o true_a observation_n and_o deserve_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o that_o the_o only_a reason_n why_o our_o church_n be_v not_o more_o general_o embrace_v and_o admire_v be_v because_o the_o purity_n of_o its_o doctrine_n the_o sobriety_n of_o its_o devotion_n the_o moderation_n of_o its_o discipline_n the_o largeness_n of_o its_o charity_n be_v not_o impartial_o and_o calm_o examine_v and_o more_o general_o understand_v wherefore_o we_o wish_v that_o by_o god_n grace_n work_v love_n in_o all_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o who_o do_v not_o understand_v &_o consider_v so_o much_o they_o will_v yet_o consent_v to_o what_o the_o peaceful_a and_o holy_a nazianzen_n declare_v in_o one_o of_o his_o oration_n of_o peace_n thus_o say_v he_o i_o resolve_v it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o be_v more_o indifferent_a than_o be_v meet_v nor_o too_o hot_a either_o through_o levity_n to_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o every_o one_o nor_o by_o disorder_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o when_o the_o manifest_a thing_n of_o wickedness_n require_v our_o compliance_n than_o we_o be_v to_o contest_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n rather_o than_o partake_v of_o their_o leven_n but_o when_o only_o a_o suspicion_n of_o evil_n seize_v on_o our_o mind_n than_o moderation_n and_o condescension_n be_v more_o advisable_a rather_o than_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o other_o we_o relate_v unto_o as_o member_n wherefore_o let_v we_o embrace_v each_o other_o and_o be_v sincere_o one_o and_o imitate_v our_o bless_a mediator_n who_o by_o his_o blood_n have_v reconcile_v all_o thing_n and_o make_v peace_n let_v we_o say_v to_o our_o common_a father_n behold_v thy_o son_n gather_v into_o one._n unto_o which_o i_o must_v add_v what_o the_o same_o father_n from_o those_o dissension_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n do_v conceive_v namely_o a_o great_a dread_n lest_o thereby_o antichrist_n 〈◊〉_d antichrist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v come_v upon_o they_o on_o sudden_a take_v advantage_n of_o their_o discord_n it_o will_v be_v well_o if_o modest_a and_o quiet_a person_n can_v at_o length_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o happiness_n of_o have_v and_o hold_v to_o a_o rule_n 10._o rule_n pulchrum_n est_fw-la tenere_fw-la mensuram_fw-la officii_fw-la s_o ambros_n offic_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o and_o what_o a_o blessing_n it_o be_v to_o have_v every_o thing_n for_o their_o spiritual_a use_n so_o ready_o and_o so_o well_o prepare_v to_o their_o hand_n and_o admit_v which_o we_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a force_v here_o to_o affirm_v that_o sundry_a order_n may_v be_v much_o better_a nevertheless_o whereunto_o we_o have_v already_o attain_v let_v we_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n let_v we_o mind_n the_o same_o thing_n 3_o phil._n 13._o in_o matter_n of_o indifferency_n the_o best_a way_n of_o cement_n the_o 5._o the_o fracturam_fw-la verò_fw-la ligamen_fw-la astringit_fw-la cum_fw-la culpam_fw-la disciplina_fw-la deprimit_fw-la sed_fw-la gravius_fw-la scissuram_fw-la sentiat_fw-la si_fw-la hanc_fw-la immoderatiùs_fw-la ligamenta_fw-la constringant_fw-la inter_fw-la haec_fw-la solicit_v a_o circumspectione_n providendum_fw-la ne_fw-la aut_fw-la districtio_fw-la rigida_fw-la aut_fw-la pietas_fw-la sit_fw-la remissa_fw-la greg._n mag._n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la past_a in_o part_n 2._o c._n 5._o fraction_n be_v unite_v the_o part_n in_o the_o authority_n for_o then_o the_o question_n be_v but_o one_o namely_o whether_o the_o authority_n shall_v be_v obey_v or_o not_o 17._o not_o lib._n of_o prophec_n §._o 17._o i_o think_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o free_v it_o from_o so_o great_a a_o scandal_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o their_o native_a country_n and_o the_o law_n and_o the_o private_a interest_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o family_n where_o great_a interest_n and_o engagement_n with_o a_o party_n and_o prejudices_fw-la do_v not_o hinder_v shall_v prevail_v at_o length_n with_o more_o to_o embrace_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a everywhere_o have_v do_v convince_v of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o rest_n remain_v so_o divide_v and_o shatter_v among_o themselves_o only_o unite_v by_o their_o common_a prejudice_n against_o the_o church_n have_v have_v their_o mouth_n over_o and_o over_o stop_v by_o solid_a argument_n and_o a_o palpable_a demonstration_n of_o their_o falsity_n and_o incongruity_n which_o have_v be_v post_v up_o to_o the_o world_n to_o their_o unanswerable_a conviction_n or_o else_o they_o have_v be_v laugh_v out_o of_o their_o ridiculous_a folly_n by_o they_o who_o have_v have_v a_o laudable_a art_n in_o so_o do_v 5._o do_v ingenuo_fw-la culpam_fw-la defigere_fw-la ludo_fw-la persius_n sat._n 5._o §_o 4._o and_o indeed_o since_o the_o church_n of_o england_n suffer_v so_o exceed_o between_o such_o extreme_a adversary_n which_o have_v be_v a_o great_a proof_n of_o her_o great_a moderation_n no_o wonder_n if_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o maintain_v the_o even_a tenor_n of_o uniform_a principle_n partake_v of_o the_o same_o hard_a measure_n with_o our_o church_n thucyd._n church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thucyd._n wherefore_o for_o our_o calm_o defend_v what_o be_v real_a moderation_n we_o may_v sure_o expect_v to_o be_v accuse_v as_o immoderate_a and_o to_o be_v suspect_v by_o either_o extreme_a of_o the_o number_n of_o their_o opposite_a adversary_n against_o which_o chance_n perhaps_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n wherefore_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o purpose_n and_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o cause_n we_o hope_v will_v support_v we_o for_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o disciple_n that_o he_o be_v as_o his_o master_n and_o the_o servant_n as_o his_o lord_n bless_a be_v god_n we_o have_v yet_o the_o advantage_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o reform_a church_n on_o our_o side_n so_o the_o worthy_a translator_n of_o the_o english_a bible_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o king_n james_n comfort_v themselves_o if_o on_o the_o one_o side_n we_o shall_v be_v traduce_v by_o popish_a person_n or_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o shall_v be_v malign_v by_o self-conceited_a brethren_n who_o run_v th●ir_n own_o way_n and_o give_v like_v unto_o nothing_o but_o what_o be_v frame_v by_o themselves_o and_o hammer_v on_o their_o anvil_n we_o may_v rest_v secure_a support_v by_o the_o truth_n and_o innocency_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o profess_v myself_o a_o lover_n and_o admirer_n of_o true_a moderation_n and_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v observe_v the_o due_a measure_n of_o it_o monach._n it_o moderatus_n sum_fw-la ipse_fw-la mihi_fw-la quantity_n lic●it_n &_o non_fw-la quod_fw-la ip●●_n de_fw-fr ●o●is_fw-fr ●erue●in●_n sed_fw-la quid_fw-la nostros_fw-la homines_fw-la decede_v spectavi_fw-la su●liv_n pref_o de_fw-fr monach._n in_o what_o i_o have_v write_v with_o relation_n to_o either_o extreme_a and_o h●re_o i_o crave_v leave_n to_o repeat_v the_o die_a word_n of_o the_o right_n reverend_a bishop_n sanderson_n and_o to_o use_v they_o solemn_o as_o my_o own_o as_o i_o do_v profess_v that_o i_o have_v live_v so_o i_o desire_v and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n resolve_v to_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o true_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o as_o it_o stand_v by_o law_n establish_v to_o be_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o most_o material_a point_n of_o both_o conformable_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o godly_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o primitive_a and_o pure_a time_n i_o do_v firm_o believe_v lead_v so_o to_o do_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o force_n of_o custom_n and_o education_n to_o which_o the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n owe_v their_o particular_a different_a persuasion_n in_o religion_n as_o upon_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o truth_n and_o reason_n after_o a_o serious_a and_o unpartial_a examination_n of_o the_o ground_n as_o well_o of_o popery_n as_o puritanism_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o understanding_n and_o those_o opportunity_n which_o god_n have_v afford_v i_o and_o herein_o i_o be_o abundant_o satisfy_v that_o the_o schism_n which_o the_o papist_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o life_n v._o bishop_n sanderson_n
against_o unsufferable_a abuse_n well_o consist_v with_o her_o moderation_n and_o charity_n §_o 3._o our_o church_n leave_v other_o church_n to_o the_o use_n of_o their_o liberty_n and_o vindicate_v that_o use_n mutual_o §_o 4._o her_o especial_a moderation_n and_o charity_n towards_o the_o greek_a church_n §_o 5._o our_o church_n modesty_n and_o well-becoming_a behaviour_n towards_o other_o church_n and_o their_o mutual_a affection_n unto_o we_o p._n 411_o chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o reformation_n §_o 1._o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n as_o it_o have_v just_a ground_n and_o be_v by_o just_a authority_n so_o it_o be_v manage_v with_o due_a moderation_n the_o idea_n of_o our_o reformation_n have_v be_v impartial_a §_o 2._o the_o whole_a manner_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v our_o church_n be_v with_o great_a temper_n §_o 3._o she_z separated_z from_o the_o romish_a error_n not_o from_o their_o person_n any_o more_o than_o needs_o must_v §_o 4._o our_o charity_n exceed_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o deny_v salvation_n to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n §_o 5._o the_o preparation_n of_o our_o church_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n universal_a save_v we_o from_o schism_n §_o 6._o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v the_o more_o christian_n because_o not_o fierce_a but_o well_o govern_v §_o 7._o albeit_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n seem_v to_o have_v enrage_v her_o adversary_n yet_o because_o of_o this_o moderation_n our_o church_n be_v the_o better_o prepare_v to_o survive_v persecution_n §_o 8._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o reformation_n be_v found_v on_o rule_n of_o absolute_a justice_n as_o in_o sundry_a great_a instance_n be_v make_v to_o appear_v p._n 423_o chap._n xvii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o avoid_v all_o undue_a compliance_n with_o popery_n and_o other_o sort_n of_o fanaticism_n among_o we_o §_o 1._o notwithstanding_o our_o reformation_n be_v the_o most_o of_o any_o opposite_a to_o popery_n how_o it_o have_v be_v the_o craft_n of_o the_o roman_a agent_n to_o raise_v of_o it_o such_o a_o suspicion_n of_o popery_n as_o have_v be_v artificial_o make_v a_o very_a unhappy_a instrument_n of_o the_o division_n which_o be_v from_o our_o church_n §_o 2._o how_o the_o great_a labour_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o our_o clergy_n remain_v the_o most_o impregnable_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v stir_v up_o the_o more_o earnest_a opposition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o our_o church_n §_o 3._o the_o vain_a and_o ungrateful_a jealousy_n of_o our_o separatist_n and_o enthusiast_n be_v the_o more_o unjust_a because_o they_o have_v appear_v real_o act_v by_o that_o interest_n not_o in_o intention_n but_o in_o event_n §_o 4._o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o most_o seasonable_a work_n at_o this_o time_n to_o cast_v open_a those_o m●squcrades_n §_o 5._o some_o moderate_a caution_n here_o insert_v to_o prevent_v any_o unkind_a mistake_v §_o 6._o some_o objection_n to_o such_o a_o undertake_n here_o answer_v §_o 7._o that_o our_o separatist_n and_o enthusiast_n general_o more_o or_o less_o do_v conspire_v in_o fact_n albeit_o not_o in_o intent_n with_o the_o romanist_n instance_a as_o a_o specimen_fw-la in_o twenty_o particular_n §_o 8._o particular_o how_o the_o quaker_n be_v one_o with_o the_o papist_n how_o ignorant_o soever_o in_o sundry_a instance_n §_o 9_o by_o what_o step_n and_o degree_n these_o progress_n common_o be_v make_v towards_o popery_n by_o such_o as_o separate_v from_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n §_o 10._o what_o have_v be_v say_v confirm_v by_o other_o rational_a proof_n §_o 11._o some_o further_a reason_n why_o the_o clergy_n and_o faithful_a son_n of_o our_o church_n can_v be_v think_v thus_o concern_v in_o so_o much_o as_o a_o eventual_a conspiracy_n §_o 12._o a_o easy_a divination_n of_o the_o consequence_n of_o these_o thing_n if_o a_o due_a sense_n of_o these_o matter_n be_v reject_v when_o so_o fair_o and_o often_o recommend_v to_o the_o common_a notice_n of_o all_o with_o a_o sincere_a and_o affectionate_a close_o to_o such_o as_o this_o address_n most_o do_v concern_v p._n 455_o chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n as_o it_o may_v influence_n christian_n practice_n and_o especial_o our_o union_n §_o 1._o some_o proper_a inference_n from_o what_o have_v be_v insist_v on_o at_o large_a §_o 2._o sundry_a general_n rule_v agreeable_a to_o reason_n and_o christianity_n by_o which_o the_o moderation_n of_o private_a person_n may_v be_v measure_v and_o direct_v particular_o of_o our_o dissent_v brethren_n §_o 3._o some_o proper_a mean_n to_o reduce_v dissenter_n into_o union_n with_o the_o church_n with_o all_o moderation_n propose_v §_o 4._o the_o hearty_a profession_n of_o the_o moderate_a and_o sincere_a purpose_n of_o the_o writer_n §_o 5._o one_o or_o two_o caveat_n enter_v to_o prevent_v mistake_n and_o for_o the_o caution_n of_o such_o as_o will_v attempt_v to_o disprove_v the_o main_a proposition_n here_o design_v to_o be_v evince_v §_o 6._o some_o good_a wish_n to_o the_o adversary_n of_o our_o church_n on_o both_o side_n such_o as_o a_o fit_a to_o conclude_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n p._n 507_o errata_fw-la vitiis_fw-la nemo_fw-la sine_fw-la nascitur_fw-la optimus_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la minimis_fw-la urgetur_fw-la horat._n page_n 5._o mark_fw-mi r._n importabile_fw-la p._n 55._o l._n 10._o for_o r._n p._n 128._o mark_fw-mi r._n fur_n p._n 294._o mark_fw-mi r._n quam_fw-la p._n 306._o r._n carybdin_fw-fr p._n 311._o r._n sacerdotali_fw-la p._n 315._o r._n apud_fw-la p._n 324._o mark_fw-mi r._n exprimo_fw-la p._n 325._o mark_fw-mi r._n milev_n and_o exeq_n p._n 328._o l._n 22._o deal_n those_o l._n 24._o deal_n be_v p._n 346._o l._n 8._o r._n counsel_n p._n 378._o l._n 27._o r._n oppress_v p._n 385._o l._n 20._o r._n refute_v p._n 387._o l._n 26._o r._n right_o p._n 485._o l._n 8._o r._n austerity_n p._n 495._o l._n 1._o r._n pucklington_n p._n 533._o l._n 16._o r._n laugh_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n chap._n i_o of_o moderation_n in_o general_n §_o 1._o the_o loud_a demand_n of_o late_a among_o we_o for_o moderation_n take_v notice_n of_o §_o 2._o the_o specious_a pretence_n of_o several_a faction_n thereunto_o expose_v §_o 3._o the_o general_a meaning_n of_o moderation_n note_v §_o 4._o the_o use_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n for_o moderation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o law_n explain_v §_o 5._o the_o forensic_n notion_n of_o moderation_n apply_v to_o moderation_n in_o religion_n §_o 6._o what_o be_v just_o expect_v of_o those_o who_o causeless_o blame_v our_o church_n with_o want_n of_o moderation_n §_o 7._o moderation_n consider_v not_o only_o as_o a_o virtue_n of_o public_a but_o of_o private_a person_n both_o towards_o their_o governor_n first_o and_o also_o towards_o one_o another_o §_o 8._o some_o general_a rule_n or_o measure_n according_a to_o natural_a justice_n and_o christianity_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o design_n of_o this_o treatise_n declare_v §_o 1._o we_o have_v of_o late_a with_o both_o ear_n hear_v the_o loud_a demand_n make_v for_o moderation_n among_o we_o even_o since_o the_o restitution_n of_o our_o church_n to_o its_o own_o admirable_a and_o equal_a temper_n even_o since_o the_o unspeakable_a clemency_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a king_n and_o the_o extraordinary_a indulgence_n of_o the_o law_n have_v real_o anticipate_v so_o much_o moderation_n as_o reasonable_o may_v have_v dampt_v some_o of_o those_o vehement_a out-cry_n which_o seem_v still_o to_o offer_v violence_n to_o our_o sense_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n but_o that_o the_o sound_n may_v come_v more_o awful_a to_o religious_a ear_n on_o both_o side_n the_o cry_n have_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n let_v your_o moderation_n be_v know_v unto_o all_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n phil._n 4._o 5._o moderation_n therefore_o be_v the_o word_n in_o fashion_n by_o which_o all_o divide_a party_n among_o we_o use_n to_o sanctify_v their_o appeal_n and_o make_v their_o pretence_n seem_v virtuous_a it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o real_a truth_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v the_o genuine_a effect_n of_o true_a moderation_n be_v as_o common_a as_o the_o noise_n of_o either_o §_o 2._o all_o agree_v that_o moderation_n be_v a_o excellent_a virtue_n as_o they_o say_v of_o hercules_n who_o ever_o dispraise_v he_o hence_o the_o several_a faction_n make_v such_o specious_a pretence_n thereunto_o the_o sanctimonious_a pharisee_n affect_v the_o appearance_n of_o mighty_a moderate_a man_n they_o can_v in_o the_o very_a
duty_n and_o when_o they_o can_v be_v do_v without_o a_o public_a acknowledgement_n of_o some_o great_a error_n or_o sin_n before_o admit_v common-prayer_n admit_v see_v the_o proclamation_n of_o k._n edw._n 6._o for_o the_o authorise_a a_o uniformity_n of_o common-prayer_n wherefore_o such_o concession_n be_v not_o proper_o admit_v without_o great_a reason_n move_v thereunto_o because_o of_o the_o public_a honour_n of_o law_n in_o they_o concern_v lest_o also_o the_o frequent_a change_n of_o public_a law_n encourage_v the_o mutable_a vulgar_a in_o their_o common_a unreasonable_a levity_n and_o desire_v of_o innovation_n lest_o well-setled_n order_n and_o the_o common_a peace_n be_v disturb_v and_o lest_o good_a man_n be_v discourage_v in_o their_o regular_a obedience_n therefore_o christian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d moderation_n do_v not_o in_o such_o like_a case_n encourage_v alteration_n especial_o when_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o gratify_v such_o sick_a fancy_n and_o where_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v between_o the_o party_n complain_v what_o they_o will_v have_v relieve_v this_o will_v be_v to_o expose_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o constitution_n settle_v by_o such_o long_a prescription_n to_o the_o scorn_n of_o every_o bold_a dissenter_n which_o can_v have_v no_o other_o effect_n but_o to_o encourage_v they_o in_o their_o schism_n and_o heap_v contempt_n upon_o ourselves_o when_o we_o prostitute_v law_n and_o authority_n to_o such_o affront_n unless_o our_o dissenter_n have_v the_o humility_n and_o the_o honesty_n to_o confess_v they_o have_v be_v mistake_v and_o be_v now_o resolve_v to_o go_v as_o far_o towards_o the_o repair_n of_o breach_n as_o their_o conscience_n can_v allow_v and_o do_v propose_v a_o clear_a scheme_n of_o what_o they_o will_v submit_v to_o and_o on_o what_o term_n they_o will_v again_o enter_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n then_o i_o be_o confident_a such_o candid_a deal_n will_v find_v a_o entertainment_n beyond_o what_o they_o can_v just_o hope_v for_o truth_n for_o modest_a survey_n of_o naked_a truth_n chap._n iii_o of_o moderation_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n §_o 1._o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n §_o 2._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n frequent_o confess_v by_o her_o adversary_n sometime_o true_o sometime_o upon_o design_n but_o most_o often_o our_o church_n be_v reproach_v and_o oppose_v for_o her_o moderation_n by_o each_o sort_n of_o adversary_n §_o 3._o from_o the_o joint_a opposition_n make_v against_o our_o church_n by_o her_o adversary_n on_o either_o hand_n be_v take_v the_o chief_a inartificial_a proof_n of_o her_o moderation_n §_o 1._o treat_v of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n some_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o ask_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 3_o england_n v._o reason_n for_o the_o necess_n of_o reform_v p._n 3_o it_o be_v pretty_a odd_a that_o in_o a_o settle_a church_n as_o we_o be_v such_o a_o question_n shall_v be_v so_o confident_o make_v as_o it_o be_v by_o some_o who_o while_o they_o ask_v it_o may_v be_v member_n of_o it_o if_o they_o please_v but_o because_o this_o treatise_n be_v so_o immediate_o concern_v in_o this_o question_n i_o shall_v make_v the_o answer_n more_o clear_a from_o all_o exception_n if_o i_o come_v thereunto_o by_o some_o step_n the_o church_n in_o general_n be_v a_o select_a society_n that_o be_v of_o such_o as_o be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n 7._o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d coetus_fw-la evocatorum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d clem._n alex_n strom._n l._n 7._o this_o society_n be_v either_o that_o invisible_a company_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a throughout_o the_o world_n who_o be_v inward_o and_o real_o holy_a know_v unto_o god_n or_o be_v the_o society_n of_o those_o who_o confess_v christ_n before_o man_n and_o by_o this_o visible_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n have_v right_a to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o privilege_n of_o their_o spiritual_a community_n especial_o those_o which_o be_v a_o necessary_a and_o public_a sign_n before_o god_n and_o man_n that_o such_o do_v confess_v christ_n jesus_n for_o god_n who_o be_v the_o alone_a searcher_n of_o heart_n have_v leave_v only_o this_o presumption_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o mortal_a man_n that_o the_o visible_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n shall_v give_v right_a to_o the_o outward_a privilege_n of_o the_o church_n without_o grant_v which_o even_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n can_v never_o communicate_v in_o any_o outward_a society_n which_o all_o that_o call_v themselves_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o do_v and_o therefore_o the_o nineteenth_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n begin_v thus_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a people_n etc._n etc._n in_o every_o moderate_a constitution_n as_o i_o show_v we_o be_v the_o rule_n obtain_v every_o one_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v good_a till_o the_o contrary_n appear_v in_o a_o lawful_a manner_n wherefore_o that_o visible_a company_n of_o faithful_a people_n who_o here_o under_o the_o dominion_n of_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n call_v themselves_o christian_n and_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o defend_v they_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n 1._o england_n hooker_n be_v eccl._n pol._n l._n 3._o §._o 1._o for_o as_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v one_o yet_o within_o divers_a precinct_n have_v divers_a name_n so_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v in_o like_a sort_n divide_v into_o a_o number_n of_o distinct_a society_n every_o one_o of_o which_o be_v term_v a_o church_n within_o itself_o so_o the_o name_n of_o church_n be_v give_v betoken_v several_o as_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n ephesus_n england_n and_o the_o like_a 20._o like_a multas_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la unam_fw-la modò_fw-la unaquaeque_fw-la intra_fw-la seipsam_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la universali_fw-la adeoque_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ejus_fw-la partibus_fw-la seruat_fw-la catholicam_fw-la unitatem_fw-la forbesi_n iren._n l._n 2._o c._n 20._o but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o exception_n which_o common_o be_v this_o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a people_n as_o the_o article_n define_v the_o visible_a church_n how_o come_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o order_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v also_o govern_v by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n what_o of_o all_o this_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o answer_v hereunto_o let_v such_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o people_n among_o we_o do_v bear_v as_o great_a a_o part_n as_o they_o ought_v in_o what_o be_v constitute_v in_o our_o church_n whether_o they_o will_v own_v it_o or_o no_o for_o where_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o actual_o require_v it_o be_v either_o include_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n by_o which_o they_o be_v govern_v or_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n to_o who_o beside_o his_o own_o power_n over_o the_o church_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n which_o be_v very_o great_a in_o many_o case_n they_o have_v make_v over_o their_o right_n refertur_fw-la right_n refertur_fw-la ad_fw-la universos_fw-la quod_fw-la publicè_fw-la fit_a per_fw-la majorem_fw-la partem_fw-la ff_n de_fw-fr reg_fw-la ju_n ad_fw-la sect_n refertur_fw-la whatever_o it_o be_v themselves_o and_o frequent_o by_o their_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n they_o also_o consent_v to_o what_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o church_n for_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o our_o article_n express_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a people_n as_o it_o there_o follow_v according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n we_o must_v also_o remember_v that_o the_o church_n in_o its_o beginning_n do_v not_o form_v itself_o neither_o do_v it_o ordain_v or_o appoint_v its_o own_o ruler_n for_o christ_n give_v some_o apostle_n pastor_n teacher_n eph._n 4._o 11._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o yea_o they_o have_v their_o power_n give_v they_o somewhat_o before_o the_o church_n be_v form_v mat._n 28._o 18_o 19_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o people_n for_o their_o power_n whatever_o voluntary_a condescension_n be_v make_v by_o the_o head_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n in_o the_o tender_a beginning_n of_o the_o church_n to_o oblige_v they_o more_o firm_o in_o their_o christian_a fellowship_n yet_o all_o right_n of_o administration_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n do_v always_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o own_o limit_n so_o s._n ignatius_n cyprian_a 9_o cyprian_a cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la catholica_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la connexa_fw-la &_o cobaerentium_fw-la sibi_fw-la inuicem_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la glutine_fw-la
copulata_fw-la s._n cypr_fw-la l._n 4._o ep._n 9_o hierom_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n fit_o call_v the_o church_n a_o company_n unite_v to_o their_o pastor_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n can_v belong_v to_o the_o body_n of_o this_o society_n consider_v complex_o but_o to_o those_o officer_n in_o it_o who_o care_n and_o charge_n be_v to_o have_v a_o peculiar_a oversight_n and_o inspection_n over_o the_o church_n and_o to_o redress_v the_o disorder_n in_o it_o wherefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o improper_o express_v by_o the_o clergy_n which_o may_v be_v just_o count_v the_o church_n representative_a that_o as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v every_o act_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v govern_v by_o its_o ruler_n 27._o ruler_n ut_fw-la omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la ecclesie_n per_fw-la praepositos_fw-la suos_fw-la gubern●tur_fw-la s._n cypr._n ep._n 27._o for_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n make_v law_n we_o must_v mean_v the_o govern_n part_n of_o the_o church_n 589._o church_n du●_n dub_v l._n 3._o ch_n 4._o p._n 589._o in_o the_o form_n of_o church_n policy_n present_v to_o the_o parliament_n in_o scotland_n 1578._o by_o andrew_n melvill_n 289._o melvill_n v._o spot_n hist_o l._n 6._o p._n 289._o it_o be_v agree_v that_o sometime_o the_o church_n be_v take_v for_o they_o that_o exercise_v the_o spiritual_a function_n in_o particular_a congregation_n more_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o form_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v that_o outward_a disposition_n and_o order_n of_o superior_a and_o inferior_a communicate_v mutual_o to_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o the_o edification_n and_o increase_n of_o every_o member_n thereof_o eph._n 4._o 15_o 16._o col._n 2._o 19_o and_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o outward_a form_n and_o manner_n of_o government_n in_o a_o national_a church_n where_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a in_o all_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o person_n many_o matter_n necessary_o and_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n the_o people_n exhibit_v their_o consent_n by_o the_o king_n upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a good_a foundation_n the_o three_o canon_n declare_v the_o church_n of_o england_n a_o true_a and_o apostolical_a church_n and_o the_o nine_o canon_n declare_v the_o same_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n as_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o apostle_n rule_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o which_o account_n the_o author_n of_o schism_n in_o the_o same_o canon_n be_v censure_v and_o the_o 139th_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o national_a synod_n do_v thus_o declare_v whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o sacred_a synod_n of_o this_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o king_n authority_n assemble_v be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o england_n by_o representation_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o restore_v till_o he_o repent_v and_o public_o revoke_v that_o wicked_a error_n §_o 2._o have_v now_o explain_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o moderation_n and_o what_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o may_v more_o intelligible_o proceed_v in_o justify_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o which_o some_o inartificial_a proof_n may_v be_v premise_v the_o first_o of_o which_o may_v be_v the_o confession_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n on_o both_o side_n yea_o if_o the_o scatter_a concession_n which_o have_v be_v make_v by_o our_o adversary_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o upon_o divers_a occasion_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o a_o bundle_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o judgement_n or_o practice_n or_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n but_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v sometime_o by_o some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o as_o reasonable_a and_o moderate_a yea_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o extravagance_n among_o themselves_o but_o have_v be_v also_o confess_v and_o decry_v by_o several_a of_o their_o own_o communion_n so_o great_a be_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n at_o some_o time_n when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o free_a humour_n to_o disclose_v themselves_o and_o it_o may_v make_v a_o very_a pleasant_a and_o useful_a collection_n to_o have_v these_o well_o gather_v and_o set_v together_o particular_o they_o have_v in_o their_o lucid_a interval_n acknowledge_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n sometime_o as_o real_o convince_v thereof_o notwithstanding_o say_v one_o who_o leave_v our_o communion_n 9_o de_fw-fr cressy_n be_v exomolog_n c._n 9_o the_o english_a church_n have_v be_v more_o moderate_a and_o wary_a than_o public_o to_o pretend_v to_o such_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o by_o consequence_n have_v leave_v a_o latitude_n and_o liberty_n for_o they_o in_o her_o communion_n to_o renounce_v it_o as_o many_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a among_o they_o have_v do_v another_o of_o they_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 8._o england_n conference_n between_o a_o prot._n and_o a_o papist_n 1673._o p._n 6_o 7_o 8._o i_o believe_v her_o moderation_n have_v preserve_v what_o may_v one_o day_n yet_o much_o help_v to_o close_v the_o breach_n betwixt_o we_o we_o observe_v that_o she_o and_o peradventure_o she_o alone_o have_v preserve_v the_o face_n of_o a_o continue_a mission_n and_o uninterrupted_a ordination_n then_o in_o doctrine_n her_o moderation_n be_v great_a in_o those_o of_o great_a concern_n have_v express_v herself_o very_o wary_o in_o discipline_n she_o preserve_v the_o government_n by_o bishop_n but_o above_o all_o we_o prize_v her_o aversion_n from_o fanaticism_n and_o that_o wild_a error_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n with_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o deal_v from_o this_o obsurdity_n the_o church_n of_o england_n desire_v to_o keep_v herself_o free_a she_o hold_v indeed_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o controversy_n but_o she_o hold_v withal_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n for_o she_o be_v for_o vincentius_n his_o method_n but_o i_o see_v that_o moderate_a counsel_n have_v be_v discountenance_v on_o both_o side_n other_o of_o the_o same_o denomination_n have_v appear_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o have_v do_v it_o upon_o design_n use_v that_o acknowledgement_n only_o as_o a_o art_n either_o to_o proselyte_n some_o uncertain_a one_o of_o our_o communion_n or_o else_o to_o divide_v we_o think_v by_o their_o public_a own_v our_o moderation_n thereby_o to_o render_v we_o more_o odious_a to_o those_o of_o another_o immoderate_a extreme_a yet_o the_o generality_n of_o both_o extreme_a adversary_n join_v together_o in_o reproach_v we_o for_o this_o moderation_n and_o by_o their_o immoderateness_n in_o so_o do_v do_v also_o justify_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n thus_o do_v the_o great_a bigot_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o rigid_a disciplinarian_n and_o other_o novellist_n in_o their_o zeal_n count_v all_o merciful_a moderation_n lukewarmness_n 12._o lukewarmness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d med._n 12._o wherefore_o these_o apply_v to_o we_o what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o laodicea_n 101._o laodicea_n vid._n mr._n henderson_n be_v 1._o &_o 2d._o paper_n collegium_fw-la laodicensium_fw-la est_fw-la senatus_fw-la moderatorum_fw-la hominum_fw-la brightman_n in_o apocal._n c._n 3._o p._n 105._o antitypum_fw-la est_fw-la nostra_fw-la nimirum_fw-la anglicana_n ibid._n p._n 101._o rev._n 3._o 16._o because_o thou_o be_v lukewarm_a and_o neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a i_o will_v spew_v thou_o out_o of_o my_o mouth_n reproach_v common_o our_o moderation_n by_o the_o name_n of_o neutrality_n and_o want_n of_o zeal_n 25._o zeal_n cesset_fw-la igitur_fw-la anglia_fw-it medietatem_fw-la svam_fw-la quae_fw-la mera_fw-fr neutralitas_fw-la est_fw-la sub_fw-la titulo_fw-la prudentiae_fw-la &_o moderationis_fw-la palliare_a poti●●_n serve_v &_o resipi●ce_n parker_n de_fw-fr eccl._n pol._n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o and_o when_o some_o temperate_a interpretation_n have_v be_v offer_v the_o romanist_n anglic._n romanist_n scio_fw-la enim_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la modificationes_fw-la ubi_fw-la aliquid_fw-la temperatum_fw-la offerebatur_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la esse_fw-la quàm_fw-la satanae_n dolos_fw-la etc._n etc._n ep._n c._n bellarm_n ad_fw-la archipresb_n anglic._n they_o have_v receive_v they_o with_o invidious_a reflection_n lest_o any_o of_o their_o company_n shall_v be_v win_v over_o to_o we_o by_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o none_o pursue_v the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o this_o account_n so_o much_o as_o the_o rigid_a and_o severe_a of_o either_o extreme_a the_o hot_a head_n among_o the_o romanist_n with_o their_o anathema_n and_o the_o other_o zelots_n with_o their_o curse_n you_o meroz_n whereas_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o other_o reform_a church_n have_v not_o only_o observe_v frequent_o and_o admire_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o constitution_n as_o dr_n durel_n in_o his_o view_n of_o the_o reform_a
reserve_v he_o not_o a_o right_a of_o liberty_n in_o religion_n but_o only_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v a_o right_a of_o try_v examine_v and_o use_v his_o best_a judgement_n in_o order_n to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o conscience_n which_o right_a if_o he_o due_o use_v it_o will_v certain_o fix_v he_o in_o the_o true_a religion_n whether_o that_o religion_n be_v profess_v by_o his_o prince_n or_o nation_n or_o no_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prove_v or_o try_v all_o thing_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o thess_n 5._o 21._o here_o be_v a_o right_a to_o try_v examine_v and_o judge_n but_o no_o right_a or_o liberty_n in_o religion_n this_o trial_n be_v only_o in_o order_n to_o the_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a 1665._o good_a dr_n j._n beaumont_n observation_n upon_o the_o apology_n 1665._o as_o the_o royal_a coin_n no_o one_o can_v refuse_v every_o one_o may_v examine_v and_o try_v the_o same_o before_o he_o receive_v it_o so_o every_o christian_a keep_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o due_a obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o his_o lawful_a superior_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n he_o may_v apply_v the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o his_o own_o private_a instruction_n comfort_n edification_n and_o direction_n and_o for_o the_o frame_n of_o his_o life_n and_o belief_n according_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v more_o than_o this_o a_o judgement_n of_o direction_n to_o expound_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n to_o other_o and_o out_o of_o they_o to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a etc._n etc._n the_o chief_a pastor_n have_v yet_o a_o high_a judgement_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o prescribe_v to_o enjoin_v to_o constitute_v to_o reform_v to_o censure_v to_o condemn_v to_o bind_v to_o loose_v judicial_o authoritative_o in_o their_o respective_a charge_n 72._o charge_n bishop_n bramhall_n answer_n to_o m._n militeira_n p._n 72._o thus_o the_o danger_n of_o use_v a_o private_a judgement_n be_v prevent_v if_o it_o be_v further_o object_v 2._o that_o such_o a_o permission_n be_v vain_a because_o of_o the_o impossibility_n in_o the_o vulgar_a to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o we_o answer_v that_o such_o a_o mere_a ineptitude_n do_v not_o take_v away_o one_o right_a 111._o right_a ut_fw-la ratus_fw-la sit_fw-la actus_fw-la pauciora_fw-la requiruntur_fw-la quàm_fw-la ut_fw-la recta_fw-la sit_fw-la actio_fw-la grotius_n de_fw-fr imperio_fw-la pag._n 111._o beside_o our_o gracious_a god_n require_v of_o none_o otherwise_o than_o according_a to_o that_o ability_n which_o he_o have_v give_v wherefore_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n imitate_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n herein_o which_o require_v nothing_o necessary_o but_o what_o be_v so_o clear_o propound_v as_o to_o leave_v all_o inexcusable_a and_o therefore_o those_o that_o have_v skill_n to_o look_v to_o themselves_o in_o the_o common_a business_n of_o life_n may_v discern_v as_o much_o as_o be_v require_v those_o who_o have_v not_o use_v of_o their_o ability_n the_o idiotae_fw-la the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o care_n of_o their_o governor_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v capable_a for_o as_o origen_n argue_v when_o celsus_n object_v to_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o 〈◊〉_d origen_n c._n celsum_fw-la l._n 1._o believe_v without_o any_o reason_n or_o examination_n the_o contrary_a thereunto_o origen_n show_v at_o large_a yet_o of_o the_o vulgar_a he_o say_v indeed_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o all_o people_n shall_v attain_v to_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o doctrine_n how_o can_v he_o get_v wisdom_n who_o be_v diligent_a to_o give_v the_o kine_n fodder_n etc._n etc._n eccles_n 38._o 26._o wherefore_o say_v origen_n what_o more_o compendious_a way_n can_v be_v contrive_v to_o relieve_v the_o poor_a multitude_n than_o the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o jesus_n for_o this_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o they_o that_o before_o wallow_v in_o vice_n thereby_o now_o be_v deliver_v but_o why_o shall_v the_o stoic_n and_o platonist_n quarrel_n at_o christian_n for_o believe_v when_o all_o of_o they_o believe_v those_o they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o in_o the_o sect_n they_o judge_v most_o excellent_a §_o 10._o so_o great_a be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n because_o never_o the_o less_o as_o the_o temper_n of_o man_n general_o now_o be_v among_o we_o since_o these_o licentious_a time_n especial_o have_v corrupt_v they_o the_o most_o be_v very_o captious_a of_o what_o have_v the_o femblance_n of_o privilege_n and_o such_o also_o be_v most_o apt_a to_o neglect_v their_o duty_n it_o be_v very_o great_a justice_n and_o equity_n that_o all_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o due_a submission_n we_o also_o owe_v to_o the_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o matter_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o duty_n i_o shall_v lay_v down_o in_o such_o brief_a proposition_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o a_o easy_a reason_n to_o infer_v from_o the_o compare_v of_o relation_n 1._o all_o good_a christian_n who_o love_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o its_o peace_n will_v for_o truth_n and_o conscience_n sake_n harken_v to_o the_o church_n and_o those_o set_v over_o they_o on_o purpose_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v they_o especial_o in_o case_n of_o doubt_n 2._o such_o will_v well_o weigh_v the_o moment_n of_o reason_n which_o the_o church_n offer_v and_o be_v ready_a with_o all_o due_a regard_n to_o entertain_v what_o the_o church_n resolve_v and_o ready_o also_o approve_v of_o those_o resolution_n unless_o it_o appear_v manifest_o that_o such_o determination_n contradict_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o not_o good_a man_n will_v unadvised_o conceive_v much_o less_o seek_v occasion_n for_o exception_n 3._o in_o a_o doubtful_a and_o equal_a case_n such_o will_v incline_v to_o what_o be_v public_o determine_v because_o of_o the_o relation_n of_o superiority_n between_o the_o church_n and_o its_o member_n and_o because_o of_o the_o many_o great_a advantage_n they_o know_v the_o church_n have_v in_o its_o judgement_n above_o themselves_o because_o also_o the_o better_a any_o be_v and_o the_o more_o humble_a and_o sincere_a the_o more_o they_o be_v prepare_v to_o suspect_v and_o distrust_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o not_o to_o lean_v unto_o their_o own_o understanding_n 4._o if_o in_o any_o case_n it_o shall_v happen_v that_o such_o shall_v different_o opine_n or_o judge_n however_o such_o will_v afford_v a_o practical_a submission_n in_o many_o case_n which_o they_o may_v and_o aught_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o thought_n remain_v which_o be_v sufficient_a if_o they_o can_v but_o dissent_v modest_a and_o pious_a person_n will_v upon_o many_o occasion_n have_v their_o faith_n to_o themselves_o and_o reserve_v their_o different_a apprehension_n in_o a_o continent_n silence_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wise_a unto_o sobriety_n 5._o if_o before_o they_o come_v to_o know_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o divulge_v their_o sense_n in_o speak_v or_o write_v such_o will_v do_v it_o with_o submission_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o those_o to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o care_n of_o censure_n if_o there_o shall_v happen_v such_o a_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a occasion_n which_o they_o can_v avoid_v to_o declare_v their_o apprehension_n different_a from_o the_o church_n if_o the_o dissenter_n err_v and_o can_v submit_v with_o consent_n he_o must_v even_o bear_v patient_o the_o inconvenience_n of_o his_o error_n which_o if_o in_o a_o less_o principal_a matter_n on_o this_o side_n heresy_n and_o schism_n such_o a_o infirmity_n 2._o infirmity_n aliter_fw-la sapere_fw-la quam_fw-la se_fw-la res_fw-la habet_fw-la humana_fw-la tentatio_fw-la est_fw-la s._n aug._n de_fw-fr bapt._n l._n 2._o and_o temptation_n incident_a to_o humane_a nature_n happen_v 4._o happen_v qualiter_fw-la pro_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la falsae_fw-la opinionis_fw-la errore_fw-la in_o die_fw-la judicii_fw-la puniendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la nullus_fw-la potest_fw-la scire_fw-la nisi_fw-la judex_fw-la salvianus_n de_fw-fr gubern_n dei_fw-la c._n 11._o §._o 4._o they_o that_o will_v retain_v their_o integrity_n must_v preserve_v 1._o a_o entire_a charity_n to_o other_o 2._o a_o reverend_a respect_n to_o the_o church_n and_o as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a a_o inviolable_a communion_n therewith_o 3._o such_o aught_o to_o endeavour_v to_o comply_v in_o other_o point_v more_o diligent_o 4._o such_o aught_o to_o profess_v their_o dissent_n from_o the_o church_n with_o great_a reluctancy_n and_o sorrow_n 5._o they_o must_v be_v very_o willing_a to_o own_o their_o error_n when_o they_o be_v convince_v thereof_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o lay_v it_o aside_o whereby_o retain_v inviolable_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n such_o already_o be_v in_o preparation_n of_o mind_n dispose_v to_o renounce_v their_o error_n when_o they_o
artifice_n of_o the_o romanist_n have_v have_v great_a effect_n on_o our_o sectary_n in_o their_o obstinate_a refuse_v the_o say_a oath_n of_o supremacy_n whereby_o they_o be_v become_v the_o more_o prepare_v for_o the_o papacy_n and_o that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o the_o romanist_n and_o the_o sectary_n be_v unite_v in_o their_o first_o principle_n and_o how_o both_o become_v more_o obstinate_a even_o the_o more_o moderation_n be_v use_v to_o either_o their_o refuse_v together_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v too_o undoubted_a a_o testimony_n yea_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o his_o majesty_n government_n and_o the_o immoderate_a obstinacy_n of_o the_o govern_v part_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n the_o history_n of_o father_n walsh_n concern_v the_o loyal_a formulary_a in_o ireland_n 1666._o will_v be_v a_o eternal_a monument_n which_o show_v at_o large_a with_o what_o art_n and_o industry_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o more_o peaceable_a romanist_n be_v oppose_v even_o from_o the_o roman_a cardinal_n and_o other_o their_o superior_n to_o give_v his_o majesty_n but_o the_o security_n of_o their_o allegiance_n in_o a_o brief_a and_o very_a moderate_a form_n 2._o the_o oath_n against_o simony_n cleric_a simony_n injunct_a q._n eliz._n §._o 26._o canon_n 40._o 1603._o nemo_fw-la gradum_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la venalitate_fw-la pretii_fw-la mercetur_fw-la quantum_fw-la cuique_fw-la meretur_fw-la non_fw-la quantum_fw-la dare_v sufficit_fw-la aestimetur_fw-la cod._n tir._n de_fw-fr episco_n &_o cleric_a do_v justify_v the_o integrity_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o law_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o that_o all_o the_o endeavour_n possible_a be_v use_v to_o prevent_v all_o guilt_n of_o simony_n in_o the_o clergy_n 3._o the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n be_v offer_v unto_o all_o with_o that_o most_o moderate_a and_o just_a clause_n in_o all_o thing_n lawful_a and_o honest_a which_o canonical_a obedience_n be_v no_o other_o than_o be_v swear_v in_o other_o reform_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n set_v down_o by_o d._n d._n durell_n 10._o durell_n of_o reform_a church_n p._n 10._o 4._o in_o the_o oath_n of_o continual_a residence_n in_o a_o vicarage_n half_o the_o clause_n be_v for_o the_o moderate_v the_o oath_n unless_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o dispense_v by_o the_o diocesan_n many_o object_n earnest_o against_o the_o oath_n which_o the_o churchwarden_n be_v oblige_v to_o take_v whereas_o such_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o nature_n and_o end_n of_o their_o office_n can_v well_o be_v procure_v but_o by_o oblige_v they_o in_o that_o matter_n 2._o such_o may_v consider_v their_o presentment_n be_v of_o matter_n govern_v by_o their_o superior_n in_o which_o they_o be_v but_o to_o make_v presentment_n according_a to_o inquiry_n before_o they_o in_o make_v of_o which_o they_o may_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o other_o oath_n thus_o the_o homily_n against_o perjury_n when_o judge_n require_v oath_n of_o the_o people_n for_o declaration_n or_o open_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o for_o execution_n of_o justice_n also_o when_o man_n make_v faithful_a promise_n with_o call_v to_o witness_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o keep_v covenant_n honest_a promise_n statute_n law_n and_o good_a custom_n as_o christian_a prince_n do_v in_o their_o conclusion_n of_o peace_n and_o private_a person_n promise_v their_o fidelity_n in_o matrimony_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o man_n when_o they_o do_v swear_v to_o keep_v common_a law_n and_o local_a statute_n and_o good_a custom_n for_o due_a order_n when_o subject_n do_v swear_v to_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a to_o their_o king_n and_o when_o judge_n magistrate_n and_o officer_n swear_v true_o to_o execute_v their_o office_n etc._n etc._n all_o these_o manner_n of_o swear_v for_o cause_n necessary_a and_o honest_a be_v lawful_a by_o lawful_a oath_n common_a law_n be_v keep_v inviolate_a justice_n indifferent_o minister_v harmless_a person_n be_v defend_v mutual_a society_n amity_n good_a order_n be_v keep_v continual_o in_o all_o commonalty_n etc._n etc._n last_o of_o the_o ceremony_n in_o take_v oath_n with_o lay_v hand_n on_o the_o bible_n or_o testament_n and_o swear_v by_o the_o content_n of_o it_o and_o kiss_v the_o book_n we_o may_v hear_v what_o tindal_n 208._o tindal_n on_o 5._o s._n matth._n p._n 208._o well_o say_v when_o thou_o swear_v by_o the_o holy_a gospel_n or_o bible_n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n if_o thou_o lie_v shall_v not_o fulfil_v unto_o thou_o the_o promise_n of_o mercy_n therein_o write_v but_o contrariwise_o to_o bring_v upon_o thou_o all_o the_o curse_n plague_n and_o threaten_n therein_o threaten_v to_o the_o disobedient_a and_o evil-doer_n and_o by_o these_o ceremony_n the_o civil_a law_n tell_v we_o a_o oath_n be_v hold_v more_o inviolable_a 3._o inviolable_a t●ctis_fw-la sacr●sanctis_fw-la evangeliis_fw-la l._n ●em_v non_fw-fr novam_fw-la §._o pat●●●●_n de_fw-fr judi●iis_fw-la see_v our_o ancient_a statute_n 51_o h●nr_n 3._o chap._n viii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o relation_n to_o ceremony_n §_o 1._o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v very_o few_o and_o those_o of_o great_a antiquity_n simplicity_n clear_a signification_n and_o use_n our_o church_n avoid_v either_o sort_n of_o superstition_n §_o 2._o they_o have_v constant_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v in_o themselves_o indifferent_a and_o alterable_a but_o in_o that_o our_o church_n avoid_v variableness_n be_v a_o further_a proof_n of_o its_o moderation_n §_o 3._o they_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v no_o part_n of_o religion_n much_o less_o the_o chief_a nor_o to_o have_v any_o supernatural_a effect_n belong_v to_o they_o §_o 4._o abundant_a care_n be_v take_v to_o give_v plain_a and_o frequent_a reason_n and_o interpretation_n of_o what_o in_o this_o nature_n be_v enjoin_v to_o prevent_v mistake_n §_o 5._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n even_o in_o point_n of_o ceremony_n compare_v with_o those_o who_o have_v raise_v so_o great_a a_o dust_n in_o this_o controversy_n §_o 6._o many_o innocent_a rite_n and_o usage_n our_o church_n never_o go_v about_o to_o introduce_v and_o why_o §_o 7._o the_o obligation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v very_o mild_a §_o 8._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o appointment_n of_o vestment_n §_o 9_o the_o benediction_n of_o our_o church_n be_v according_a to_o great_a piety_n and_o wisdom_n order_v §_o 10._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o appointment_n of_o gesture_n §_o 11._o of_o the_o respect_n which_o be_v hold_v due_a to_o place_n and_o thing_n distinguish_v to_o god_n service_n our_o church_n judge_v and_o practise_v according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n §_o 1._o as_o in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n i_o have_v not_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o stay_v the_o reader_n by_o present_v to_o his_o consideration_n the_o many_o proof_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n antiquity_n and_o advantage_n of_o liturgy_n in_o general_a or_o by_o argue_v the_o excellence_n and_o usefulness_n of_o our_o public_a form_n of_o prayer_n in_o particular_a because_o any_o such_o labour_n have_v be_v sufficient_o save_v from_o the_o copious_a and_o unanswerable_a performance_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a and_o judicious_a man_n of_o our_o communion_n who_o have_v large_o vindicate_v and_o also_o have_v give_v the_o particular_a reason_n of_o our_o institution_n so_o in_o this_o chapter_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v only_o the_o ecclesiastical_a institution_n for_o order_n and_o decency_n i_o hold_v it_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n mention_v unnecessary_a by_o many_o argument_n to_o defend_v the_o lawful_a use_n or_o establishment_n of_o ecclesiastical_a rite_n since_o the_o same_o have_v be_v abundant_o prove_v both_o from_o the_o liberty_n allow_v to_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o also_o from_o what_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n and_o be_v defend_v from_o the_o practice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o other_o protestant_a church_n and_o can_v without_o very_o evil_a consequence_n as_o be_v destructive_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n be_v deny_v any_o christian_a church_n all_o which_o and_o much_o more_o for_o the_o vindication_n of_o our_o church_n have_v be_v full_o and_o judicious_o evince_v particular_o by_o my_o excellent_a friend_n mr_n falkner_n in_o his_o libertas_n ecclesiastica_fw-la to_o who_o solid_a defence_n also_o of_o our_o other_o ecclesiastical_a appointment_n and_o become_a gesture_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o also_o the_o holy-day_n and_o festival_n of_o our_o church_n as_o agreeable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o reason_n i_o take_v leave_n to_o refer_v the_o reader_n and_o i_o presume_v it_o may_v satisfy_v my_o design_n and_o sufficient_o justify_v our_o church_n if_o unto_o what_o have_v be_v so_o ample_o and_o irreproveable_o perform_v i_o add_v the_o just_a instance_n and_o proof_n of_o our_o
although_o in_o matter_n of_o their_o acknowledge_a liberty_n that_o it_o be_v pity_n their_o observance_n be_v not_o better_o place_v even_o the_o quaker_n themselves_o in_o what_o they_o in_o abuse_n of_o the_o law_n call_v marriage_n use_v ceremony_n of_o join_v hand_n and_o stand_v while_o they_o also_o declare_v their_o consent_n mutual_o in_o a_o form_n and_o in_o many_o other_o practice_n of_o opposition_n as_o meet_v for_o what_o they_o call_v marriage_n in_o the_o afternoon_n bury_v their_o people_n in_o a_o cross_a manner_n they_o be_v constant_a and_o as_o formal_a where_o they_o be_v antipode_n to_o authority_n as_o any_o romanist_n can_v be_v in_o his_o cross_n and_o incensing_n so_o that_o if_o superstition_n 118._o superstition_n sensi_fw-la enim_fw-la dolens_fw-la &_o gemens_fw-la multas_fw-la infir_n morum_fw-la perturbationes_fw-la fieri_fw-la per_fw-la quorundam_fw-la fratrum_fw-la contentiosam_fw-la obstinationem_fw-la &_o superstitiosam_fw-la timiditatem_fw-la s._n aug._n ep._n 118._o be_v go_v beyond_o measure_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o none_o be_v so_o superstitious_a as_o those_o on_o either_o hand_n who_o oppose_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n and_o real_o it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a justification_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n that_o our_o present_a anti-ceremonial_a dissenter_n though_o they_o have_v want_v no_o endeavour_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o wit_n and_o power_n hitherto_o have_v be_v able_a to_o make_v no_o other_o exception_n against_o our_o church_n and_o what_o be_v therein_o constitute_v than_o what_o have_v be_v answer_v already_o very_o often_o and_o very_o full_o to_o the_o conviction_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o the_o more_o ingenuous_a among_o themselves_o §_o 6._o but_o so_o far_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o multiply_a ceremony_n that_o we_o know_v there_o be_v many_o innocent_a usage_n 101._o usage_n see_v sprint_n necess_n of_o conform_v p._n 85._o to_o 101._o which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o sundry_a place_n and_o at_o divers_a time_n which_o our_o church_n of_o england_n never_o go_v about_o to_o introduce_v either_o by_o practice_n or_o command_v as_o the_o holy_a kiss_n the_o use_n of_o the_o veil_n the_o threefold_a immersion_n or_o use_v of_o the_o white_a garment_n in_o baptism_n and_o many_o other_o which_o since_o our_o church_n pass_v by_o their_o use_n we_o do_v not_o mention_v which_o show_v that_o order_n and_o edification_n give_v bound_n as_o be_v meet_v to_o the_o number_n and_o use_v of_o ceremony_n in_o our_o church_n which_o stop_v that_o objection_n in_o its_o career_n who_o shall_v determine_v their_o convenient_a number_n 89._o number_n interest_n of_o england_n p._n 89._o the_o church_n have_v receive_v just_a rule_n and_o our_o church_n have_v observe_v the_o same_o with_o just_a moderation_n and_o hereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o as_o our_o church_n have_v not_o reject_v all_o rite_n and_o usage_n mere_o because_o they_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n no_o more_o than_o the_o reformation_n of_o hezekiah_n or_o josiah_n reject_v all_o thing_n receive_v or_o imitate_v in_o the_o corrupt_a worship_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n so_o many_o practice_n which_o have_v pious_a and_o useful_a beginning_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o afterward_o be_v grievous_o corrupt_v have_v not_o be_v admit_v in_o our_o church_n partly_o because_o she_o have_v not_o be_v forward_o to_o multiply_v ritual_a observance_n partly_o that_o such_o occasion_n of_o corruption_n may_v not_o be_v invite_v when_o by_o experience_n it_o have_v be_v see_v how_o easy_o there_o have_v come_v excess_n among_o what_o have_v useful_a beginning_n can_v be_v number_v the_o old_a way_n of_o superstitious_a purgation_n by_o fire_n and_o water_n ordeal_v and_o combat_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v all_o abolish_v among_o we_o 21_o we_o v._o ridley_n view_n etc._n etc._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o §._o 5._o reform_v leg_n eccl._n de_fw-mi purge_v c._n 21_o §_o 7._o concern_v the_o ceremony_n appoint_v in_o our_o church_n it_o must_v further_o be_v take_v notice_n that_o the_o obligation_n to_o they_o be_v very_o mild_a for_o though_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n be_v doubtless_o to_o bind_v all_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o regular_a order_n yet_o as_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n have_v it_o 47._o it_o p._n 47._o forasmuch_o as_o such_o thing_n be_v of_o themselves_o mean_a and_o indifferent_a man_n may_v upon_o cause_n reasonable_a well_o omit_v the_o same_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o case_n of_o contempt_n or_o scandal_n 19_o scandal_n v._o whitgift_n answ_n to_o admon_n p._n 29._o v._o bishop_n sanderson_n judgement_n etc._n etc._n p._n 19_o and_o of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o complain_v for_o secure_v its_o own_o order_n against_o contempt_n and_o for_o provide_v against_o scandal_n to_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n especial_o since_o her_o rite_n themselves_o be_v such_o as_o may_v deserve_v every_o where_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o how_o far_o particular_a person_n have_v to_o do_v to_o moderate_v yet_o further_o the_o great_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n we_o leave_v it_o to_o all_o sober_a conscience_n and_o to_o our_o superior_n to_o judge_n who_o also_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o true_a interest_n of_o the_o church_n how_o far_o popular_a exception_n ought_v to_o influence_n any_o change_n uniformity_n certain_o be_v so_o excellent_a that_o the_o certain_a purchase_n of_o it_o will_v be_v worth_a somewhat_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v our_o governor_n have_v to_o do_v with_o those_o that_o be_v so_o unresolved_a of_o what_o they_o will_v have_v that_o this_o make_v their_o most_o cautious_a deliberation_n necessary_a militier_fw-fr necessary_a bishop_n bramhal_o to_o m._n militier_fw-fr for_o as_o a_o learned_a prelate_n observe_v it_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o prudence_n not_o to_o remove_v a_o ill_a custom_n when_o it_o be_v well_o settle_a unless_o it_o bring_v great_a prejudices_fw-la and_o then_o it_o be_v better_a to_o give_v one_o account_n why_o we_o have_v take_v it_o away_o than_o to_o be_v always_o make_v excuse_n why_o we_o do_v it_o not_o needless_a alteration_n do_v diminish_v the_o venerable_a esteem_n of_o religion_n and_o lessen_v the_o credit_n of_o ancient_a truth_n break_v ice_n in_o one_o place_n and_o it_o will_v crack_v in_o more_o §_o 8._o it_o may_v be_v as_o proper_a in_o this_o place_n as_o any_o where_o to_o annex_v the_o notice_n of_o our_o church_n moderation_n in_o its_o appointment_n of_o vestment_n 74._o vestment_n canon_n 24._o 25._o 58._o 74._o for_o holy_a ministration_n as_o be_v herein_o neither_o undecent_o deficient_a nor_o immoderate_o extravagant_a the_o vestment_n in_o use_n by_o order_n among_o we_o be_v very_o few_o and_o those_o very_a modest_a and_o useful_a for_o ornament_n distinction_n and_o commonefaction_n free_a from_o all_o superstition_n and_o show_v of_o luxury_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o those_o in_o use_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n 22._o church_n d._n d._n durel_n of_o reform_v ch._n sect._n 2._o §._o 21_o 22._o neither_o be_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n consecrate_a by_o any_o solemn_a benediction_n nor_o to_o any_o supernatural_a effect_n 29._o effect_n hooker_n eccl._n pol._n l._n 5._o §._o 29._o as_o we_o think_v not_o ourselves_o the_o holy_a because_o we_o use_v they_o so_o neither_o shall_v other_o think_v we_o therefore_o unholy_a in_o the_o injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n 1559._o §_o 30._o 1571._o 30._o canon_n 74._o 1603._o etiam_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la famuli_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la vestis_fw-la genere_fw-la se_fw-la modestè_fw-la &_o compositè_fw-fr ornabunt_fw-la v._o libr._n quorundam_fw-la canonum_fw-la 1571._o her_o majesty_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v the_o prelacy_n and_o clergy_n of_o this_o realm_n to_o be_v have_v as_o well_o in_o outward_a reverence_n as_o otherwise_o regard_v for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o their_o ministry_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o honour_n and_o estimation_n due_a to_o the_o special_a messenger_n of_o god_n will_v and_o command_v they_o to_o wear_v such_o habit_n etc._n etc._n not_o thereby_o meaning_n as_o it_o be_v add_v to_o attribute_v any_o special_a holiness_n or_o worthiness_n to_o the_o say_a garment_n but_o as_o st_n paul_n say_v let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o wherefore_o in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o idolatry_n our_o church_n except_v against_o that_o costly_a and_o manifold_a furniture_n of_o vestment_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o fetch_v from_o the_o jewish_a usage_n hoopers_n ingenuous_a acknowledgement_n of_o his_o error_n about_o vestment_n see_v in_o dr_n durel_n 140._o durel_n vindiciae_fw-la s._n eccl._n angl._n l._n 16._o p._n 140._o a_o ms._n letter_n §_o 9_o the_o benediction_n of_o our_o church_n be_v perform_v with_o great_a piety_n and_o wisdom_n notwithstanding_o the_o contempt_n which_o many_o entertain_v the_o
all_o other_o matter_n refer_v to_o that_o sacrament_n and_o all_o the_o other_o five_o sacrament_n also_o in_o every_o thing_n refer_v to_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n agree_v in_o heart_n and_o confession_n of_o mouth_n with_o all_o thing_n receive_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v exhibit_v all_o duty_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o universal_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n such_o gainful_a and_o advantageous_a bargain_n will_v they_o be_v sure_a to_o make_v for_o themselves_o and_o the_o keep_n up_o their_o usurpation_n before_o they_o will_v allow_v any_o concession_n or_o mitigate_v any_o extreme_a rigour_n in_o their_o most_o unwarrantable_a practice_n or_o they_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o annex_v such_o condition_n as_o shall_v render_v their_o concession_n ineffectual_a §_o 2._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n absolute_o and_o simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o propound_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o under_o a_o terrible_a anathema_n 2._o anathema_n conc._n trid._n sess_n 13._o can._n 2._o be_v by_o our_o church_n plain_o deny_v as_o contrary_a both_o to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o all_o testimony_n of_o venerable_a antiquity_n and_o as_o a_o doctrine_n liable_a to_o grievous_a consequence_n dunelmensi_fw-la consequence_n v._o hist._n transub_v à_fw-fr jo._n dunelmensi_fw-la which_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n may_v appear_v to_o they_o that_o peruse_v our_o article_n 28_o 29._o order_n of_o communion_n rubric_n homily_n several_a statute_n of_o the_o land_n particular_o the_o late_a statute_n wherein_o be_v provide_v that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o office_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o in_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n at_o or_o after_o the_o consecration_n thereof_o by_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o accurate_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o avoid_v one_o error_n it_o run_v not_o into_o other_o extreme_n for_o in_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n catechism_n in_o the_o apology_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v assert_v the_o real_a presence_n 1620._o presence_n archbishop_z vsher_n serm._n 18_o febr._n 1620._o of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o judgement_n per._n judgement_n patres_fw-la dehortantur_fw-la à_fw-la quaestione_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hâc_fw-la piâ_fw-la moderatione_n si_fw-la rex_fw-la &_o eccl._n angl._n utuntur_fw-la quae_fw-la inuidia_fw-la r._n jac._n ad_fw-la c._n per._n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o the_o particular_a mode_n and_o manner_n thereof_o any_o otherwise_o than_o that_o it_o be_v spiritual_a mystical_a and_o sacramental_a the_o church_n of_o england_n according_a to_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o too_o curious_o pry_v into_o or_o search_v see_v ch._n 5._o §_o 6._o §_o 3._o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v earnest_o and_o passionate_o invite_v and_o expostulate_v with_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n to_o frequent_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o in_o the_o exhortation_n before_o the_o holy_a communion_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o the_o place_n and_o time_n of_o prayer_n and_o in_o q._n eliz._n article_n for_o doctrine_n and_o preach_v all_o minister_n be_v require_v to_o excite_v the_o people_n to_o often_o and_o devout_a receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n 452._o communion_n v._o librum_fw-la quorundam_fw-la canonum_fw-la 1571._o jam_fw-la vero_fw-la singulis_fw-la mensibus_fw-la coenam_fw-la celebrari_fw-la maximè_fw-la nobis_fw-la placeret_fw-la calvin_n ep._n p._n 452._o and_o in_o college_n and_o collegiate_n church_n the_o holy_a communion_n be_v require_v to_o be_v administer_v every_o sunday_n unless_o there_o be_v reasonable_a cause_n to_o the_o contrary_a c._n contrary_a v._o rubr._fw-la 4._o after_o h._n c._n canon_n 23._o v._o rubr._fw-la 8._o after_o h._n c._n canon_n 21._o 1003._o rubr._n 8._o after_o h._n c._n and_o on_o the_o first_o or_o second_o sunday_n of_o every_o month_n so_o also_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v lay_v its_o general_a command_n according_a to_o great_a moderation_n in_o require_v every_o one_o thrice_o at_o least_o every_o year_n to_o communicate_v 18._o communicate_v qui_fw-la in_o nataii_fw-la d._n paschate_n &_o pentecosle_n non_fw-la communicant_a catholici_fw-la non_fw-la credantur_fw-la conc._n agath_fw-mi can._n 18._o well_o temper_v her_o injunction_n in_o accommodation_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o age_n between_o the_o earnest_a practice_n of_o devotion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 8._o church_n quando_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la adhuc_fw-la calebat_fw-la cruor_fw-la &_o fervebat_fw-la recens_fw-la in_o credentibus_fw-la fides_fw-la s._n hieron_n ad_fw-la demetr_v ep._n 8._o when_o they_o common_o communicate_v at_o least_o every_o lord_n day_n and_o festival_n and_o between_o the_o remissness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1583._o rome_n dolemus_fw-la tantam_fw-la christianorum_fw-la incuriam_fw-la ut_fw-la semel_fw-la tantùm_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la sumant_fw-la etc._n etc._n council_n rhem._n 1583._o which_o express_o require_v all_o of_o her_o communion_n to_o celebrate_v but_o once_o every_o year_n 31._o year_n in_o pentecoste_n rarior_fw-la est_fw-la communio_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la fortasse_fw-la concilium_fw-la tridentinum_n hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la nuptias_fw-la solennes_n fieri_fw-la permisit_fw-la c._n bellarm._n de_fw-fr matrim_n sacram._n l._n 1._o c._n 31._o and_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o directory_n who_o for_o many_o year_n together_o lamentable_o neglect_v the_o administration_n and_o participation_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 3._o eucharist_n v._o coena_fw-la q._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v._o s._n eccl._n angl._n vindic._n c._n 3._o as_o beside_o our_o own_o memory_n mr_n prin_fw-mi often_o testify_v and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o time_n soon_o after_o the_o reformation_n tell_v we_o of_o some_o who_o from_o adore_v the_o element_n fall_v to_o contemn_v they_o wherefore_o there_o issue_v out_o a_o proclamation_n 387._o proclamation_n fuller_n eccl._n he_o p._n 387._o concern_v the_o irreverent_a talk_n of_o the_o sacrament_n §_o 4._o as_o our_o church_n offer_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n only_o to_o those_o who_o have_v give_v due_a testimony_n of_o their_o knowledge_n and_o christian_a belief_n in_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n 29._o bishop_n v._o rubr._n after_o confirm_v injunction_n of_o king_n edw._n 6._o canon_n 29._o so_o it_o require_v that_o none_o be_v admit_v godfather_n or_o godmother_n at_o christen_v or_o confirmation_n but_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n yet_o because_o s._n paul_n remit_v every_o particular_a christian_a to_o a_o self-examination_n without_o any_o order_n either_o to_o minister_n or_o lay-elder_n to_o exclude_v any_o from_o the_o holy_a communion_n upon_o their_o examination_n therefore_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v such_o it_o do_v not_o depress_v adult_a christian_n below_o the_o order_n of_o person_n first_o to_o be_v catechise_v require_v they_o to_o such_o rigid_a examination_n as_o have_v be_v sometime_o use_v like_o the_o auricular_a confession_n of_o the_o romanist_n among_o which_o examiner_n of_o the_o adult_a professor_n the_o be_v of_o a_o party_n have_v be_v too_o often_o the_o note_n of_o preparation_n for_o their_o church_n communion_n neither_o do_v our_o most_o moderate_a church_n judge_v any_o uncapable_a of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o she_o judge_v not_o unworthy_a of_o her_o communion_n sacrament_n communion_n homily_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n say_v the_o homily_n lest_o of_o the_o memory_n it_o be_v make_v a_o sacrifice_n lest_o of_o a_o communion_n it_o be_v make_v a_o private_a eat_n wherefore_o as_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v offer_v to_o all_o that_o do_v not_o wilful_o reject_v so_o great_a grace_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a communion_n in_o our_o church_n to_o all_o that_o be_v not_o unfit_a to_o receive_v it_o and_o such_o as_o be_v the_o church_n be_v not_o want_v to_o admonish_v and_o forewarn_v c._n forewarn_v v._o exhorta_fw-la and_o admon_n before_o the_o h._n c._n and_o take_v all_o due_a care_n to_o provide_v against_o their_o intrusion_n as_o the_o general_a corruption_n of_o mankind_n now_o do_v admit_v according_a to_o the_o rubric_n and_o canon_n 26._o canon_n canon_n 26._o concern_v notorious_a offender_n on_o which_o bishop_n andrews_n his_o note_n be_v our_o law_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o minister_n to_o judge_v any_o man_n a_o notorious_a offender_n but_o he_o who_o be_v so_o convince_v by_o some_o legal_a sentence_n §_o 5._o our_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o admit_v any_o private_a mass_n sacr._n mass_n conc._n trid._n sess_n 22._o can._n 8._o 39_o artic._n 31._o hom._n of_o sacr._n which_o in_o
faithful_o provide_v whatever_o be_v necessary_a or_o expedient_a for_o those_o who_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v within_o her_o communion_n as_o become_v a_o good_a steward_n of_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v in_o her_o house_n the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n whatsoever_o be_v requisite_a to_o promote_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o emendation_n and_o edification_n of_o all_o in_o brotherly_a love_n and_o faith_n and_o godliness_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o excellent_a monument_n of_o the_o church_n piety_n her_o article_n liturgy_n canon_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o belong_v to_o her_o constitution_n the_o church_n door_n be_v open_a we_o have_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o our_o mother-tongue_n frequent_o read_v and_o expound_v in_o preach_v and_o chatechism_n we_o have_v the_o excellent_a prayer_n general_o accommodate_v to_o all_o public_a occasion_n and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n right_o administer_v and_o all_o spiritual_a mean_n necessary_a to_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o schism_n over_o and_o above_o we_o have_v our_o prince_n the_o profess_a defender_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n for_o all_o particular_a occasion_n public_a and_o private_a which_o humane_a foresight_n general_o can_v procure_v of_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v a_o large_a confession_n in_o the_o morning_n exercise_n against_o 209._o against_o serm._n 9_o p._n 209._o popery_n our_o dissent_v friend_n shall_v therefore_o consider_v that_o the_o case_n be_v quite_o different_a from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o be_v force_v to_o assemble_v together_o in_o part_n in_o homily_n of_o idol_n 3_o part_n low_a and_o poor_a conventicle_n simple_a oratory_n and_o cave_n underground_o call_v cryptae_n for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n since_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o a_o wild_a humour_n possess_v too_o many_o who_o run_v into_o dangerous_a and_o forbid_a conventicle_n scandalous_o insinuate_v that_o our_o church_n and_o kingdom_n rather_o persecute_v than_o encourage_v christianity_n but_o because_o nothing_o in_o this_o world_n be_v so_o perfect_a but_o may_v have_v its_o exception_n frame_v against_o it_o especial_o when_o fair_a construction_n be_v not_o allow_v therefore_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o peace_n and_o in_o hope_n by_o the_o church_n condescension_n and_o endeavour_n to_o remove_v even_o all_o suspicion_n of_o what_o be_v blame-worthy_a there_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v many_o concession_n make_v for_o the_o utmost_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o in_o what_o have_v be_v think_v expedient_a our_o church_n be_v of_o the_o mind_n of_o father_n nazianzen_n 〈◊〉_d nazianzen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o in_o his_o oration_n of_o peace_n say_v come_v let_v we_o give_v way_n that_o so_o we_o may_v overcome_v let_v we_o grant_v a_o little_a that_o so_o we_o may_v gain_v a_o great_a deal_n even_o peace_n not_o only_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n some_o thing_n be_v change_v then_o be_v take_v into_o advice_n many_o learned_a and_o moderate_a divine_n eliz._n divine_n camden_n hist_n of_o q._n eliz._n but_o even_o since_o our_o reformation_n there_o have_v be_v concession_n make_v in_o accommodation_n to_o dissenter_n our_o church_n still_o hold_v the_o mean_a between_z too_o much_o moroseness_n and_o too_o much_o easiness_n in_o admit_v variation_n lit._n variation_n pref._n to_o the_o lit._n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o popularity_n say_v calvin_n to_o farellus_n one_o when_o with_o ambition_n and_o lust_n to_o ingratiate_v ourselves_o we_o hawk_n after_o the_o popular_a air_n the_o other_o when_o by_o moderation_n and_o equity_n we_o endeavour_v to_o engage_v the_o affection_n of_o man_n only_o to_o render_v they_o more_o docible_a this_o latter_a practice_n belong_v to_o our_o church_n which_o have_v wise_o accommodate_v herself_o to_o all_o to_o gain_v quintil._n gain_v submittendo_fw-la nos_fw-la ad_fw-la mensuram_fw-la discentis_fw-la &_o manum_fw-la dando_fw-la &_o gradum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la minuendo_fw-la quintil._n some_o our_o church_n be_v of_o the_o temper_n of_o those_o who_o tully_n call_v courteous_a and_o sweet_a who_o gentle_o show_v those_o that_o err_v the_o way_n which_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a disposition_n different_a from_o what_o juvenal_n colenti_fw-la juvenal_n non_fw-la monstrare_fw-la vias_fw-la eadem_fw-la nisi_fw-la sacra_fw-la colenti_fw-la describe_v in_o the_o jew_n yea_o one_o of_o the_o great_a perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a practice_n which_o be_v a_o universal_a charity_n to_o all_o even_o enemy_n may_v be_v much_o promote_v by_o our_o church_n prayer_n where_o we_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n and_o for_o enemy_n and_o for_o persecutor_n and_o slanderer_n yea_o such_o be_v the_o charity_n of_o our_o church_n that_o in_o it_o every_o one_o be_v presume_v good_a and_o orderly_o and_o willing_a to_o be_v of_o her_o communion_n until_o it_o appear_v lawful_o to_o the_o contrary_n §_o 2._o whereas_o of_o the_o extreme_n of_o the_o separation_n on_o either_o hand_n from_o our_o church_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v how_o general_o they_o give_v out_o themselves_o as_o the_o only_a child_n of_o god_n church_n the_o only_o belove_v of_o god_n and_o scarce_o admit_v any_o else_o to_o have_v any_o portion_n with_o their_o saint_n nevertheless_o for_o such_o matter_n as_o they_o contend_v our_o church_n be_v not_o busy_a to_o send_v man_n present_o to_o hell_n pace_n hell_n quod_fw-la eo_fw-la consilio_fw-la invectum_fw-la ut_fw-la terror_fw-la mortis_fw-la credulos_fw-la in_o obsequium_fw-la trahant_fw-la d._n an._n sall._n votum_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_n with_o a_o anathema_n in_o their_o ear_n cry_v out_o against_o they_o go_v you_o curse_v yea_o very_o moderate_a she_o be_v in_o her_o judgement_n of_o the_o final_a condition_n of_o any_o without_o good_a and_o sufficient_a ground_n because_o of_o the_o unsearchableness_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n in_o his_o government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o particular_a man_n yet_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v not_o of_o such_o a_o latitude_n to_o hold_v that_o every_o man_n may_v be_v save_v by_o the_o law_n or_o sect_n which_o he_o profess_v so_o that_o he_o be_v diligent_a to_o frame_v his_o life_n according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n for_o holy_a scripture_n do_v set_v out_o unto_o we_o only_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n whereby_o man_n must_v be_v saved*_n 18._o 39_o articl_n 18._o wherefore_o in_o give_v account_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o such_o punishment_n as_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o divine_a law_n our_o church_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a any_o shall_v be_v wise_a than_o those_o law_n themselves_o and_o the_o divine_a revelation_n the_o church_n of_o england_n say_v archbishop_n laud_n be_v not_o such_o a_o shrew_n to_o her_o child_n as_o to_o deny_v her_o blessing_n or_o denounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o they_o if_o some_o peaceable_o dissent_v in_o some_o particular_n remote_a from_o the_o foundation_n 3._o foundation_n dissentio_fw-la de_fw-la minimis_fw-la &_o de_fw-la opinionibus_fw-la non_fw-la repugnat_fw-la paci_fw-la imperfectae_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o viâ_fw-la d._n tho._n 22._o q._n 29._o a._n 3._o §_o 3._o neither_o be_v our_o church_n so_o severe_a as_o to_o judge_n of_o all_o dei_fw-la all_o maximè_fw-la cum_fw-la sciat_fw-la eos_fw-la fac●re_fw-la quae_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la nostros_fw-la autem_fw-la negligere_fw-la quae_fw-la credunt_fw-la salvian_n de_fw-fr gub_n dei_fw-la erroneous_a person_n according_a to_o all_o the_o consequence_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o we_o presume_v in_o many_o case_n be_v beyond_o the_o comprehension_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o party_n so_o err_v much_o less_o be_v our_o church_n at_o any_o time_n busy_a to_o exulcerate_v the_o mind_n of_o any_o by_o attribute_v to_o they_o such_o consequence_n as_o their_o assertion_n will_v not_o bear_v §_o 4._o in_o refute_v the_o objection_n of_o a_o adverse_a party_n our_o church_n give_v a_o excellent_a example_n to_o her_o son_n to_o abstain_v from_o odious_a name_n most_o wholesome_a to_o this_o purpose_n be_v the_o injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o the_o knot_n of_o all_o christian_a 1559._o inj._n §._o 50._o 1559._o society_n which_o be_v charity_n be_v not_o loose_v the_o queen_n majesty_n straight_o command_v all_o her_o subject_n to_o forbear_v all_o vain_a contention_n and_o disputation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o not_o to_o use_v in_o despite_n or_o rebuke_v of_o any_o person_n these_o convitious_a word_n papist_n or_o heretic_n schismatic_a or_o sacramentary_a so_o king_n james_n say_v he_o will_v not_o have_v pulpit_n make_v pasquil_n court_n pasquil_n confer_v at_o hamp_n court_n and_o in_o his_o 1623._o his_o aug._n 4._o 1623._o letter_n to_o the_o archbishop_n require_v that_o no_o preacher_n of_o any_o denomination_n whatsoever_o presume_v to_o fall_v into_o indecent_a rail_n against_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n or_o puritan_n so_o in_o our_o subscription_n
of_o men._n §_o 1._o in_o that_o universal_a concord_n which_o our_o church_n have_v maintain_v with_o all_o so_o far_o as_o lawful_o and_o useful_o it_o may_v §_o 2._o her_o protest_v against_o unsufferable_a abuse_n well_o consist_v with_o her_o moderation_n and_o charity_n §_o 3._o our_o church_n leave_v other_o church_n to_o the_o use_n of_o their_o liberty_n and_o vindicate_v that_o use_n mutual_o §_o 4._o her_o especial_a moderation_n and_o charity_n towards_o the_o greek_a church_n §_o 5._o our_o church_n modesty_n and_o well-becoming_a behaviour_n towards_o other_o church_n and_o their_o mutual_a affection_n unto_o we_o §_o 1._o the_o excellent_a temper_n of_o our_o church_n be_v abundant_o justify_v in_o that_o universal_a concord_n and_o friendship_n it_o desire_v to_o maintain_v with_o all_o so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v do_v lawful_o our_o church_n separate_v indeed_o as_o far_o as_o be_v possible_a from_o all_o that_o be_v vile_a and_o impure_a make_v her_o self_n as_o be_v the_o church_n a_o society_n distinct_a from_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o by_o her_o censure_n do_v separate_v from_o those_o that_o be_v inordinate_a and_o in_o she_o own_o defence_n keep_v herself_o from_o comply_v with_o sinful_a and_o unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n yet_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o every_o part_n thereof_o to_o who_o her_o communion_n be_v not_o displease_v our_o church_n in_o desire_n and_o endeavour_v do_v maintain_v all_o inward_a and_o outward_a agreement_n she_o can_v juris_fw-la can_v odia_fw-la restringi_fw-la favores_fw-la convenit_fw-la ampliari_fw-la reg._n juris_fw-la in_o affection_n and_o behaviour_n also_o so_o approve_v herself_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a she_o unwilling_o differ_v from_o any_o and_o no_o more_o than_o needs_o must_v thus_o the_o 30_o canon_n of_o our_o church_n nay_o so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o forsake_v &_o reject_v the_o church_n of_o italy_n france_n spain_n germany_n or_o any_o suchlike_a church_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o they_o hold_v and_o practise_v that_o as_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n confess_v it_o do_v with_o reverence_n retain_v those_o ceremony_n which_o do_v neither_o endamage_v the_o church_n of_o god_n nor_o offend_v the_o mind_n of_o sober_a man_n and_o only_o depart_v from_o they_o in_o those_o point_n wherein_o they_o be_v fall_v both_o from_o themselves_o in_o their_o ancient_a integrity_n and_o from_o the_o apostolical_a church_n which_o be_v their_o first_o founder_n episcopal_a divine_n say_v bishop_n bramhall_n 30._o bramhall_n vindication_n p._n 30._o do_v not_o deny_v those_o to_o be_v true_a church_n where_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v §_o 2._o neither_o do_v our_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o yet_o oppose_v itself_o to_o any_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o yet_o be_v inseparable_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o schism_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a according_a to_o a_o singular_a moderation_n 4._o moderation_n ecclesia_fw-la britannica_fw-la quâ_fw-la est_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la christianos_n singulari_fw-la moderatione_n &_o christianâ_fw-la dilectiene_fw-fr etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr antiq._n lib._n eccl._n brit._n thes_n 4._o and_o charity_n it_o do_v open_v its_o bosom_n to_o every_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o what_o denomination_n soever_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o any_o to_o frame_v to_o themselves_o a_o diverse_a congregation_n and_o religion_n separate_v from_o and_o opposite_a to_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o ancient_o do_v the_o donatist_n and_o another_o thing_n not_o to_o communicate_v with_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o place_n in_o some_o unwarrantable_a usage_n and_o that_o under_o express_a protestation_n from_o whence_o be_v occasion_v the_o moderate_a and_o innocent_a title_n of_o protestant_n 1529._o protestant_n v._o cluverium_fw-la &_o calvisii_n chron._n ad_fw-la an._n 1529._o for_o protest_v against_o the_o edict_n at_o worm_n which_o be_v for_o restore_v all_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v without_o reformation_n by_o which_o protestation_n all_o scandal_n of_o schism_n be_v take_v away_o and_o desire_v of_o reconciliation_n be_v public_o testify_v not_o as_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n but_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o catholic_a unity_n by_o which_o protestation_n a_o right_n be_v vindicate_v from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o fond_o call_v herself_o not_o only_o catholic_a but_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n by_o which_o she_o make_v herself_o a_o public_a invader_n of_o common_a ecclesiastical_a right_n §_o 3._o in_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a freedom_n the_o church_n of_o england_n leave_v always_o other_o church_n to_o their_o liberty_n and_o vindicate_v their_o right_n to_o the_o same_o church_n same_o v._o d_o durell's_n view_v of_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o other_o reform_a church_n leave_v we_o to_o our_o liberty_n and_o vindicate_v the_o same_o article_n 34._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o tradition_n and_o ceremony_n be_v in_o all_o place_n one_o fast_v v._o homily_n of_o fast_v or_o utter_o like_a for_o at_o all_o time_n they_o have_v be_v diverse_a and_o may_v be_v change_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o country_n joan._n country_n distant_a inter_fw-la se_fw-la linguae_fw-la sed_fw-la linguarum_fw-la distantiae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la schismata_fw-la omnes_fw-la linguâ_fw-la ad_fw-la u●am_fw-la fidem_fw-la s._n aug._n in_o joan._n time_n and_o manner_n every_o particular_a national_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o ordain_v change_n and_o abolish_v ceremony_n or_o rite_n cerem_fw-la rite_n pref._n of_o of_o the_o church_n the_o cerem_fw-la in_o these_o our_o do_n we_o condemn_v no_o other_o nation_n nor_o prescribe_v any_o thing_n but_o to_o our_o own_o people_n only_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o s._n cyprian_n clear_v himself_o to_o the_o african_a bishop_n judge_v none_o nor_o remove_v any_o from_o the_o right_n of_o communion_n if_o they_o think_v somewhat_o diverse_a from_o we_o for_o which_o s._n austin_n 18._o austin_n cujus_fw-la charitas_fw-la non_fw-la sol●nt_fw-la illius_fw-la temporis_fw-la christianis_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la posteris_fw-la ad_fw-la medicinalem_fw-la notitiam_fw-la signatur_fw-la s._n aug._n the_o bapt_a l._n 1._o c._n 18._o commend_v s._n cyprian_n and_o as_o tully_n consul_n tully_n ita_fw-la dissensi_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o disjunctione_fw-la sententiae_fw-la conjuncti_fw-la tamen_fw-la amicitiâ_fw-la maneremus_fw-la orat._n pro_fw-la provinc_fw-la consul_n speak_v of_o himself_o with_o relation_n to_o caesar_n i_o so_o dissent_v from_o he_o that_o in_o the_o difference_n of_o our_o opinion_n however_o we_o remain_v entire_a in_o our_o friendship_n of_o this_o mind_n also_o be_v st._n austin_n in_o matter_n of_o different_a observance_n as_o to_o time_n of_o fast_v and_o day_n of_o communicate_v all_o this_o say_v he_o be_v matter_n of_o liberty_n and_o no_o practice_n be_v more_o worthy_a a_o grave_n and_o prudent_a christian_a than_o to_o act_v so_o as_o he_o see_v the_o church_n do_v unto_o which_o it_o happen_v he_o come_v and_o as_o the_o society_n do_v in_o which_o he_o live_v 86._o live_v s._n aug._n ep._n 118._o &_o ep._n 86._o and_o in_o these_o matter_n of_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n appoint_v nothing_o express_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o the_o institutes_n of_o our_o superior_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o law_n of_o which_o if_o we_o have_v a_o list_n to_o dispute_v and_o to_o disprove_v other_o for_o their_o different_a custom_n there_o will_v arise_v endless_a contest_v m._n amyrald_n 351._o amyrald_n galli_n anglorum_fw-la c●tibu●_n libentissimè_fw-la intersunt_fw-la &_o eucharistiam_fw-la ex_fw-la eorum_fw-la more_fw-it participant_fw-la &_o episcopis_fw-la seize_v subjiciunt_fw-la angli_fw-la pariter_fw-la etc._n etc._n amyraldi_n irenicum_fw-la p._n 351._o well_o observe_v the_o friendly_a moderation_n of_o the_o english_a and_o french_a protestant_n when_o they_o be_v in_o each_o other_o country_n they_o ready_o join_v themselves_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v in_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o abundant_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n that_o to_o merchant_n and_o stranger_n of_o other_o church_n be_v permitmit_v their_o several_a congregation_n and_o church_n and_o all_o alien_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v by_o act_n of_o uniformity_n a_o express_a provision_n make_v for_o their_o enjoyment_n of_o their_o own_o way_n of_o worship_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o majesty_n which_o be_v real_a proof_n that_o conformity_n do_v not_o prejudice_v trade_n 210._o trade_n v._o mod._n plea_n for_o comprehen_fw-ge answer_v p._n 210._o 24._o 210._o omnibus_fw-la notum_fw-la est_fw-la quàm_fw-la elementèr_fw-la patiantur_fw-la peregrinorum_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la ceremoniis_fw-la &_o ritibus_fw-la uti_fw-la diversis_fw-la ab_fw-la anglicanâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la saravia_n de_fw-fr div_o grad_v min._n c._n 24._o and_o this_o tender_a care_n of_o other_o church_n liberty_n which_o the_o church_n
of_o england_n with_o great_a moderation_n do_v profess_v other_o reform_a church_n general_o return_v to_o we_o which_o the_o 30_o canon_n refer_v to_o where_o it_o say_v this_o resolution_n and_o practice_n of_o our_o church_n namely_o not_o to_o forsake_v and_o reject_v other_o church_n only_o as_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o apostolical_a church_n particular_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n have_v be_v allow_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o censure_n on_o the_o common-prayer-book_n in_o king_n edw._n 6._o day_n and_o by_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n of_o late_a year_n and_o it_o be_v king_n james_n his_o advice_n to_o his_o divine_n to_o hold_v a_o good_a correspendence_n with_o the_o neighbour_n reform_a church_n but_o say_v the_o king_n curiosum_fw-la king_n v._o in_o apol._n ep._n lectori_fw-la non_fw-fr est_fw-fr mihi_fw-la ingenium_fw-la in_o alienâ_fw-la rep._n curiosum_fw-la i_o be_o resolve_v to_o leave_v other_o church_n to_o their_o liberty_n and_o so_o also_o k._n charles_n i._o henderson_n i._o his_o majesty_n three_o paper_n to_o mr._n henderson_n as_o i_o be_o no_o judge_n over_o the_o reform_a church_n so_o neither_o do_v i_o censure_v they_o §_o 4._o as_o a_o special_a note_n of_o our_o church_n moderation_n we_o must_v not_o forbear_v to_o instance_n her_o excellent_a behaviour_n and_o charity_n towards_o the_o afflict_a greek_a church_n to_o who_o as_o she_o have_v opportunity_n she_o have_v testify_v a_o great_a commiseration_n a_o most_o pious_a affection_n and_o a_o great_a esteem_n see_v the_o homily_n against_o the_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n wherein_o our_o church_n do_v frequent_o deplore_v the_o thraldom_n of_o the_o noble_a empire_n of_o greece_n to_o the_o turk_n i_o must_v needs_o profess_v say_v archbishop_n laud_n 93._o laud_n §_o 9_o p._n 26._o ut_fw-la videant_fw-la hi_o qui_fw-la facilè_fw-la de_fw-fr haeresi_fw-la pronuntiant_fw-la quàm_fw-la facilè_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsi_fw-la errent_fw-la &_o intelligant_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la tam_fw-la leviter_fw-la de_fw-la haeresi_fw-la pronuntiandum_fw-la alph._n à_fw-fr castro_n contr._n haer._n l._n 3._o f._n 93._o that_o i_o wish_v hearty_o as_o well_o as_o other_o that_o those_o distress_a man_n have_v be_v more_o moderate_o deal_v with_o though_o they_o think_v diverse_o from_o we_o than_o they_o have_v be_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n c._n bellarmine_n have_v deliver_v that_o three_o of_o their_o council_n have_v declare_v her_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n answer_n for_o herself_o if_o she_o can_v for_o her_o trample_n upon_o the_o poor_a greek_a church_n as_o she_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o brand_a she_o with_o heresy_n for_o her_o doctrine_n of_o procession_n as_o cruel_o as_o her_o turkish_a master_n burn_v their_o half_a moon_n on_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o they_o enslave_v but_o our_o church_n be_v not_o so_o uncharitable_a as_o to_o define_v it_o a_o heresy_n for_o any_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n though_o we_o maintain_v as_o great_a a_o truth_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n but_o this_o make_v no_o breach_n of_o communion_n among_o we_o the_o difference_n only_o arise_v from_o inadequation_n of_o language_n which_o notwithstanding_o we_o agree_v in_o the_o main_a of_o this_o article_n 7._o article_n animadversion_n on_o naked_a truth_n p._n 7._o such_o last_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o some_o of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v allow_v among_o we_o the_o celebrate_n holy_a mystery_n according_a to_o their_o own_o rite_n 41._o rite_n in_o unâ_fw-la fide_fw-la nihil_fw-la officit_fw-la sanctae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la diversa_fw-la greg._n 1._o ep._n 41._o §_o 5._o other_o church_n have_v not_o be_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n despise_v if_o in_o sundry_a instance_n they_o have_v not_o arrive_v unto_o her_o perfection_n in_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o order_n of_o discipline_n with_o other_o church_n she_o do_v not_o contend_v for_o title_n or_o understanding_n of_o mystery_n nor_o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n nor_o call_v herself_o in_o distinction_n from_o other_o true_a church_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o of_o old_a the_o arian_n do_v last_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o church_n never_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o infallibility_n although_o our_o church_n of_o england_n have_v have_v the_o peculiar_a happiness_n of_o a_o monarchical_a reformation_n and_o retain_v the_o blessing_n of_o episcopal_a government_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n she_o impute_v the_o want_n of_o the_o same_o in_o other_o reform_a church_n not_o so_o much_o to_o any_o fault_n of_o those_o church_n themselves_o but_o rather_o attribute_n it_o to_o the_o injury_n of_o the_o time_n saravia_n time_n non_fw-la culpâ_fw-la vestrâ_fw-la abesse_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la sed_fw-la injuria_fw-la temporum_fw-la ep._n winton_n ep._n 3._o molinaeo_n eos_n coegerit_fw-la dura_fw-la necessitas_fw-la saravia_n our_o church_n also_o thankful_o commemorate_v those_o acknowledgement_n which_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v frequent_o make_v of_o our_o moderation_n and_o happy_a constitution_n and_o although_o we_o remember_v when_o it_o be_v common_o object_v to_o we_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o take_v our_o conformity_n to_o be_v a_o sin_n sure_a the_o useful_a labour_n of_o d._n jo._n durell_n have_v for_o ever_o silence_v that_o vain_a reproach_n who_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o plain_a and_o open_a testimony_n have_v now_o long_o since_o 1662._o since_o 1662._o illustrate_v the_o conformity_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o to_o our_o church_n of_o england_n in_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n subordination_n of_o pastor_n use_v of_o set_a form_n and_o liturgy_n holiday_n set_v time_n of_o fast_v magnificent_a church_n organ_n surplice_n church-ornament_n cross_n in_o baptism_n receive_v the_o communion_n kneel_v etc._n etc._n who_o have_v also_o prove_v by_o testimony_n the_o practice_n of_o those_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n join_v with_o we_o in_o our_o public_a worship_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o their_o pastor_n either_o when_o they_o come_v over_o into_o england_n or_o in_o such_o of_o our_o congregation_n as_o be_v in_o their_o country_n if_o it_o happen_v that_o any_o member_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n speak_v against_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n he_o be_v censure_v for_o it_o by_o their_o synod_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o blame_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v and_o hold_v they_o for_o schismatic_n and_o be_v scandalize_v at_o they_o those_o few_o reform_a church_n which_o want_v subordination_n of_o minister_n approve_v the_o episcopacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n bo●t_fw-la england_n certu●_n est_fw-la mihi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d anglicanam_n item_n morem_fw-la imponendi_fw-la adolescentibus_fw-la in_o memoriam_fw-la baptismi_fw-la a●toritatem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la presbyteria_fw-la ex_fw-la sole_n pastoribus_fw-la comp●si●a_fw-la mul●àque_fw-la alia_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la satis_fw-la congruere_fw-la institutis_fw-la ve●ust●oris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la à_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o gallià_fw-la &_o belgio_fw-la recessum_fw-la negare_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la grotius_n e●_n ad_fw-la bo●t_fw-la and_o wish_v they_o have_v the_o same_o and_o will_v esteem_v it_o a_o singular_a felicity_n all_o which_o show_v the_o amity_n and_o good_a correspondence_n and_o concord_n that_o be_v between_o our_o church_n of_o england_n and_o other_o protestant_a church_n and_o also_o justify_v exceed_o the_o excellent_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n indeed_o our_o church_n of_o england_n deserve_v better_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a both_o for_o her_o catholic_a charity_n and_o especial_o for_o that_o she_o maintain_v her_o communion_n upon_o the_o foundation_n and_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n both_o with_o the_o western_a and_o eastern_a church_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n excommunicate_v from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n limit_v the_o church_n to_o rome_n and_o such_o place_n as_o depend_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o donatist_n do_v of_o old_a to_o afric_n separate_n herself_o also_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o graecia_n russia_n armenia_n and_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n much_o great_a be_v her_o schism_n for_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o fellow-member_n with_o other_o church_n in_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o challenge_v to_o be_v the_o head_n the_o root_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o other_o church_n 990._o church_n bishop_n bramhals_n work_v p._n 990._o 145_o 990._o necessity_n of_o reformation_n p._n 145_o yet_o because_o they_o still_o keep_v to_o the_o main_a fundamental_o we_o do_v not_o exclude_v they_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o by_o their_o hard_a and_o rigid_a censure_n and_o excommunication_n of_o we_o
and_o other_o that_o do_v not_o hold_v with_o they_o they_o do_v very_o much_o hazard_v their_o right_n and_o title_n to_o the_o say_a catholic_a church_n as_o much_o as_o by_o any_o thing_n chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o reformation_n §_o 1._o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n as_o it_o have_v just_a ground_n and_o be_v by_o just_a authority_n so_o it_o be_v manage_v with_o due_a moderation_n the_o idea_n of_o our_o reformation_n have_v be_v impartial_a §_o 2._o the_o whole_a manner_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v our_o church_n be_v with_o great_a temper_n §_o 3._o she_z separated_z from_o the_o romish_a error_n not_o from_o their_o person_n any_o more_o than_o needs_o must_v §_o 4._o our_o charity_n exceed_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o deny_v salvation_n to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n §_o 5._o the_o preparation_n of_o our_o church_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n universal_a save_v we_o from_o schism_n §_o 6._o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v the_o more_o christian_n because_o not_o fierce_a but_o well_o govern_v §_o 7._o albeit_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n seem_v to_o have_v enrage_v her_o adversary_n yet_o because_o of_o this_o moderation_n our_o church_n be_v the_o better_o prepare_v to_o survive_v persecution_n §_o 8._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o reformation_n be_v found_v on_o rule_n of_o absolute_a justice_n as_o in_o sundry_a great_a instance_n be_v make_v to_o appear_v §_o 1._o the_o moderate_a and_o orderly_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n bishop_n bramhall_n well_o call_v the_o terror_n and_o eyesore_a of_o rome_n 244._o rome_n answer_v to_o the_o bp._n of_o chalcedon_n p._n 244._o because_o of_o 3_o condition_n of_o a_o lawful_a reformation_n well_o agree_v thereto_o viz._n just_a ground_n sufficient_a authority_n due_a moderation_n 1._o just_a ground_n under_o which_o head_n i_o shall_v not_o take_v too_o large_a a_o compass_n to_o illustrate_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o reformation_n either_o from_o the_o manifold_a usurpation_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n nor_o from_o the_o invidious_a task_n of_o look_v into_o the_o extreme_a rigour_n of_o any_o other_o model_n of_o reformation_n neither_o be_v it_o here_o necessary_a to_o reflect_v more_o particular_o on_o matter_n of_o fact_n historical_o relate_v hereunto_o which_o have_v be_v copious_o set_v forth_o by_o a_o multitude_n of_o writer_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a which_o abundant_o justify_v this_o reformation_n both_o in_o its_o cause_n and_o proceed_n clear_o manifest_v how_o this_o church_n be_v justify_v therein_o from_o the_o unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n peremptory_o insist_v upon_o 2._o that_o it_o may_v have_v just_a authority_n the_o say_a reformation_n be_v manage_v by_o the_o guide_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o supreme_a authority_n and_o so_o in_o every_o particular_a be_v as_o legal_a as_o any_o reformation_n can_v or_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o do_v sufficient_o appear_v from_o matter_n of_o fact_n recount_v in_o the_o history_n and_o monument_n thereof_o wherein_o the_o prince_n act_v their_o part_n and_o the_o clergy_n they_o they_o call_v together_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o consider_v of_o what_o may_v seem_v worthy_a reformation_n and_o the_o clergy_n do_v their_o part_n for_o be_v call_v together_o by_o regal_a power_n they_o meet_v in_o a_o national_a synod_n of_o 62_o and_o the_o article_n be_v agree_v on_o and_o be_v afterward_o confirm_v by_o act_n of_o state_n and_o royal_a assent_n 24._o assent_n archbp_a laud_n §._o 24._o any_o reformation_n otherwise_o than_o regular_n be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o church_n as_o any_o one_o can_v wish_v and_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o homily_n be_v well_o regard_v it_o may_v have_v prevent_v much_o mischief_n consequent_a on_o late_a reformation_n lest_o any_o person_n upon_o colour_n of_o destroy_a image_n make_v any_o stir_n or_o disturbance_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n it_o must_v always_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o redress_n of_o such_o public_a enormity_n pertain_v to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o authority_n and_o not_o to_o private_a person_n in_o the_o homily_n against_o wilful_a rebellion_n be_v set_v forth_o at_o large_a the_o sufficient_a reason_n of_o our_o church_n reformation_n viz._n the_o intolerable_a usurpation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n per._n purpose_n angli_fw-la necessitate_v dirâ_fw-la cogente_fw-la secessionem_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la casaub_n ad_fw-la c._n per._n the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v express_v itself_o more_o large_o than_o need_v be_v repeat_v we_o do_v nothing_o rash_o or_o insolent_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o any_o worldly_a pleasure_n or_o advantage_n but_o upon_o great_a advice_n and_o deliberation_n we_o shake_v off_o a_o yoke_n which_o we_o have_v no_o obligation_n to_o endure_v etc._n endure_v postermò_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la decessimus_fw-la cvi_fw-la obstrecti_fw-la non_fw-la eramus_fw-la ejusque_fw-la jugum_fw-la ac_fw-la tyrannidem_fw-la excussimus_fw-la apol._n eccl._n angl._n §._o 150_o 159_o 160_o etc._n etc._n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v but_o behave_v herself_o as_o become_v a_o free_a church_n enjoy_v the_o right_n of_o a_o patriarchal_a see_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o reform_v itself_o when_o it_o have_v high_a need_n for_o as_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o say_v in_o his_o last_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n better_a be_v it_o in_o the_o middle_a way_n to_o return_v than_o always_o to_o run_v forth_o headlong_o and_o do_v ill_a 3._o the_o due_a moderation_n of_o our_o reformation_n will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v 1._o the_o idea_n or_o form_n of_o our_o reformatation_n be_v neither_o take_v from_o luther_n nor_o calvin_n as_o the_o romanist_n love_v to_o speak_v of_o we_o 11._o we_o impia_fw-la mysteria_fw-la &_o instituta_fw-la ad_fw-la cal●ini_fw-la praescriptum_fw-la bulla_n pii_fw-la 5._o contra_fw-la r._n elizab._n calvinicas_fw-la aliquot_fw-la deprecationes_fw-la substituit_fw-la de_fw-fr schism_n angl._n p._n 165._o in_o illis_fw-la angliae_fw-la legi●us_fw-la quae_fw-la alios_fw-la actus_fw-la sacrilegos_fw-la ut_fw-la participationem_fw-la calvinianae_fw-la coenae_fw-la &_o simile_n communicationes_n in_o eorum_fw-la ritibus_fw-la praecipiunt_fw-la suraii_n def._n l._n 6._o c._n 11._o nor_o from_o any_o other_o but_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v only_o its_o measure_n according_a to_o which_o our_o church_n practise_v the_o part_n of_o the_o elective_a philosopher_n and_o choose_v what_o she_o think_v most_o agreeable_a among_o the_o rest_n she_o seem_v to_o come_v near_a the_o augustan_n confession_n and_o the_o consultation_n of_o herman_n archbishop_n of_o colon_n which_o be_v also_o set_v forth_o in_o english_a 1548._o among_o other_o that_o have_v reform_v their_o church_n i_o have_v often_o say_v saravia_n admire_v the_o wisdom_n of_o those_o who_o restore_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o so_o temper_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v be_v reprove_v for_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o ancient_n and_o primitive_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o moderation_n they_o have_v use_v that_o by_o their_o example_n they_o have_v invite_v other_o to_o reform_v and_o deter_v none_o praef._n none_o sarav_fw-mi desin_n praef._n 6._o praef._n ea_fw-la omne_fw-la sublata_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la nimium_fw-la onerosa_fw-la &_o operosa_fw-la sunt_fw-la lud_n capel_n inter_fw-la thes_n salmur_n 6._o between_o those_o who_o be_v loath_a to_o bid_v adieu_o to_o their_o ceremony_n and_o other_o who_o reformation_n have_v no_o bound_n our_o godly_a reformer_n compile_v the_o excellent_a model_n of_o our_o liturgy_n in_o so_o moderate_a and_o well-tempered_a a_o mode_n as_o neither_o part_n have_v 1._o alliance_n of_o d._n off_o c._n 1._o just_a cause_n to_o think_v themselves_o aggrieve_v †_o so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n appear_v faithful_o to_o have_v practise_v the_o same_o counsel_n which_o p._n gregory_n the_o great_a give_v unto_o austin_n the_o monk_n when_o he_o be_v send_v over_o into_o england_n from_o all_o church_n choose_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v pious_a and_o religious_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v right_o and_o be_v gather_v into_o one_o bundle_n commend_v they_o to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o english_a for_o their_o use_n 7._o use_n b._n greg._n epistol_n ex_fw-la registro_fw-la l._n 12._o indic_n 7._o for_o have_v lay_v their_o ground_n that_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n artic._n 6._o they_o do_v upon_o that_o 13._o that_o huic_fw-la basi_fw-la reformationem_fw-la britannicam_fw-la niti_fw-la
voluerit_fw-la ut_fw-la scripture_n primae_fw-la deinde_fw-la primorum_fw-la soeculorum_fw-la episcopis_fw-la mart●ribus_fw-la scriptoribus_fw-la ecclesiasti●is_fw-la secundae_fw-la deferrentur_fw-la dissert_n count_v blondel_n c._n 14._o §_o 13._o basis_n establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n 9_o creed_n v._o hist_n of_o reform_v l._n 3._o p._n 218._o twisden_n hist_o vind._n c._n 9_o and_o that_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n pardon_n worship_v and_o adoration_n of_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o warrant_v by_o scripture_n artic._n 22._o and_o then_o proceed_v to_o settle_v such_o other_o thing_n as_o be_v of_o positive_a right_n with_o so_o just_a a_o moderation_n as_o be_v hardly_o elsewhere_o to_o be_v find_v change_v nothing_o for_o the_o general_a but_o where_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o own_o ancestor_n do_v justify_v their_o do_n without_o at_o all_o extend_v themselves_o to_o any_o thing_n where_o they_o have_v not_o antiquity_n their_o warrant_n pref._n warrant_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la i_o conjectura_fw-la non_fw-la fallit_fw-la totius_fw-la reformationis_fw-la pars_fw-la integerrima_fw-la est_fw-la in_o angliâ_fw-la ubi_fw-la cum_fw-la study_v veritatis_fw-la viget_fw-la studium_fw-la antiquitatis_fw-la if_o casaub_n ep_v ad_fw-la salmas_n anglicanam_fw-la intelligo_fw-la omnium_fw-la reformatorum_fw-la reformatissimam_fw-la forbes_n consid_fw-la mod●st_n pref._n can_v we_o choose_v say_v bishop_n hall_n but_o observe_v the_o blessing_n of_o monarchical_a reformation_n among_o we_o beyond_o that_o popular_a and_o tumultuous_a reformation_n among_o our_o neighbour_n we_o a_o counsel_n there_o be_v a_o vproar_n we_o beginning_n from_o the_o head_n there_o be_v from_o the_o foot_n we_o proceed_n in_o due_a order_n they_o with_o confusion_n we_o countenance_v and_o encourage_v the_o convert_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o extreme_o overawe_v with_o averse_a power_n or_o total_o overbear_v with_o foul_a sacrilege_n in_o a_o word_n we_o yield_v what_o the_o true_a and_o happy_a condition_n of_o a_o church_n require_v there_o be_v hand-over-head_n take_v what_o they_o can_v get_v for_o the_o present_a 21._o present_a of_o episcopacy_n §._o 5._o p._n 21._o §_o 2._o the_o manner_n of_o our_o reformation_n be_v such_o as_o may_v reasonable_o both_o justify_v our_o church_n and_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o inexcusable_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n our_o church_n condemn_v those_o she_o leave_v no_o more_o than_o needs_o must_v and_o as_o dr._n more_o say_v court_v the_o adverse_a party_n to_o all_o lawful_a accommodation_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n she_o may_v gain_v some_o attemper_v herself_o to_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o time_n part_n time_n homily_n for_o rogation_n w._n 3._o part_n as_o our_o church_n phrase_n be_v in_o her_o homily_n 183._o homily_n v._o cromwell_n letter_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n direct_v he_o how_o to_o proceed_v in_o the_o reformation_n collect._n of_o record_n hist_o of_o ref._n l._n 3._o p._n 183._o from_o whence_o be_v manifest_v our_o church_n freedom_n from_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o the_o humour_n of_o innovation_n or_o the_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n our_o church_n not_o divide_v but_o upon_o necessity_n and_o then_o use_v all_o lawful_a and_o good_a mean_n to_o procure_v such_o a_o agreement_n only_o as_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o good_a conscience_n of_o her_o people_n wherefore_o that_o the_o breach_n may_v seem_v no_o great_a than_o indeed_o it_o be_v and_o that_o all_o probable_a pretence_n of_o offence_n as_o they_o call_v it_o may_v be_v take_v away_o be_v omit_v that_o suffrage_n in_o the_o litany_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o his_o detestible_a enormity_n good_a lord_n deliver_v we_o which_o moderation_n in_o our_o church_n and_o in_o other_o reform_a church_n the_o like_a 180._o like_a v._o d._n durell_n view_n of_o ref._n ch._n p._n 180._o have_v leave_v the_o romanist_n the_o more_o inexcusable_a in_o their_o dissent_n especial_o since_o as_o camden_n and_o other_o relate_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n for_o about_o ten_o year_n for_o at_o least_o eighteen_o year_n say_v the_o lord_n cook_n few_o of_o the_o popish_a recusant_n absent_v themselves_o from_o our_o church_n till_o pope_n pius_n the_o 5_o by_o his_o interdictory_n bull_n will_v have_v all_o communion_n with_o we_o renounce_v for_o as_o long_o as_o schismatic_n be_v not_o harden_v into_o obstinacy_n there_o be_v a_o prudential_a latitude_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n delay_v her_o censure_n as_o long_o as_o possible_o she_o can_v without_o wrong_v her_o government_n as_o be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la practise_v in_o england_n till_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n 396._o elizabeth_n schism_n guard_v p._n 396._o and_o admit_v that_o p._n paul_n 4._o in_o his_o private_a letter_n to_o q._n elizabeth_n do_v offer_v to_o confirm_v our_o liturgy_n if_o she_o will_v acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n and_o the_o reformation_n derive_v from_o he_o and_o that_o the_o same_o proposal_n be_v confirm_v by_o his_o successor_n pius_n 4._o though_o it_o have_v cause_v sundry_a ignorant_a and_o peevish_a complaint_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o imputation_n to_o we_o since_o our_o reformation_n bless_a be_v god_n be_v so_o good_a and_o justifiable_a insomuch_o that_o the_o presbyterian_a brethren_n acknowledge_v 3._o acknowledge_v grand_fw-fr debate_n p._n 3._o our_o first_o reformer_n in_o great_a wisdom_n do_v at_o that_o time_n so_o compose_v the_o liturgy_n as_o to_o win_v upon_o the_o papist_n what_o be_v reform_v and_o compose_v in_o such_o great_a wisdom_n then_o be_v the_o same_o still_o the_o inference_n therefore_o which_o may_v be_v make_v be_v what_o bishop_n davenant_n resolve_v the_o papist_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o english_a divine_a service_n because_o nothing_o occur_v therein_o that_o can_v be_v by_o themselves_o reprove_v and_o if_o papist_n much_o more_o protestant_n and_o we_o rather_o suppose_v it_o the_o great_a glory_n and_o excellent_a commendation_n of_o our_o reformation_n that_o it_o be_v at_o once_o so_o complete_a and_o also_o so_o moderate_a consider_v how_o difficult_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v especial_o in_o matter_n of_o reform_v to_o pare_v off_o the_o excess_n and_o not_o to_o cut_v to_o the_o quick_a to_o stay_v at_o the_o right_a point_n and_o not_o overdo_v because_o of_o the_o lyableness_n in_o such_o case_n in_o decline_v one_o extreme_a to_o fall_v into_o another_o basil_n another_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n basil_n which_o usual_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o unwise_a and_o the_o inconsiderate_a for_o as_o the_o matter_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o our_o utmost_a zeal_n be_v require_v be_v unquestionable_o evident_a to_o every_o christian_a man_n notice_n so_o the_o case_n in_o which_o moderation_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v be_v almost_o infinite_a and_o often_o very_o intricate_a wherefore_o the_o use_n of_o this_o virtue_n be_v so_o universal_a that_o as_o the_o true_a fortitude_n be_v govern_v by_o temperance_n so_o where_o there_o be_v most_o moderation_n there_o be_v the_o true_a zeal_n and_o which_o be_v a_o better_a effect_n than_o usual_o be_v of_o sudden_a calenture_n by_o moderation_n the_o mind_n be_v best_a prepare_v to_o find_v out_o and_o determine_v those_o proportion_n and_o measure_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o right_a conduct_n of_o ourselves_o and_o other_o in_o our_o moral_n and_o religious_a concern_v such_o operation_n suppose_v also_o a_o peculiar_a power_n and_o ability_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o a_o most_o excellent_a prudence_n wherefore_o the_o wise_a king_n say_v a_o man_n of_o understanding_n be_v of_o a_o excellent_a spirit_n prov._n 17._o 27._o where_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n be_v observe_v to_o signify_v also_o a_o cool_a spirit_n or_o temper_n that_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a disposition_n to_o wisdom_n thus_o in_o the_o life_n of_o pomponius_n atticus_n it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o his_o moderation_n give_v he_o great_a security_n in_o troublesome_a time_n procure_v he_o friend_n keep_v he_o considerate_a and_o circumspect_a in_o all_o he_o do_v that_o he_o never_o over-shot_a himself_o with_o folly_n passion_n and_o precipitancy_n in_o word_n and_o action_n the_o like_a virtue_n have_v be_v the_o great_a happiness_n of_o our_o church_n of_o england_n especial_o conspicuous_a in_o her_o first_o reformation_n and_o thus_o according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n our_o church_n do_v express_v itself_o and_o for_o this_o ought_v we_o great_o to_o praise_n god_n for_o that_o such_o superstitious_a and_o idolatrous_a manner_n as_o be_v utter_o nought_o and_o deface_v god_n glory_n be_v utter_o abolish_v as_o they_o most_o just_o deserve_v and_o yet_o those_o thing_n that_o either_o god_n be_v honour_v with_o or_o his_o people_n edify_v by_o be_v decent_o retain_v and_o in_o our_o church_n comely_a practise_v part._n practise_v
homily_n of_o place_n and_o time_n of_o prayer_n 2_o part._n and_o certain_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o charity_n stir_v among_o they_o the_o romanist_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v they_o will_v love_v and_o honour_v we_o for_o the_o resemblance_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n the_o beauty_n of_o which_o they_o so_o much_o admire_v christian_n admire_v mr._n hales_n sermon_n of_o err_v christian_n §_o 3._o it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o church_n have_v separate_v from_o their_o error_n and_o not_o from_o their_o person_n temp_n person_n noli_fw-la propter_fw-la hominem_fw-la diligere_fw-la vitia_fw-la nec_fw-la propter_fw-la vitium_fw-la odisse_fw-la homines_fw-la s._n aug._n serm._n de_fw-fr temp_n any_o more_o than_o needs_o must_v such_o error_n i_o mean_v the_o belief_n of_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o consideration_n of_o which_o mr._n hales_n in_o his_o sermon_n of_o deal_n with_o err_v christian_n say_v he_o may_v not_o pass_v by_o that_o singular_a moderation_n of_o this_o church_n of_o we_o which_o she_o have_v most_o christian_o express_v towards_o her_o adversary_n of_o rome_n here_o at_o home_n in_o her_o bosom_n above_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n i_o have_v read_v of_o and_o so_o forth_o at_o large_a in_o which_o communication_n what_o if_o the_o protestant_n call_v the_o romanist_n sometime_o catholic_o because_o they_o call_v themselves_o so_o for_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n these_o gentleman_n do_v herein_o like_o prince_n who_o always_o retain_v the_o title_n to_o country_n which_o they_o have_v lose_v several_a age_n pass_v since_o our_o saviour_n call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n builder_n upon_o the_o same_o reason_n when_o he_o say_v the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n refuse_v s._n matth._n 21._o 42._o §_o 4._o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o those_o of_o our_o communion_n we_o think_v not_o ourselves_o oblige_v to_o deny_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o such_o as_o be_v sincere_a and_o otherwise_o good_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v so_o uncharitable_a to_o deny_v heaven_n to_o any_o of_o we_o who_o hold_v steadfast_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o which_o we_o be_v account_v no_o other_o than_o damn_v heretic_n and_o therefore_o once_o a_o year_n every_o maunday_n thursday_n the_o pope_n curse_v all_o who_o he_o have_v denounce_v heretic_n and_o that_o his_o christianity_n therein_o may_v be_v the_o more_o know_v the_o form_n by_o which_o we_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o so_o justin_n martyr_n tell_v we_o the_o jew_n tryph._n jew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n use_v to_o curse_v in_o their_o synagogue_n all_o christian_n yea_o the_o very_a from_o of_o the_o bishop_n oath_n at_o their_o consecration_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n oblige_v they_o express_o to_o persecute_v who_o they_o account_v heretic_n etc._n heretic_n haereticos_fw-la schismaticos_fw-la &_o rebel_n eidem_fw-la domino_fw-la nostro_fw-la vel_fw-la successoribus_fw-la praedictis_fw-la proposse_v persequar_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v there_o nothing_o else_o object_v to_o papist_n but_o this_o one_o thing_n their_o uncharitable_a proscribe_v and_o excommunicate_v all_o christian_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n who_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n and_o oblige_v all_o that_o adhere_v unto_o they_o to_o profess_v the_o same_o i_o shall_v think_v that_o one_o thing_n a_o just_a ground_n of_o separation_n or_o forsake_v of_o their_o communion_n 142._o communion_n casaubon_n necess_n of_o reformation_n p._n 142._o nevertheless_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o pray_v most_o solemn_o for_o all_o that_o persecute_v and_o slander_v we_o yea_o for_o all_o that_o have_v tryph._n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d just_a mart._n dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n err_v and_o be_v deceive_v that_o they_o may_v be_v lead_v into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n she_o do_v not_o in_o the_o good_a friday_n prayer_n join_v the_o papist_n with_o jew_n turk_n infidel_n and_o heretic_n but_o pray_v for_o the_o whole_a family_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o estate_n of_o god_n church_n every_o where_o and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v one_o fold_n under_o one_o shepherd_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o although_o the_o romanist_n say_v we_o can_v be_v save_v we_o protestant_n say_v they_o may_v for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o possibility_n of_o their_o repentance_n or_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o from_o thence_o to_o argue_v that_o they_o be_v the_o safe_a religion_n be_v so_o slight_a a_o argument_n draw_v only_o from_o the_o great_a want_n of_o charity_n in_o they_o that_o i_o wonder_v so_o many_o of_o our_o protestant_a writer_n of_o great_a name_n do_v it_o so_o much_o honour_n to_o answer_v it_o but_o only_o that_o the_o slight_a argument_n prevail_v most_o with_o those_o that_o use_v most_o slight_a consideration_n §_o 5._o that_o which_o save_v we_o from_o all_o danger_n of_o schism_n be_v we_o profess_v such_o a_o preparation_n of_o mind_n always_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v whatever_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n believe_v and_o judge_v requisite_a to_o be_v do_v by_o christian_a man_n as_o king_n james_n answer_v for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o she_o have_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o she_o honour_v and_o embrace_v neither_o have_v she_o divide_v so_o much_o as_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o that_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a church_n thus_o the_o moderate_a and_o peaceable_a bishop_n hall_n struthers_n hall_n remain_v p._n 309._o ep._n to_o mr._n struthers_n profess_v that_o since_o for_o order-sake_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o western_a church_n we_o never_o depart_v one_o inch_n from_o the_o roman_a save_v where_o she_o be_v perfidious_o go_v from_o god_n and_o herself_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o all_o sober_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v profess_v as_o zanchy_a 89._o zanchy_a zanch._n confess_v art_n 89._o do_v like_o a_o true_a reform_a catholic_n we_o have_v not_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n simple_o in_o all_o thing_n but_o in_o those_o thing_n only_o in_o which_o it_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o indeed_o from_o itself_o as_o it_o be_v ancient_a and_o pure_a neither_o have_v we_o depart_v with_o any_o other_o purpose_n than_o if_o she_o will_v return_v amend_v to_o its_o primitive_a form_n we_o also_o will_v return_v to_o she_o that_o we_o may_v have_v communion_n with_o she_o in_o her_o assembly_n which_o that_o once_o it_o may_v be_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n we_o beseech_v christ_n jesus_n i_o hierom_n zanchy_a age_v 70_o year_n with_o all_o my_o family_n have_v this_o testify_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o all_o eternity_n for_o we_o leave_v they_o as_o one_o shall_v leave_v his_o father_n house_n when_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o a_o hearty_a desire_n to_o return_v again_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v cleanse_v which_o charity_n be_v a_o great_a proof_n 399._o schism_n guard_v fol._n p._n 399._o of_o our_o moderation*_n unto_o which_o i_o add_v the_o reverend_a hooker_n word_n 1._o word_n eccl._n pol._n l._n 3._o §._o 1._o with_o rome_n we_o do_v not_o communicate_v concern_v sundry_a her_o gross_a and_o grievous_a abomination_n yet_o touch_v those_o main_a part_n of_o christian_a truth_n wherein_o they_o constant_o still_o persist_v we_o glad_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o our_o hearty_a prayer_n to_o almighty_a god_n be_v that_o be_v conjoin_v so_o far_o forth_o with_o they_o they_o may_v at_o length_n if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n so_o yield_v and_o reform_v themselves_o that_o no_o distraction_n remain_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o that_o we_o may_v all_o with_o one_o heart_n and_o voice_n glorify_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o church_n we_o be_v hear_v we_o once_o more_o king_n james_n 1603._o james_n s●ow's_n chron._n p._n 84._o anno_fw-la 1603._o i_o can_v wish_v from_o my_o heart_n it_o will_v please_v god_n to_o make_v i_o one_o of_o the_o member_n of_o such_o a_o general_a christian_a union_n in_o religion_n as_o lay_v wilfulness_n aside_o on_o both_o hand_n we_o may_v meet_v in_o the_o midst_n which_o be_v the_o centre_n and_o perfection_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o if_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v leave_v and_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o new_a and_o gross_a corruption_n of_o they_o as_o they_o themselves_o can_v maintain_v nor_o deny_v to_o be_v worthy_a reformation_n i_o will_v for_o
as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o liturgy_n concern_v ceremony_n wherein_o our_o church_n give_v account_v why_o some_o ceremony_n be_v put_v away_o namely_o because_o so_o far_o abuse_v by_o the_o superstition_n of_o some_o and_o avarice_n of_o other_o other_o be_v retain_v which_o our_o church_n judge_v be_v not_o like_a in_o time_n to_o come_v to_o be_v abuse_v as_o the_o other_o have_v be_v ceremony_n be_v preface_n concern_v ceremony_n and_o as_o our_o 30_o canon_n have_v it_o the_o abuse_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o it_o wherefore_o the_o design_n of_o our_o church_n in_o its_o excellent_a reformation_n be_v sincere_o to_o remove_v what_o do_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n tend_v to_o corruption_n and_o to_o retain_v what_o may_v be_v useful_a when_o correct_v and_o reform_v from_o the_o abuse_n thus_o zanchy_a do_v lay_v down_o the_o true_a way_n of_o reform_v be_v not_o to_o root_v out_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o reject_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v reject_v and_o to_o preserve_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v preserve_v 7._o the_o same_o justice_n govern_v our_o moderation_n show_v itself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n also_o not_o deny_v what_o be_v true_a of_o she_o that_o she_o profess_v a_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o three_o creed_n which_o she_o receive_v and_o profess_v to_o own_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o hold_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n many_o thing_n in_o order_n and_o government_n she_o have_v very_o excellent_a and_o likewise_o in_o some_o of_o their_o devotion_n but_o how_o much_o she_o have_v in_o her_o superfluous_a additional_n build_v upon_o good_a foundation_n gold_n silver_n hay_o stubble_n and_o the_o like_a be_v no_o where_n better_o distinguish_v than_o in_o what_o our_o church_n of_o england_n have_v reject_v and_o in_o what_o she_o have_v retain_v and_o how_o far_o the_o peculiar_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v contradict_v the_o other_o part_n of_o what_o they_o retain_v in_o common_a with_o we_o and_o tend_v to_o destroy_v the_o same_o have_v be_v frequent_o also_o show_v in_o such_o write_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o our_o church_n a_o signal_n instance_n of_o this_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n of_o england_n be_v 1603._o be_v v._o canon_n 30._o 1603._o it_o never_o deny_v that_o a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o romish_a communion_n however_o corrupt_v and_o unsound_a which_o moderation_n the_o learned_a mede_n 77._o mede_n mede_n ep._n 77._o have_v note_v peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n namely_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n much_o more_o the_o greek_a church_n err_v not_o in_o the_o article_n we_o account_v fundamental_a because_o explicit_o they_o profess_v they_o however_o in_o their_o assumenta_fw-la they_o implicit_o and_o by_o consequent_a subvert_v they_o for_o which_o as_o bishop_n bramhal_o say_v 364._o say_v answer_v to_o bishop_n of_o chalc._n p._n 364._o our_o charity_n free_v we_o from_o schism_n but_o a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o foundation_n may_v gross_o and_o dangerous_o err_v in_o their_o exposition_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 320._o rome_n archb_a laud_v against_o fisher_n p._n 320._o yet_o we_o do_v not_o declare_v that_o we_o have_v any_o new_a faith_n or_o new_a religion_n but_o the_o same_o only_o necessary_o and_o well_o reform_v from_o those_o superfluous_a addition_n and_o luxuriance_n which_o may_v have_v endanger_v our_o religion_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v correct_v which_o be_v perform_v wise_o in_o our_o reformation_n without_o destroy_v all_o root_n and_o branch_n namely_o by_o reserve_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v good_a and_o only_o lop_n off_o such_o excrescency_n as_o might_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v spare_v and_o in_o our_o censure_n of_o they_o our_o church_n do_v wise_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v appoint_v of_o sincere_a intention_n at_o first_o and_o what_o have_v be_v since_o of_o manifest_a corruption_n neither_o be_v we_o altogether_o ignorant_a when_o most_o of_o those_o innovation_n and_o corruption_n be_v introduce_v and_o general_o by_o what_o degree_n and_o occasion_n they_o increase_v though_o we_o may_v very_o well_o judge_v of_o error_n and_o corruption_n albeit_o we_o can_v not_o fix_v the_o time_n of_o their_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n which_o to_o speak_v more_o particular_o of_o require_v a_o very_a mature_a consideration_n yet_o notwithstanding_o casaubon_n have_v good_a reason_n to_o say_v the_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n 145._o necessity_n of_o reformation_n p._n 145._o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n which_o some_o protestant_n rash_o and_o ignorant_o rigid_o and_o uncharitable_o have_v do_v have_v be_v a_o great_a hindrance_n of_o reformation_n and_o i_o very_o believe_v the_o opinion_n most_o papist_n be_v keep_v in_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n be_v a_o new_a religion_n be_v not_o of_o little_a force_n to_o make_v they_o averse_a from_o it_o to_o this_o day_n chap._n xvii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o avoid_v all_o undue_a compliance_n with_o popery_n and_o other_o sort_n of_o phanaticism_n among_o we_o §_o 1._o notwithstanding_o our_o reformation_n be_v the_o most_o of_o any_o opposite_a to_o popery_n how_o it_o have_v be_v the_o craft_n of_o the_o roman_a agent_n to_o raise_v of_o it_o such_o a_o suspicion_n of_o popery_n as_o have_v be_v artificial_o make_v a_o very_a unhappy_a instrument_n of_o the_o division_n which_o be_v from_o our_o church_n §_o 2._o how_o the_o great_a labour_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o our_o clergy_n remain_v the_o most_o impregnable_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v stir_v up_o the_o more_o earnest_a opposition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o our_o church_n §_o 3._o the_o vain_a and_o ungrateful_a jealousy_n of_o our_o separatist_n and_o enthusiast_n be_v the_o more_o unjust_a because_o they_o have_v appear_v real_o act_v by_o that_o interest_n not_o in_o intention_n but_o in_o event_n §_o 4._o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o most_o seasonable_a work_n at_o this_o time_n to_o cast_v open_a those_o masquerade_n §_o 5._o some_o moderate_a caution_n here_o insert_v to_o prevent_v any_o unkind_a mistake_v §_o 6._o some_o objection_n to_o such_o a_o undertake_n here_o answer_v §_o 7._o that_o our_o separatist_n and_o enthusiast_n general_o more_o or_o less_o do_v conspire_v in_o fact_n albeit_o not_o in_o intent_n with_o the_o romanist_n instance_a as_o a_o specimen_fw-la in_o twenty_o particular_n §_o 8._o particular_o how_o the_o quaker_n be_v one_o with_o the_o papist_n how_o ignorant_o soever_o in_o sundry_a instance_n §_o 9_o by_o what_o step_n and_o degree_n these_o progress_n common_o be_v make_v towards_o popery_n by_o such_o as_o separate_v from_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n §_o 10._o what_o have_v be_v say_v confirm_v by_o other_o rational_a proof_n §_o 11._o some_o further_a reason_n why_o the_o clergy_n and_o faithful_a son_n of_o our_o church_n can_v be_v think_v thus_o concern_v in_o so_o much_o as_o a_o eventual_a conspiracy_n §_o 12._o a_o easy_a divination_n of_o the_o consequence_n of_o these_o thing_n if_o a_o due_a sense_n of_o these_o matter_n be_v reject_v when_o so_o fair_o and_o often_o recommend_v to_o the_o common_a notice_n of_o all_o with_o a_o sincere_a and_o affectionate_a close_o to_o such_o as_o this_o address_n most_o do_v concern_v §_o 1._o notwithstanding_o our_o church_n of_o england_n have_v be_v by_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n foreign_n and_o domestic_a acknowledge_v the_o very_a excellent_a part_n of_o the_o reformation_n yet_o how_o often_o have_v she_o be_v reproach_v with_o most_o unjust_a censure_n of_o undue_a compliance_n with_o popery_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o know_a policy_n of_o the_o romish_a factor_n to_o cause_v their_o agent_n among_o ourselves_o who_o they_o use_v for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o our_o church_n to_o cry_v out_o popery_n at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o most_o of_o all_o serve_v the_o papal_a interest_n themselves_o wherefore_o that_o the_o romanist_n may_v use_v the_o separatist_n with_o the_o more_o unperceivable_a disguise_n and_o success_n to_o undermine_v our_o constitution_n these_o also_o have_v be_v inspire_v to_o blast_v with_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n what_o be_v right_o establish_v in_o our_o church_n hence_o be_v it_o that_o the_o write_n and_o private_a insinuation_n of_o dissenter_n be_v full_a of_o this_o charge_n in_o a_o joint_a design_n to_o disgrace_v our_o communion_n and_o to_o exasperate_v other_o protestant_n against_o we_o some_o of_o those_o exceptor_n run_v to_o such_o a_o excess_n of_o rigour_n as_o to_o count_v church_n bell_n godfather_n church_a
to_o have_v hear_v any_o protestant_n reprove_v our_o religion_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v we_o have_v escape_v the_o lion_n mouth_n but_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o den_n of_o dragon_n our_o enemy_n be_v those_o of_o our_o own_o house_n §_o 4._o wherefore_o according_a to_o a_o most_o sober_a judgement_n it_o may_v be_v think_v a_o proper_a mean_n to_o awaken_v such_o to_o see_v their_o error_n in_o the_o evil_a consequence_n of_o their_o separation_n if_o some_o of_o the_o most_o earnest_a among_o they_o will_v please_v sincere_o and_o faithful_o to_o consider_v now_o how_o oft_o they_o have_v be_v make_v use_n of_o as_o mere_a tool_n and_o instrument_n to_o purpose_n the_o utmost_a reach_n of_o which_o they_o do_v not_o know_v but_o may_v now_o if_o they_o will_v but_o reflect_v and_o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v hope_v that_o many_o will_v repent_v of_o their_o vain_a and_o scandalous_a jealousy_n and_o may_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v refrain_v such_o false_a and_o foolish_a accusation_n of_o our_o church_n if_o they_o please_v but_o impartial_o to_o consider_v how_o many_o sectary_n among_o we_o which_o seem_v with_o great_a zeal_n and_o least_o knowledge_n to_o run_v into_o the_o further_a extreme_a from_o popery_n have_v not_o only_o serve_v the_o design_n of_o what_o they_o appear_v averse_a from_o but_o indeed_o have_v still_o a_o very_a great_a sympathy_n with_o they_o in_o their_o principle_n and_o practice_n and_o do_v but_o charge_v we_o with_o what_o they_o be_v most_o guilty_a of_o in_o fact_n themselves_o §_o 5._o but_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o undertake_n to_o show_v how_o those_o who_o be_v in_o separation_n from_o our_o church_n do_v real_o conspire_v with_o the_o romanist_n to_o prevent_v any_o mistake_n let_v it_o be_v remember_v first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o most_o of_o our_o dissenter_n do_v open_o demonstrate_v a_o very_a zealous_a and_o undoubted_a abhorrence_n of_o popery_n their_o real_a purpose_n in_o which_o be_v not_o here_o question_v but_o believe_v 558._o believe_v sunt_fw-la alii_fw-la qui_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la non_fw-la spiritu_fw-la aegyptiaco_fw-la &_o dolo_fw-la moliuntur_fw-la reditum_fw-la ad_fw-la papismum_fw-la at_o incuriae_fw-la &_o latae_fw-la culpae_fw-la reatum_fw-la tamen_fw-la incurrunt_fw-la alt._n damasc_n p._n 558._o for_o such_o be_v our_o charity_n for_o those_o who_o be_v general_o seduce_v we_o count_v it_o indeed_o the_o unhappiness_n of_o their_o error_n that_o many_o of_o they_o do_v entertain_v such_o principle_n as_o be_v agree_v with_o popery_n but_o we_o do_v not_o charge_v upon_o they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o or_o consent_v to_o the_o consequence_n of_o their_o own_o principle_n but_o conclude_v they_o be_v sow_o in_o their_o mind_n not_o by_o their_o own_o direct_a choice_n so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o slight_a of_o man_n and_o cunning_a craftiness_n whereby_o they_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v 2ly_a among_o the_o diversity_n of_o sect_n thus_o influence_v we_o acknowledge_v it_o most_o manifest_a that_o some_o be_v more_o act_v than_o other_o by_o far_o 10._o far_o hâc_fw-la in_o re_fw-la scilicet_fw-la unâ_fw-la multùm_fw-la dissimiles_fw-la ad_fw-la cetera_fw-la penè_fw-la gemellî_fw-la horat._n l._n 1._o ep._n 10._o nevertheless_o all_o that_o be_v in_o separation_n from_o our_o church_n in_o that_o their_o very_a division_n from_o we_o do_v actual_o join_v with_o the_o romanist_n to_o strengthen_v their_o hand_n and_o weaken_v the_o interest_n of_o our_o establish_a reformation_n more_o or_o less_o and_o i_o suppose_v it_o may_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v that_o general_o they_o who_o raise_v most_o clamour_n against_o our_o church_n as_o guilty_a of_o popery_n they_o most_o of_o all_o other_o will_v appear_v most_o actuate_v by_o the_o roman_a interest_n 3ly_a and_o since_o of_o late_a especial_o some_o of_o the_o worst_a principle_n of_o popery_n have_v appear_v among_o we_o most_o manifest_a from_o such_o most_o notorious_a practice_n as_o be_v the_o very_a proper_a consequence_n of_o their_o general_o approve_a doctrine_n it_o may_v be_v judge_v most_o seasonable_a even_o at_o this_o time_n that_o all_o sincere_a person_n be_v awaken_v to_o see_v whither_o those_o division_n natural_o lead_v in_o which_o so_o many_o have_v be_v engage_v who_o interest_n they_o serve_v who_o they_o join_v with_o and_o be_v act_v by_o how_o ignorant_a soever_o they_o be_v thereof_o especial_o since_o of_o late_a there_o have_v be_v so_o much_o discovery_n make_v that_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v be_v all_o along_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a aim_n of_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o that_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o effect_v the_o same_o by_o what_o our_o separatist_n call_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n though_o god_n preserve_v our_o liberty_n and_o our_o conscience_n from_o such_o snare_n so_o artificial_o lay_v by_o the_o romanist_n who_o have_v make_v most_o use_v of_o the_o dissatisfaction_n and_o opposition_n of_o our_o domestic_a dissenter_n to_o compass_v their_o intend_a design_n thus_o thuanus_n though_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n declare_v in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n here_o in_o england_n oblato_fw-la england_n rejecto_fw-la libello_fw-la supplice_n pro_fw-la libertate_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la oblato_fw-la the_o first_o design_n of_o their_o conspiracy_n begin_v upon_o the_o papist_n petition_v for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v reject_v §_o 6._o but_o because_o many_o be_v huge_a concern_v to_o shift_v off_o the_o conviction_n of_o this_o great_a truth_n if_o any_o say_v oh_o now_o be_v the_o time_n for_o protestant_n to_o be_v unite_v against_o the_o common_a adversary_n and_o why_o be_v such_o a_o distinction_n keep_v up_o between_o churchman_n and_o separatist_n very_o true_a why_o be_v there_o who_o have_v make_v and_o continue_v the_o difference_n wherefore_o the_o proper_a mean_n for_o consolidation_n of_o such_o a_o union_n among_o all_o true_a protestant_n among_o we_o which_o be_v most_o earnest_o desire_v by_o we_o be_v for_o our_o separatist_n to_o come_v off_o from_o such_o their_o division_n as_o be_v still_o design_v for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o our_o church_n especial_o since_o the_o presbyterian_a brethren_n well_o observe_v that_o a_o more_o firm_a union_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o 1661._o grand_fw-fr debate_n p._n 3._o 1661._o such_o as_o well_o in_o worship_n as_o in_o doctrine_n will_v great_o strengthen_v the_o protestant_a interest_n against_o all_o those_o danger_n and_o temptation_n which_o our_o intestine_a division_n and_o animosity_n do_v expose_v we_o unto_o from_o the_o common_a adversary_n 2._o for_o they_o also_o to_o forsake_v such_o principle_n and_o behaviour_n as_o serve_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o peaceable_o to_o return_v into_o communion_n with_o our_o most_o moderate_a church_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o overlook_a what_o be_v past_a if_o it_o may_v be_v secure_a of_o their_o communion_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o never_o let_v it_o be_v think_v that_o our_o church_n will_v ever_o come_v into_o their_o schism_n or_o that_o we_o will_v go_v about_o to_o sail_v to_o rome_n by_o a_o side-wind_n of_o separation_n §_o 7._o and_o now_o to_o prove_v the_o forementioned_a proposition_n that_o our_o separatist_n i_o do_v not_o say_v all_o alike_o nor_o that_o any_o sort_n agree_v in_o all_o these_o instance_n follow_v but_o more_o or_o less_o do_v conspire_v in_o fact_n however_o not_o in_o intent_n with_o the_o romanist_n one_o single_a proof_n of_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v sufficient_a namely_o from_o their_o separate_n and_o divide_v from_o such_o a_o church_n as_o we_o be_v which_o division_n be_v the_o main_a art_n and_o counsel_n and_o design_n of_o the_o roman_a engineer_n antidoto_fw-la engineer_n v●que_fw-la facilius_fw-la catholici_fw-la sectarios_fw-la opprimere_fw-la possint_fw-la variis_fw-la obductis_fw-la causis_fw-la &_o artibus_fw-la alios_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la ut_fw-la divellant_fw-la occasiones_fw-la captandae_fw-la jo._n paul_n windeck_v the_o extirp_v haeres_fw-la antidoto_fw-la and_o from_o their_o constant_a and_o common_a business_n which_o be_v by_o reproach_n much_o alike_o to_o vilify_v and_o deprave_v our_o church_n in_o all_o its_o constitution_n and_o office_n and_o especial_o they_o joint_o labour_v to_o vilify_v our_o clergy_n call_v they_o minister_n of_o satan_n jesuita_fw-la satan_n clero_fw-la anglicano_n nihil_fw-la putidius_fw-la campianus_n jesuita_fw-la and_o baal_n priest_n etc._n etc._n which_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o curse_a unjust_a and_o ingrateful_a practice_n so_o a_o more_o acceptable_a work_n our_o separatist_n can_v never_o do_v for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 2._o as_o they_o serve_v the_o romanist_n now_o by_o their_o practice_n so_o may_v they_o more_o hereafter_o by_o their_o opinion_n for_o so_o many_o point_n as_o they_o be_v off_o from_o our_o chap._n our_o see_v the_o 8_o &_o 9_o parag_v of_o this_o chap._n church_n so_o much_o the_o
imperious_a among_o man_n most_o decretory_a in_o their_o sentence_n and_o most_o impatient_a of_o any_o disagree_v from_o they_o though_o in_o the_o least_o minute_n and_o particular_a 3._o if_o any_o do_v conceive_v the_o church_n defective_a in_o some_o particular_a especial_o when_o few_o will_v deny_v but_o the_o principal_a and_o substantial_a thing_n be_v not_o want_v christian_n moderation_n require_v all_o to_o supply_v any_o such_o suppose_a defect_n as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v by_o such_o a_o christian_a charity_n 1._o charity_n pii_fw-la &_o placidi_fw-la homines_fw-la misericorditèr_fw-la corripiant_fw-la quod_fw-la possunt_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la patientèr_fw-la ferant_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la dilectione_n gemant_fw-la atque_fw-la lugeant_fw-la donec_fw-la aut_fw-la emendet_fw-la deus_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o mess_n eradicet_fw-la zizania_fw-la s._n aug._n l._n 3._o contr_n parm._n c._n 1._o as_o think_v hope_v believe_v the_o best_a especial_o of_o their_o governor_n and_o render_v all_o person_n suspicious_a of_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o docible_a and_o humble_a in_o disposition_n and_o behaviour_n and_o while_o they_o charge_v the_o church_n with_o be_v in_o some_o thing_n deficient_a in_o other_o superfluous_a they_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o more_o care_v not_o to_o add_v thereunto_o their_o own_o fault_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o be_v deficient_a in_o their_o duty_n or_o superfluous_a in_o such_o exception_n as_o general_o be_v so_o frivolous_a 4._o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o moderation_n that_o those_o who_o be_v so_o earnest_a to_o have_v still_o more_o moderation_n allow_v they_o shall_v first_o acknowledge_v such_o moderation_n and_o indulgence_n as_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o also_o shall_v take_v care_n that_o the_o same_o miss_v not_o of_o its_o desire_a and_o promise_v effect_n from_o they_o wherefore_o what_o the_o bishop_n tell_v the_o presbyterian_a brethren_n be_v but_o a_o very_a moderate_a admonition_n we_o conceive_v the_o most_o real_a expression_n of_o their_o thankfulness_n for_o his_o majesty_n most_o princely_a condescension_n have_v be_v a_o hearty_a compliance_n with_o his_o majesty_n most_o earnest_a and_o passionate_a request_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o present_a liturgy_n at_o least_o so_o much_o of_o it_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v by_o these_o paper_n to_o be_v lawful_a such_o also_o shall_v ready_o and_o thankful_o own_o whatsoever_o be_v good_a in_o the_o establishment_n which_o be_v over_o they_o and_o the_o real_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n which_o all_o do_v and_o may_v enjoy_v and_o since_o there_o be_v such_o instance_n and_o proof_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n christian_a moderation_n will_v also_o govern_v any_o who_o be_v concern_v in_o this_o matter_n well_o to_o understand_v and_o consider_v such_o proof_n and_o acknowledge_v what_o be_v true_a in_o they_o 5._o it_o be_v but_o according_a to_o christian_a moderation_n that_o a_o special_a respect_n and_o regard_n be_v have_v to_o a_o reform_a settle_a establishment_n as_o we_o be_v which_o be_v in_o possession_n jur_n possession_n in_o pari_fw-la causâ_fw-la possessor_n potior_fw-la haberi_fw-la debet_fw-la reg._n jur_n of_o its_o authority_n 1._o christian_n moderation_n will_v dispose_v such_o well_o to_o consider_v how_o far_o they_o ought_v to_o bear_v against_o their_o own_o inclination_n before_o they_o offer_v at_o the_o violation_n of_o the_o sacred_a peace_n of_o god_n church_n 2._o christian_n moderation_n will_v instruct_v any_o one_o that_o exemption_n from_o obedience_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o command_n to_o obey_v dispen_v obey_v infirmae_fw-la prorsus_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la est_fw-la indicium_fw-la statuta_fw-la seniorum_fw-la studiosiùs_fw-la disquirere_fw-la haerere_fw-la ad_fw-la singula_fw-la quae_fw-la injunguntur_fw-la exigere_fw-la de_fw-la quibusque_fw-la rationem_fw-la &_o malè_fw-la suspicari_fw-la de_fw-la omni_fw-la praecepto_fw-la cujus_fw-la causa_fw-la latuerit_fw-la nec_fw-la unquam_fw-la libenter_fw-la obedire_fw-la s._n bern._n de_fw-fr praec_fw-la &_o dispen_v 3._o such_o aught_o moderate_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o danger_n they_o threaten_v all_o government_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o also_o the_o interest_n especial_o of_o the_o reformation_n who_o be_v so_o industrious_a to_o overthrow_v such_o a_o establishment_n as_o we_o be_v upon_o these_o kind_n of_o dissatisfaction_n 6._o christian_n moderation_n do_v certain_o govern_v all_o to_o use_v the_o same_o measure_n of_o practice_n for_o themselves_o and_o other_o that_o be_v to_o do_v as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o juris_fw-la by_o non_fw-la debet_fw-la alteri_fw-la per_fw-la alterum_fw-la iniquae_fw-la conditio_fw-la inferri_fw-la reg._n juris_fw-la suppose_v therefore_o that_o any_o platform_n the_o exceptor_n against_o our_o church_n propose_v be_v settle_v according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n they_o ought_v to_o consider_v whether_o they_o will_v endure_v to_o be_v reproach_v resist_v disobey_v after_o such_o a_o establishment_n be_v make_v they_o who_o have_v use_v sundry_a significant_a ceremony_n themselves_o as_o be_v use_v in_o take_v the_o covenant_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o violent_a against_o all_o ceremony_n they_o who_o be_v against_o all_o jewish_a usage_n aught_o to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o judaize_v they_o who_o be_v zealous_a against_o popery_n aught_o to_o have_v a_o care_n themselves_o both_o lest_o they_o run_v into_o popery_n and_o lest_o they_o be_v carry_v thereinto_o however_o imprudent_o and_o unwary_o they_o who_o can_v be_v forward_o to_o appoint_v fasting-day_n and_o day_n of_o thanksgiving_n upon_o account_n not_o so_o justifiable_a ought_v not_o to_o be_v against_o all_o our_o lawful_a and_o appoint_a fast_n and_o festival_n they_o who_o have_v make_v it_o the_o chief_a of_o their_o exception_n against_o our_o monarchy_n former_o that_o it_o make_v void_a act_n of_o parliament_n by_o prerogative_n when_o it_o do_v not_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o earnest_a that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o papist_n and_o themselves_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o some_o particular_a brethren_n charge_v on_o their_o party_n or_o themselves_o aught_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n to_o have_v a_o care_n that_o they_o never_o charge_v our_o church_n with_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n of_o our_o communion_n make_v those_o the_o vice_n of_o our_o constitution_n which_o be_v only_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o person_n which_o will_v be_v in_o the_o world_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v man_n happy_a be_v it_o where_o there_o be_v few_o the_o same_o equity_n also_o which_o our_o church_n show_v unto_o other_o she_o may_v just_o expect_v to_o receive_v namely_o to_o be_v allow_v such_o just_a and_o favourable_a construction_n as_o in_o liturgy_n preface_n to_o the_o liturgy_n common_a equity_n ought_v to_o be_v allow_v to_o all_o humane_a write_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o authority_n 7._o christian_n moderation_n will_v govern_v any_o when_o they_o have_v experience_v a_o evil_a not_o to_o run_v into_o the_o same_o again_o they_o therefore_o who_o have_v see_v that_o the_o consequence_n of_o their_o own_o principle_n have_v prove_v worse_a than_o before_o they_o apprehend_v and_o that_o such_o immoderate_a zeal_n as_o their_o own_o have_v be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o other_o purpose_n than_o they_o be_v aware_a and_o have_v see_v and_o feel_v the_o horrid_a effect_n of_o confusion_n occasion_v from_o such_o exception_n as_o these_o which_o be_v so_o busy_a now_o against_o our_o church_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o true_a moderation_n aught_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o constant_o and_o to_o have_v a_o diligent_a care_n lest_o they_o split_v again_o upon_o the_o same_o rock_n this_o christian_a moderation_n will_v help_v any_o for_o avoid_v one_o extreme_a from_o run_v unto_o another_o because_o they_o detest_v horat._n in_o vitium_fw-la ducit_fw-la culpae_fw-la fuga_fw-la si_fw-la caret_fw-la arte_fw-la horat._n papal_a tyranny_n they_o will_v not_o therefore_o reject_v episcopacy_n because_o of_o some_o defect_n in_o discipline_n they_o will_v not_o therefore_o run_v into_o a_o culpable_a separation_n because_o some_o be_v careless_a in_o their_o prayer_n they_o will_v not_o therefore_o reject_v all_o form_n as_o unlawful_a because_o of_o the_o imperfection_n of_o all_o form_n of_o government_n therefore_o they_o will_v not_o conclude_v monarchy_n sinful_a because_o some_o set_v up_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n they_o will_v not_o therefore_o think_v good_a work_n needless_a to_o salvation_n because_o too_o many_o neglect_n the_o vow_n they_o make_v in_o their_o baptism_n therefore_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v infant_n baptism_n because_o in_o popery_n there_o be_v such_o heap_n of_o foppery_n therefore_o what_o be_v real_o good_a among_o they_o must_v not_o for_o their_o sake_n be_v condemn_v because_o what_o be_v typical_a of_o christ_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v abolish_v by_o our_o christianity_n therefore_o other_o moral_a and_o useful_a usage_n which_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n be_v
as_o to_o those_o among_o we_o who_o be_v most_o moderate_a it_o may_v be_v wish_v they_o will_v afford_v their_o own_o example_n in_o what_o they_o allow_v in_o discourse_n and_o that_o they_o will_v labour_v as_o effectual_o to_o prevail_v on_o those_o who_o depend_v on_o their_o judgement_n and_o example_n §_o 3._o whereas_o many_o of_o our_o dissent_v brethren_n profess_v they_o desire_v the_o interest_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v promote_v and_o that_o sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o reform_a protestant_n religion_n may_v be_v maintain_v and_o increase_v and_o in_o all_o debate_n they_o appeal_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o many_o of_o they_o say_v they_o be_v desirous_a to_o rectify_v mistake_v and_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o partiality_n and_o profess_v they_o desire_v their_o judgement_n and_o practice_n may_v be_v guide_v in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n suppose_v all_o this_o if_o we_o meet_v with_o such_o as_o will_v admit_v what_o follow_v into_o fair_a consideration_n i_o shall_v think_v it_o the_o most_o proper_a mean_n by_o some_o such_o degree_n as_o follow_v to_o bring_v they_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o understand_v the_o good_a constitution_n of_o thing_n among_o we_o 1._o by_o let_v such_o by_o clear_a instance_n see_v how_o unmovable_o we_o hold_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o together_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v keep_v inviolable_o witness_n unto_o they_o faithful_o and_o so_o constant_o appeal_v to_o as_o the_o only_a perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n v._n ch._n 4._o 2._o since_o the_o best_a and_o most_o useful_a sort_n of_o moderation_n be_v that_o which_o govern_v we_o as_o we_o ought_v in_o the_o real_a practice_n of_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n whereunto_o tend_v all_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o god_n church_n yet_o which_o be_v a_o lamentable_a thing_n to_o consider_v this_o be_v most_o silent_o pass_v over_o and_o scarce_o know_v by_o the_o name_n at_o that_o same_o time_n that_o a_o huge_a clamour_n be_v raise_v among_o we_o for_o moderation_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v concern_v may_v know_v and_o understand_v that_o the_o great_a design_n and_o desire_n of_o our_o church_n be_v to_o promote_v holiness_n of_o life_n among_o we_o all_o may_v not_o only_o be_v as_o holy_a as_o they_o will_v but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v so_o they_o be_v assist_v and_o encourage_v most_o earnest_o by_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n and_o office_n and_o council_n of_o our_o church_n which_o if_o they_o be_v right_o understand_v will_v be_v know_v uniform_o to_o tend_v to_o no_o less_o 3._o such_o may_v consider_v that_o all_o the_o appoint_a mean_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n be_v by_o our_o church_n public_o and_o ample_o take_v care_n of_o as_o due_o and_o effectual_o as_o may_v be_v 4._o in_o a_o church_n where_o substantial_a piety_n be_v so_o true_o procure_v throughout_o the_o whole_a constitution_n it_o may_v at_o least_o mitigate_v the_o great_a offence_n take_v to_o consider_v what_o be_v more_o large_o show_v ch._n 8._o that_o our_o church_n never_o do_v own_o her_o very_a few_o ceremony_n any_o other_o than_o accidental_a and_o mutable_a circumstance_n for_o order_n and_o comeliness-sake_n but_o never_o assert_v they_o any_o essential_a or_o necessary_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n such_o may_v also_o consider_v the_o rule_n of_o reasonable_a behaviour_n and_o submission_n to_o the_o church_n as_o be_v moderate_o lay_v down_o chap._n 6._o §_o 10._o 5._o because_o our_o dissenter_n by_o their_o divide_v from_o we_o seem_v to_o endanger_v very_o much_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n which_o they_o appear_v so_o zealous_a to_o uphold_v let_v they_o be_v please_v to_o consider_v the_o real_a danger_n of_o their_o be_v act_v by_o romish_a agent_n and_o incendiary_n while_o they_o take_v the_o second_o direct_a course_n to_o destroy_v this_o reform_a establishment_n among_o we_o as_o be_v more_o particular_o consider_v in_o chap._n 17._o 6._o such_o may_v do_v well_o to_o consider_v true_o those_o easy_a and_o proper_a consequence_n which_o follow_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n with_o relation_n to_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n as_o we_o be_v from_o whence_o sundry_a special_a obligation_n may_v be_v infer_v to_o bind_v every_o one_o who_o call_v himself_o christian_n to_o maintain_v the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o such_o a_o society_n especial_o if_o we_o look_v on_o the_o church_n as_o a_o society_n form_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o common_a christian_n be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o themselves_o as_o spiritual_a governor_n as_o if_o they_o have_v any_o power_n in_o themselves_o to_o constitute_v new_a bound_n or_o new_a extent_n to_o its_o be_v or_o authority_n but_o be_v to_o think_v they_o have_v a_o easy_a and_o safe_a task_n quiet_o to_o accept_v and_o obey_v that_o which_o be_v constitute_v by_o lawful_a authority_n in_o all_o thing_n not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n and_o since_o every_o one_o being_n of_o the_o church_n do_v suppose_v their_o duty_n to_o communicate_v in_o those_o sacrament_n and_o holy_a office_n which_o be_v appoint_v as_o a_o public_a sign_n before_o god_n and_o man_n that_o we_o do_v confess_v christ_n jesus_n and_o be_v a_o evidence_n of_o our_o hold_a communion_n with_o god_n church_n and_o that_o we_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o law_n of_o this_o society_n and_o the_o government_n thereof_o in_o that_o fix_a part_n of_o the_o church_n we_o live_v in_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v oblige_v unto_o the_o peace_n of_o this_o church_n by_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o baptismal_a vow_n when_o we_o be_v incorporate_v as_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o church_n and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o maintain_v the_o same_o peace_n of_o this_o society_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o live_v in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n where_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o its_o law_n upon_o which_o account_n schism_n render_v the_o safety_n of_o kingdom_n very_o hazardous_a beside_o that_o it_o lose_v the_o band_n of_o all_o friendship_n sacred_a and_o civil_a and_o breed_v enmity_n among_o near_a relation_n and_o neighbour_n it_o tend_v exceed_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o public_a law_n and_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o the_o most_o dissolute_a make_v void_a the_o exercise_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o scandalous_a which_o otherwise_o to_o the_o profane_a world_n will_v prove_v terrible_a as_o a_o army_n with_o banner_n it_o be_v the_o only_a way_n any_o can_v take_v to_o destroy_v all_o be_v of_o a_o visible_a church_n to_o corrupt_v her_o doctrine_n and_o destroy_v her_o power_n and_o be_v so_o great_a a_o sin_n as_o martyrdom_n itself_o can_v expiate_v it_o such_o do_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v make_v void_a the_o design_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o die_v that_o be_v may_v gather_v into_o one_o the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o 11_o s._n john_n 52._o the_o night_n before_o our_o lord_n be_v betray_v when_o he_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n how_o fervent_o do_v he_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n 17_o s._n john_n 11._o holy_a father_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n those_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o i_o be_o one_o v._n 21._o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o whereas_o these_o schism_n which_o we_o have_v tend_v to_o weaken_v or_o take_v away_o the_o great_a outward_a witness_n we_o have_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o our_o very_a christianity_n namely_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o do_v expose_v our_o most_o excellent_a religion_n to_o the_o contempt_n and_o entertainment_n of_o atheist_n the_o sad_a account_n for_o which_o let_v they_o beware_v of_o who_o make_v it_o their_o idle_a business_n to_o defame_v the_o church_n in_o her_o holy_a office_n and_o alienate_v all_o who_o they_o can_v from_o her_o communion_n let_v they_o pretend_v what_o they_o will_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o intimate_v communion_n with_o god_n they_o indeed_o take_v away_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v but_o in_o effect_n they_o take_v it_o away_o from_o themselves_o and_o they_o cut_v themselves_o off_o from_o communion_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o
the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n consider_v as_o useful_a for_o allay_v the_o present_a distemper_n which_o the_o indisposition_n of_o the_o time_n have_v contract_v by_o timothy_n puller_n d._n d._n pref._n to_o the_o book_n of_o com._n pr._n it_o have_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o the_o first_o compile_v her_o public_a liturgy_n to_o keep_v the_o mean_a between_o the_o two_o extreme_n in_o which_o review_n we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o observe_v the_o like_a moderation_n london_n print_v by_o j._n m._n for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st_n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxix_o nisi_fw-la dominus_fw-la adfuisset_fw-la nobis_fw-la 24_o psl_n 1._o pr●●_n jeus_n simple_a mode_n bation_n print_v for_o rich_a chiswell_n in_o st_n paul_n church_n yard_n animo_fw-la et_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o right_a honorable_n francis_n north_n baron_n of_o guildford_n 1703_o to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n william_n by_o divine_a providence_n lord_n archbishop_z of_o canterbury_z primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a and_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n may_n it_o please_v your_o grace_n this_o essay_n for_o the_o vindication_n of_o our_o church_n address_v in_o just_a gratitude_n to_o your_o archiepiscopal_a see_n with_o this_o assurance_n that_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n owe_v itself_o as_o much_o to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o admirable_a temper_n of_o your_o grace_n predecessor_n as_o to_o any_o one_o thing_n whatsoever_o next_o to_o the_o most_o divine_a and_o supreme_a influence_n which_o so_o signal_o govern_v they_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n to_o follow_v incomparable_o the_o sage_a advice_n which_o gregory_n the_o great_a ancient_o send_v to_o your_o predecessor_n austin_n of_o canterbury_n that_o of_o the_o divers_a usage_n of_o several_a church_n he_o shall_v choose_v what_o be_v most_o religious_a and_o right_a for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o english_a for_o say_v that_o bishop_n of_o rome_n thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v love_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o a_o place_n but_o place_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o good_a thing_n according_a to_o which_o determination_n of_o that_o learned_a and_o pious_a father_n it_o may_v be_v easy_a now_o to_o decide_v what_o church_n who_o primate_fw-la which_o constitution_n deserve_v our_o love_n and_o honour_v most_o unless_o any_o will_v prefer_v that_o which_o be_v extravagant_o corrupt_a before_o what_o be_v most_o moderate_o and_o excellent_o reform_v your_o grace_n best_o know_v how_o that_o brotherly_a 3._o brotherly_a novit_n fraternitas_fw-la tua_fw-la etc._n etc._n b._n greg._n ep._n ex_fw-la registro_fw-la l._n 12._o indic_n 7._o c._n 3._o sort_n of_o communication_n be_v general_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n by_o other_o patriarch_n even_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o long_o as_o these_o be_v example_n of_o the_o same_o moderation_n with_o s._n gregory_n who_o with_o a_o primitive_a roman_a courage_n protest_v against_o the_o insolency_n of_o their_o still_n themselves_o universal_a which_o well_o enough_o agree_v with_o the_o solecism_n of_o those_o who_o call_v only_o themselves_o catholic_n before_o which_o novel_a kind_n of_o phantastries_n it_o be_v well_o know_v such_o as_o boniface_n the_o martyr_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o german_n as_o baronius_n mention_n 9_o mention_n ad_fw-la a_o 726._o n._n 58._o tom._n 9_o mutual_o desire_v advice_n not_o only_o from_o rome_n but_o of_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o england_n and_o whereas_o even_o since_o the_o first_o reformation_n there_o have_v be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v not_o only_o with_o wondrous_a success_n govern_v and_o defend_v our_o church_n from_o both_o sort_n of_o adversary_n but_o have_v testify_v to_o the_o equity_n of_o her_o rubric_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n when_o we_o consider_v what_o kind_n of_o adverse_a party_n be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n even_o the_o same_o who_o have_v give_v the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n her_o two_o most_o extreme_a refine_n trial_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v they_o in_o the_o direct_a succession_n with_o your_o grace_n to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o glorious_a instrument_n but_o also_o the_o most_o famous_a witness_n and_o proof_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n who_o bear_v the_o first_o name_n in_o her_o diptych_o and_o deserve_v here_o first_o with_o reverence_n to_o be_v mention_v to_o your_o grace_n who_o also_o for_o your_o inviolable_a adherence_n to_o the_o church_n in_o spite_n of_o suffering_n must_v hereafter_o be_v celebrate_v among_o her_o confessor_n there_o may_v be_v some_o account_n why_o in_o this_o argument_n such_o a_o undertake_n as_o this_o be_v it_o more_o worthy_a shall_v especial_o desire_v your_o patronage_n not_o only_o in_o humble_a deference_n to_o the_o authority_n your_o grace_n do_v sustain_v in_o our_o church_n to_o the_o universal_a joy_n and_o serious_a triumph_n of_o all_o who_o affection_n have_v not_o be_v deprave_v with_o schism_n and_o ill_a nature_n but_o in_o a_o more_o immediate_a reference_n because_o to_o your_o special_a archiepiscopal_a prerogative_n belong_v the_o peculiar_a right_n and_o faculty_n of_o those_o dispensation_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o equity_n of_o our_o church_n and_o her_o liberal_a benignity_n in_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v be_v always_o honour_v as_o a_o most_o venerable_a part_n of_o her_o law_n since_o therefore_o unto_o your_o clemency_n be_v so_o suitable_o commit_v in_o this_o public_a constitution_n the_o custody_n of_o our_o church_n indulgence_n and_o benignity_n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n with_o more_o than_o usual_a confidence_n return_v to_o your_o grace_n for_o what_o her_o casuist_n call_v inculpata_fw-la tutela_n and_o fear_v not_o now_o to_o be_v deny_v since_o clemency_n be_v not_o only_o the_o dignity_n of_o your_o title_n but_o your_o nature_n neither_o be_v your_o primacy_n in_o our_o church_n more_o eminent_a than_o your_o moderation_n be_v exemplary_a and_o know_v unto_o all_o which_o i_o presume_v only_o to_o mention_v to_o borrow_v from_o thence_o a_o most_o reverend_a lustre_n and_o life_n to_o the_o noble_a truth_n i_o have_v defend_v and_o so_o far_o as_o i_o have_v not_o improper_o now_o assert_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o you_o preside_v i_o be_o sure_a not_o to_o sink_v in_o my_o trust_n of_o be_v support_v by_o your_o grace_n good_a acceptance_n of_o the_o sincere_a undertake_n of_o may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n your_o most_o oblige_a humble_a and_o dutiful_a servant_n timon_n puller_n to_o the_o reader_n if_o ever_o the_o practice_n of_o moderation_n as_o well_o as_o any_o discourse_n thereon_o be_v seasonable_a it_o may_v be_v suppose_v now_o when_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v the_o last_a happiness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n may_v depend_v immediate_o upon_o this_o rare_a and_o desirable_a temper_n acknowledge_v of_o all_o most_o excellent_a yet_o it_o be_v a_o most_o unaccountable_a mystery_n of_o our_o present_a condition_n that_o notwithstanding_o the_o late_a surprise_v discovery_n have_v have_v nothing_o more_o notorious_a than_o that_o the_o chief_a design_n of_o the_o jesuit_n faction_n among_o the_o romanist_n have_v be_v the_o utter_a subversion_n of_o the_o present_a establish_a church_n of_o england_n nevertheless_o they_o who_o call_v themselves_o our_o protestant_a dissenter_n can_v be_v induce_v to_o come_v into_o entire_a union_n with_o our_o excellent_a reform_a church_n but_o rather_o choose_v to_o unite_v with_o those_o romanist_n in_o many_o of_o their_o unreasonable_a cavil_n one_o of_o the_o method_n which_o they_o who_o be_v principal_n or_o accessory_n in_o our_o division_n for_o our_o extirpation_n have_v use_v have_v be_v to_o engage_v the_o outcry_n in_o popular_a appeal_n concern_v persecution_n or_o moderation_n this_o word_n and_o thing_n itself_o have_v indeed_o much_o in_o it_o which_o be_v very_o divine_a and_o therefore_o the_o more_o likely_a to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o with_o design_n by_o those_o who_o have_v use_v the_o most_o holy_a thing_n to_o the_o most_o unhallowed_a purpose_n but_o i_o suppose_v the_o experience_n which_o the_o late_a age_n have_v teach_v we_o will_v not_o so_o present_o be_v out_o of_o print_n in_o our_o mind_n as_o to_o make_v we_o remit_v all_o our_o caution_n against_o the_o rigour_n of_o both_o extreme_n however_o they_o bear_v the_o same_o goodly_a pretence_n and_o unite_v in_o the_o same_o reproach_n of_o our_o church_n wherefore_o in_o sincere_a desire_n to_o assist_v the_o truth_n and_o equity_n of_o our_o church_n cause_n as_o well_o as_o to_o awaken_v if_o i_o may_v be_v so_o happy_a some_o into_o a_o more_o intimate_a sense_n of_o our_o common_a real_a interest_n i_o think_v it_o a_o act_n of_o justice_n as_o well_o as_o duty_n to_o enter_v some_o
kind_n of_o protestation_n and_o proof_n also_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n that_o if_o our_o dissent_v brethren_n will_v but_o please_v to_o come_v near_o and_o view_v such_o fair_a and_o open_a testimony_n as_o i_o have_v enumerate_v some_o sympathy_n with_o so_o just_a a_o temper_n may_v help_v to_o cool_v some_o of_o those_o calenture_n to_o assuage_v and_o allay_v some_o of_o those_o unreasonable_a disorder_n which_o have_v discompose_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o at_o present_a adverse_a to_o our_o peace_n that_o while_o so_o remarkable_a a_o part_n of_o our_o church_n beauty_n appear_v from_o such_o a_o lift_n up_o of_o her_o veil_n so_o gentle_a and_o cheerful_a a_o aspect_n may_v we_o hope_v win_v over_o some_o of_o those_o into_o better_a esteem_n of_o our_o communion_n who_o any_o symmetry_n can_v affect_v who_o any_o moderation_n can_v overcome_v if_o they_o be_v not_o already_o irreconcilable_a that_o so_o the_o mildness_n and_o gentleness_n of_o our_o church_n may_v no_o long_o aggravate_v their_o separation_n with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o injustice_n unthankfulness_n and_o disingenuity_n even_o as_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n and_o government_n render_v the_o attempt_n of_o such_o romanist_n as_o be_v concern_v in_o they_o not_o only_o more_o scandalous_a and_o pernicious_a but_o most_o impious_a horrid_a and_o execrable_a as_o for_o other_o among_o we_o who_o sometime_o have_v appear_v weary_a of_o their_o contest_v however_o unsettle_a hover_v as_o it_o be_v in_o some_o motion_n for_o union_n and_o frequent_o be_v toil_a themselves_o in_o tedious_a contemplation_n of_o new_a plot_n and_o scheme_n of_o government_n frame_v to_o themselves_o idea_n not_o very_o platonical_a for_o peace_n and_o settlement_n i_o conceive_v a_o seasonable_a conviction_n among_o such_o of_o the_o real_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n may_v save_v some_o of_o they_o their_o grievous_a labour_n for_o the_o future_a for_o how_o deficient_a they_o general_o have_v be_v they_o themselves_o have_v show_v and_o if_o our_o church_n be_v very_o moderate_a already_o i_o need_v not_o say_v they_o have_v be_v very_o superfluous_a there_o be_v indeed_o those_o who_o be_v still_o require_v that_o the_o protestant_a profession_n among_o we_o be_v settle_v in_o a_o due_a latitude_n whereas_o we_o sincere_o think_v the_o very_a thing_n desire_v be_v already_o the_o true_a temperament_n of_o our_o church_n and_o such_o also_o as_o in_o no_o sort_n encourage_v any_o indifferency_n or_o neutrality_n in_o religion_n nor_o offer_v any_o such_o principle_n to_o her_o son_n as_o allow_v they_o proteus_z or_o vertumnus_n like_v to_o be_v susceptible_a of_o divers_a shape_n and_o form_n in_o religion_n as_o our_o adversary_n who_o do_v not_o understand_v our_o church_n do_v suspect_v whereas_o the_o more_o any_o be_v fix_v according_a to_o the_o right_a principle_n of_o our_o church_n the_o true_a and_o firm_a protestant_n such_o be_v we_o shall_v manifest_o prove_v and_o the_o more_o any_o be_v such_o the_o more_o true_o moderate_a they_o be_v and_o their_o design_n for_o peace_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o most_o discreet_a of_o any_o and_o the_o more_o to_o purpose_n so_o great_a a_o blessing_n i_o confess_v be_v less_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o so_o long_o as_o the_o master_n of_o faction_n have_v get_v such_o a_o mighty_a dominion_n over_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o follower_n and_o have_v so_o far_o entangle_v they_o in_o their_o own_o passion_n and_o prejudices_fw-la neither_o be_v it_o any_o wonder_n that_o noise_n and_o passion_n and_o hardy_a confidence_n ice_v over_o with_o some_o sanctimonious_a pretence_n can_v engage_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o vulgar_a more_o than_o ingenuity_n and_o real_a moderation_n and_o when_o once_o this_o humour_n obtain_v of_o disaffect_v what_o be_v settle_v with_o a_o lust_n after_o novelty_n if_o what_o some_o love_n to_o call_v the_o pattern_n in_o the_o mount_n shall_v slide_v down_o from_o heaven_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o it_o will_v not_o continue_v long_o in_o favour_n and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v antiquate_v among_o such_o who_o be_v for_o new_a modes_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n to_o gratify_v their_o sickly_a fancy_n and_o most_o divide_a interest_n while_o this_o affection_n be_v thus_o cherish_v and_o thus_o keep_v up_o the_o mischief_n on_o it_o be_v as_o when_o we_o preach_v such_o doctrine_n as_o the_o duty_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n and_o the_o like_a they_o general_o be_v most_o absent_a who_o the_o same_o concern_v most_o so_o all_o testimony_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n church_n be_v seldom_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o such_o who_o they_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o convince_v among_o the_o romanist_n and_o the_o separatist_n the_o keeper_n of_o the_o people_n understanding_n not_o suffer_v they_o to_o peruse_v what_o may_v awaken_v or_o enlighten_v they_o and_o the_o more_o proper_a any_o thing_n be_v for_o that_o purpose_n the_o more_o industrious_a be_v they_o sly_o to_o stifle_v the_o reputation_n of_o such_o endeavour_n however_o i_o think_v it_o but_o just_a to_o vindicate_v unto_o public_a authority_n the_o same_o fair_a interpretation_n which_o all_o private_a person_n will_v glad_o have_v for_o what_o they_o say_v or_o do_v and_o where_o the_o church_n have_v give_v mild_a interpretation_n on_o purpose_n for_o the_o general_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a to_o make_v recognition_n of_o the_o same_o and_o when_o they_o be_v perverse_o wrest_v fair_o to_o set_v they_o forth_o and_o certain_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o consider_v public_a appointment_n which_o oblige_v we_o with_o all_o respect_n to_o their_o true_a end_n and_o measure_n equal_o represent_v and_o it_o may_v be_v think_v but_o a_o debt_n of_o gratitude_n for_o we_o to_o acknowledge_v such_o liberty_n and_o indulgence_n as_o we_o enjoy_v and_o to_o defend_v from_o malignant_a detraction_n the_o just_a wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o excellent_a poise_n between_o undue_a extreme_n and_o so_o long_o as_o i_o have_v upright_o design_v so_o just_a a_o duty_n the_o easy_a foresight_n of_o many_o ignorant_a or_o malicious_a exception_n have_v not_o dash_v i_o out_o of_o countenance_n but_o excite_v i_o and_o the_o more_o because_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v not_o only_o endeavour_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o imitate_v the_o same_o in_o so_o much_o that_o where_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v to_o our_o adversary_n in_o our_o own_o defence_n i_o hope_v it_o have_v not_o take_v example_n from_o their_o own_o intemperate_a heat_n and_o since_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n have_v bid_v we_o eccl._n 37._o 11._o not_o consult_v with_o a_o coward_n in_o matter_n of_o war_n nor_o with_o a_o envious_a man_n of_o unthankfulness_n nor_o with_o a_o unmerciful_a man_n touch_v kindness_n we_o despair_v to_o communicate_v advice_n of_o the_o church_n mildness_n with_o those_o who_o be_v of_o unmerciful_a temper_n themselves_o therefore_o the_o more_o need_n we_o have_v all_o as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v to_o confirm_v one_o another_o in_o the_o recognition_n of_o those_o virtue_n which_o justify_v the_o wisdom_n of_o our_o church_n and_o afford_v ourselves_o great_a satisfaction_n in_o our_o conformity_n although_o some_o be_v continual_o of_o such_o disturb_a spirit_n uneasy_a to_o themselves_o and_o morose_n they_o can_v seldom_o allow_v any_o time_n to_o reflect_v cheerful_o and_o thankful_o upon_o the_o blessing_n they_o enjoy_v however_o they_o may_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o delight_v ourselves_o in_o the_o serious_a contemplation_n of_o such_o proportion_n and_o measure_n as_o in_o the_o frame_n of_o our_o church_n be_v most_o observable_a which_o can_v but_o afford_v a_o rare_a and_o serious_a pleasure_n as_o well_o as_o use_v as_o it_o must_v be_v very_o delightful_a to_o behold_v any_o imitation_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n in_o number_n weight_n and_o measure_n which_o govern_v the_o world_n and_o all_o his_o creature_n according_a to_o unsearchable_a measure_n of_o righteousness_n and_o equity_n who_o dispense_v all_o thing_n sweet_o and_o easy_o the_o more_o any_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n partake_v of_o such_o proportion_n it_o can_v but_o afford_v a_o fine_a and_o delicate_a reflection_n to_o find_v they_o out_o and_o admire_v they_o such_o be_v the_o lovely_a prospect_n which_o we_o can_v but_o with_o delight_n take_v on_o the_o goodly_a frame_n and_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n of_o england_n suitable_a to_o the_o rare_a temper_n of_o our_o excellent_a monarchy_n we_o live_v under_o and_o the_o most_o benign_a disposition_n of_o our_o law_n which_o give_v very_o much_o to_o 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d §._o 27._o subject_n industry_n liberty_n and_o happiness_n and_o yet_o reserve_v
5._o in_o her_o order_n also_o for_o dispense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o all_o within_o her_o communion_n §_o 6._o in_o govern_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o commune_v on_o the_o same_o §_o 7._o in_o her_o judgement_n of_o the_o canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a book_n §_o 8._o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n our_o church_n rather_o do_v take_v for_o grant_v than_o prove_v too_o laborious_o or_o uncertain_o §_o 9_o all_o immoderate_a extravagancy_n concern_v interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n avoid_v by_o our_o church_n p._n 48_o chap._n v._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o apply_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o itself_o §_o 1._o avoid_v extreme_n on_o either_o hand_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n §_o 2._o the_o decree_n of_o council_n §_o 3._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n §_o 4._o other_o tradition_n §_o 5._o our_o church_n own_o testimony_n §_o 6._o the_o use_n of_o reason_n §_o 7._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n §_o 8._o of_o the_o testimony_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n according_a to_o great_a moderation_n more_o large_o declare_v p._n 77_o chap._n vi_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o judgement_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n do_v wise_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o what_o be_v not_o §_o 2._o her_o article_n be_v few_o §_o 3._o which_o be_v general_o exhibit_v not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o consent_n concern_v subscription_n §_o 4._o our_o article_n be_v propound_v so_o as_o to_o avoid_v unnecessary_a controversy_n §_o 5._o the_o wise_a moderation_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o their_o injunction_n to_o preacher_n and_o order_n take_v to_o preserve_v truth_n unity_n and_o charity_n §_o 6._o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o late_a age_n be_v well_o moderate_v by_o the_o determination_n of_o our_o church_n §_o 7._o as_o our_o church_n require_v our_o consent_n in_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o sense_n or_o reason_n so_o it_o have_v also_o contain_v itself_o from_o immoderate_a curiosity_n in_o treat_v of_o venerable_a mystery_n §_o 8._o our_o church_n do_v not_o insist_v upon_o such_o kind_n of_o certainty_n as_o other_o without_o just_a cause_n do_v exact_a §_o 9_o doctrine_n be_v so_o propound_v to_o those_o in_o our_o church_n communion_n as_o not_o to_o render_v useless_a their_o own_o reason_n and_o judgement_n the_o reasonableness_n of_o which_o be_v prove_v and_o the_o objection_n answer_v §_o 10._o the_o use_n which_o we_o be_v all_o allow_v of_o our_o private_a judgement_n be_v require_v to_o be_v manage_v with_o a_o due_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n the_o duty_n of_o which_o submission_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o sundry_a proposition_n p._n 114_o chap._n vii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n §_o 1._o our_o prayer_n be_v not_o mingle_v with_o controversy_n §_o 2._o they_o be_v frame_v according_a to_o a_o most_o grave_a and_o serious_a manner_n with_o moderate_a variety_n and_o proper_a length_n §_o 3._o in_o the_o zeal_n of_o reformation_n our_o church_n do_v not_o cast_v off_o what_o be_v good_a in_o itself_o §_o 4._o in_o all_o our_o church_n there_o be_v the_o same_o rule_n §_o 5._o common_a prayer_n for_o the_o vulgar_a require_v in_o english_a to_o minister_n and_o scholar_n a_o just_a and_o moderate_a liberty_n allow_v §_o 6._o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v the_o method_n of_o private_a devotion_n to_o a_o general_a liberty_n §_o 7._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o appoint_v her_o hour_n and_o time_n of_o prayer_n §_o 8._o in_o her_o use_n and_o judgement_n of_o sermon_n §_o 9_o in_o what_o be_v require_v of_o people_n with_o reference_n to_o their_o parish_n church_n §_o 10._o the_o excellent_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o order_n for_o the_o reverend_a read_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o a_o voice_n as_o may_v be_v hear_v §_o 11._o in_o her_o form_n and_o use_v of_o catechise_v §_o 12._o the_o interest_n of_o inward_a and_o outward_a worship_n be_v both_o secure_v according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n in_o our_o church_n §_o 13._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o oath_n p._n 166_o chap._n viii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o relation_n to_o ceremony_n §_o 1._o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v very_o few_o and_o those_o of_o great_a antiquity_n simplicity_n clear_a signification_n and_o use_n our_o church_n avoid_v either_o sort_n of_o superstition_n §_o 2._o they_o have_v constant_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v in_o themselves_o indifferent_a and_o alterable_a but_o in_o that_o our_o church_n avoid_v variableness_n be_v a_o further_a proof_n of_o its_o moderation_n §_o 3._o they_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v no_o part_n of_o religion_n much_o less_o the_o chief_a nor_o to_o have_v any_o supernatural_a effect_n belong_v to_o they_o §_o 4._o abundant_a care_n be_v take_v to_o give_v plain_a and_o frequent_a reason_n and_o interpretation_n of_o what_o in_o this_o nature_n be_v enjoin_v to_o prevent_v mistake_n §_o 5._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n even_o in_o point_n of_o ceremony_n compare_v with_o those_o who_o have_v raise_v so_o great_a a_o dust_n in_o this_o controversy_n §_o 6._o many_o innocent_a rite_n and_o usage_n our_o church_n never_o go_v about_o to_o introduce_v and_o why_o §_o 7._o the_o obligation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v very_o mild_a §_o 8._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o appointment_n of_o vestment_n §_o 9_o the_o benediction_n of_o our_o church_n be_v according_a to_o great_a piety_n and_o wisdom_n order_v §_o 10._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o her_o appointment_n of_o gesture_n §_o 11._o of_o the_o respect_n which_o be_v hold_v due_a to_o place_n and_o thing_n distinguish_v to_o god_n service_n our_o church_n judge_v and_o practise_v according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n p._n 201_o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n with_o respect_n to_o holiday_n namely_o both_o the_o feast_n and_o fast_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 1._o the_o feast_n of_o the_o church_n be_v few_o and_o those_o for_o great_a reason_n choose_v with_o care_n to_o avoid_v the_o excess_n of_o the_o romanist_n §_o 2._o the_o further_a behaviour_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o feast_n most_o useful_a and_o prudent_a §_o 3._o we_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o saint_n but_o of_o none_o who_o existence_n or_o sanctity_n be_v uncertain_a §_o 4._o the_o excellent_a end_n of_o our_o church_n honour_n to_o saint_n be_v set_v down_o §_o 5._o that_o they_o be_v festival_o commemorate_a not_o out_o of_o opinion_n of_o worship_n or_o merit_n or_o absolute_a necessity_n thereof_o to_o religion_n §_o 6._o our_o church_n run_v not_o into_o any_o excess_n in_o any_o prayer_n to_o saint_n §_o 7._o nor_o with_o reference_n to_o image_n §_o 8._o whether_o our_o church_n in_o any_o of_o these_o practice_n be_v just_o charge_v of_o popery_n by_o those_o who_o canonize_v among_o themselves_o those_o who_o be_v of_o uncertain_a sanctity_n §_o 9_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o its_o honour_n give_v to_o angel_n §_o 10._o and_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n §_o 11._o our_o church_n have_v take_v great_a care_n that_o a_o special_a honour_n be_v have_v to_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n day_n nor_o any_o other_o festival_n be_v abuse_v to_o luxury_n and_o impiety_n §_o 12._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n with_o reference_n to_o its_o music_n and_o psalmody_n §_o 13._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o appoint_a fast_o the_o lenten_a or_o paschal_n fast_o how_o far_o religious_a by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 234_o chap._n x._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n §_o 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n raise_v no_o strife_n about_o word_n relate_v thereunto_o §_o 2._o her_o moderation_n in_o what_o be_v assert_v of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n §_o 3._o in_o that_o her_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o suitable_a to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o appointment_n §_o 4._o in_o that_o our_o church_n do_v not_o make_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o depend_v upon_o unrequire_v condition_n in_o reference_n to_o holy_a baptism_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n do_v make_v nothing_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o baptism_n but_o the_o use_n of_o the_o invariable_a form_n §_o 2._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o infant_n unbaptise_v
her_o sound_n and_o charitable_a judgement_n of_o such_o as_o die_v after_o baptism_n §_o 3._o in_o some_o necessary_a caution_n refer_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n §_o 4._o refer_v also_o to_o the_o susceptor_n §_o 5._o in_o what_o be_v require_v of_o they_o who_o administer_v that_o sacrament_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o our_o lord_n §_o 1._o the_o same_o be_v with_o we_o celebrate_v in_o both_o kind_n §_o 2._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v reject_v by_o our_o church_n not_o run_v to_o the_o other_o extreme_a of_o deny_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n §_o 3._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o comply_v with_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o age_n but_o not_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o who_o require_v their_o people_n to_o communicate_v not_o so_o much_o as_o thrice_o a_o year_n §_o 4._o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n require_v after_o confirmation_n but_o not_o after_o the_o rigid_a examination_n of_o some_o or_o the_o auricular_a confession_n of_o other_o neither_o be_v it_o make_v a_o private_a banquet_n §_o 5._o in_o our_o church_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o eucharist_n without_o communicant_n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o other_o rubric_n refer_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n p._n 272_o chap._n xi_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o other_o right_n and_o usage_n §_o 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o judgement_n and_o use_n of_o confirmation_n §_o 2._o concern_v matrimony_n allow_v her_o clergy_n to_o marry_v afford_v opportunity_n of_o voluntary_a celibacy_n in_o our_o university_n according_a to_o a_o commendable_a moderation_n undue_a degree_n of_o marriage_n and_o some_o particular_a time_n forbid_v etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o in_o reference_n to_o holy_a order_n 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o consecrate_v minister_n 2._o in_o take_v care_n to_o have_v they_o be_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v both_o before_o and_o after_o ordination_n with_o good_a effect_n 3._o yet_o if_o not_o so_o great_a as_o be_v desire_v why_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v 4._o in_o retain_v such_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n as_o be_v primitive_a 5._o the_o moderate_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v such_o as_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o elsewhere_o 6._o our_o church_n endeavour_v to_o preserve_v all_o due_a regard_n to_o whatever_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n 7._o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n assert_v in_o our_o church_n with_o due_a moderation_n §_o 4._o of_o penance_n 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n between_o those_o who_o sleight_n penance_n and_o those_o who_o explain_v it_o extravagant_o 2._o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v require_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o design_n of_o repentance_n 3._o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n in_o our_o church_n be_v as_o sacred_a as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v 4._o the_o use_n of_o external_n penance_n in_o our_o church_n according_a to_o due_a moderation_n 5._o the_o use_n of_o absolution_n in_o our_o church_n maintain_v according_a to_o a_o just_a temper_n §_o 5._o for_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_n 1._o the_o worthy_a care_n of_o the_o church_n therein_o and_o some_o instance_n of_o its_o moderation_n refer_v thereunto_o 2._o our_o church_n care_n for_o prepare_v those_o who_o be_v of_o her_o communion_n for_o death_n without_o extreme_a unction_n in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o many_o instance_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n refer_v to_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a p._n 289_o chap._n xii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o what_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n own_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v only_o spiritual_a §_o 2._o all_o other_o power_n which_o ecclesiastical_a person_n receive_v be_v ready_o acknowledge_v entire_o depend_v on_o the_o favour_n of_o our_o king_n §_o 3._o the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n be_v excellent_o accommodate_v in_o our_o constitution_n which_o be_v not_o do_v in_o other_o model_n §_o 4._o the_o pious_a moderation_n of_o our_o king_n preserve_v their_o own_o rightful_a supremacy_n and_o leave_v to_o the_o church_n the_o exercise_n of_o their_o spiritual_a power_n acknowledge_v by_o our_o church_n §_o 5._o the_o just_a right_n of_o king_n shameful_o invade_v by_o other_o sect_n pretend_v divine_a right_n concern_v which_o claim_n the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n observe_v §_o 6._o the_o dutiful_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o assert_v monarchy_n the_o first_o canon_n 1640._o justify_v §_o 7._o all_o interest_n of_o humane_a society_n especial_o of_o subject_n allegiance_n in_o our_o church_n abundant_o secure_v which_o be_v not_o do_v by_o those_o in_o separation_n from_o she_o §_o 8._o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o church_n be_v frame_v with_o great_a mildness_n and_o moderation_n §_o 9_o the_o same_o compare_v with_o the_o mild_a obligation_n which_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n pretend_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n lay_v upon_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n §_o 10._o sundry_a instance_n of_o our_o church_n great_a regard_n to_o equity_n p._n 331_o chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n refer_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o public_a law_n towards_o offender_n §_o 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o mistake_v which_o be_v concern_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o coercion_n in_o case_n which_o concern_v religion_n §_o 2._o it_o may_v be_v very_o well_o consistent_a with_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o her_o own_o censure_n to_o approve_v and_o sometime_o desire_v such_o coercion_n §_o 3._o the_o use_v thereof_o in_o many_o case_n relate_v to_o religion_n the_o undeniable_a right_n of_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n §_o 4._o some_o of_o the_o chief_a objection_n hereunto_o answer_v §_o 5._o sundry_a proper_a instance_n of_o the_o great_a gentleness_n and_o most_o indulgent_a care_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o all_o its_o member_n §_o 6._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n not_o without_o their_o requisite_a and_o just_a bound_n §_o 7._o the_o recourse_n which_o our_o church_n desire_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o secular_a arm_n be_v not_o but_o upon_o urgent_a and_o good_a occasion_n §_o 8._o our_o government_n defend_v from_o unjust_a clamour_n of_o persecution_n of_o the_o romanist_n on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o separatist_n on_o the_o other_o §_o 9_o the_o king_n of_o england_n since_o the_o reformation_n and_o especial_o his_o present_a majesty_n glorious_a example_n of_o this_o moderation_n the_o effect_n of_o this_o moderation_n yet_o much_o desire_v and_o want_v p._n 353_o chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o general_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o all_o that_o differ_v from_o she_o and_o be_v in_o error_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n take_v universal_a care_n to_o satisfy_v and_o reconcile_v those_o who_o differ_v from_o she_o particular_o our_o domestic_a dissenter_n to_o who_o sundry_a concession_n have_v be_v make_v §_o 2._o our_o church_n be_v not_o forward_o to_o denounce_v curse_n against_o those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o she_o §_o 3._o our_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v all_o according_a to_o the_o consequence_n of_o their_o doctrine_n §_o 4._o in_o refuse_v a_o adverse_a party_n our_o church_n give_v a_o excellent_a example_n not_o to_o use_v odious_a name_n §_o 5._o our_o church_n use_v great_a care_n to_o preserve_v and_o restore_v peace_n §_o 6._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n give_v it_o a_o singular_a advantage_n to_o convince_v dissenter_n upon_o right_n and_o proper_a principle_n §_o 7._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n do_v incomparable_o qualify_v she_o to_o arbitrate_v and_o reconcile_v the_o present_a difference_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n §_o 8._o a_o supposition_n lay_v down_o of_o the_o most_o possible_a mean_n of_o reconcile_a a_o protestant_a and_o such_o a_o romanist_n as_o lays_z aside_o infallibility_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v do_v her_o part_n in_o what_o be_v fit_a towards_o any_o just_a reconciliation_n §_o 9_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o common_a calumny_n of_o the_o separatist_n that_o our_o governor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v more_o peace_n and_o reconciliation_n for_o papist_n than_o for_o the_o most_o moderate_a protestant_a dissenter_n p._n 385_o chap._n xv._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n towards_o other_o church_n and_o profession_n of_o men._n §_o 1._o in_o that_o universal_a concord_n which_o our_o church_n have_v maintain_v with_o all_o so_o far_o as_o lawful_o and_o useful_o it_o may_v §_o 2._o her_o protest_v
gospel_n ch._n 1._o v._n 7._o but_o unto_o they_o of_o philippi_n also_o be_v this_o grace_n give_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n v._o 29._o §_o 3._o thus_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o exhortation_n of_o s._n paul_n here_o to_o moderation_n be_v indeed_o direct_v by_o he_o absolute_o to_o the_o patient_a and_o suffer_a sort_n of_o christian_n which_o let_v those_o take_v notice_n of_o especial_o who_o affect_v so_o much_o to_o be_v count_v the_o suffer_a party_n which_o if_o they_o be_v who_o call_v themselves_o so_o than_o the_o apostle_n speak_v more_o to_o they_o than_o any_o let_v your_o moderation_n be_v know_v unto_o all_o etc._n all_o of_o this_o perhaps_o they_o may_v be_v better_o satisfy_v from_o mr._n pool_n synopsis_fw-la criticorum_fw-la de_fw-fr afflictionibus_fw-la hîc_fw-la agitur_fw-la zanch._n ver._n er._n bez._n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n only_o make_v the_o martyr_n some_o may_v suffer_v indeed_o just_o as_o a_o due_a reward_n of_o their_o deed_n through_o their_o own_o ill_a will_n other_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 1_o s._n pet._n 4._o 16_o 19_o when_o they_o have_v do_v nothing_o amiss_o s._n luke_n 23._o 41._o and_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o real_a case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherefore_o we_o serious_o wish_v they_o will_v present_v themselves_o real_a example_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o who_o make_v so_o much_o noise_n of_o the_o word_n we_o may_v hearty_o wish_v they_o who_o seem_v so_o earnest_a for_o moderation_n will_v consider_v whether_o it_o seem_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o equal_a temper_n of_o mind_n recommend_v in_o the_o text_n for_o all_o to_o be_v dispose_v to_o interpret_v every_o thing_n to_o the_o best_a and_o to_o go_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v for_o peace_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n and_o compliance_n with_o what_o be_v enjoin_v i_o wish_v such_o will_v please_v to_o consider_v and_o read_v the_o word_n in_o their_o true_a sense_n with_o any_o of_o those_o version_n which_o be_v give_v of_o they_o let_v your_o equity_n castell_n equity_n bez._n castell_n your_o gentleness_n ham._n gentleness_n trem._n dr._n ham._n your_o patient_a mind_n par._n mind_n our_o old_a english_a tr._n erasm_n par._n your_o take_v all_o in_o good_a part_n com._n part_n bez_n com._n your_o reasonable_a conversation_n ambr._n conversation_n s._n ambr._n your_o modesty_n hier._n modesty_n vulg._n lat._n s._n hier._n your_o give_a way_n one_o to_o another_o erasmus_n another_o erasmus_n your_o moderation_n be_v know_v unto_o all_o §_o 4._o that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o clear_o understand_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n we_o will_v further_o inquire_v into_o their_o false_a notion_n of_o moderation_n who_o so_o vehement_o seem_v to_o require_v it_o in_o our_o church_n which_o requiry_n be_v make_v either_o to_o private_a person_n or_o to_o those_o in_o authority_n 1._o when_o private_a person_n be_v call_v upon_o to_o let_v their_o moderation_n be_v know_v unto_o all_o man_n they_o as_o far_o as_o they_o know_v their_o own_o mind_n themselves_o and_o be_v not_o averse_a to_o declare_v it_o in_o their_o writing_n and_o other_o expression_n of_o their_o meaning_n undeniable_a by_o moderation_n will_v have_v 1._o either_o a_o indifferency_n whether_o they_o do_v or_o do_v not_o what_o be_v require_v or_o 2._o they_o mean_v a_o omission_n of_o what_o be_v appoint_v or_o 3._o they_o understand_v by_o it_o the_o do_v quite_o contrary_a when_o appeal_v for_o moderation_n be_v make_v to_o governor_n by_o moderation_n they_o will_v understand_v either_o 1._o a_o forbearance_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o law_n especial_o which_o relate_v to_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a or_o 2._o a_o abolition_n of_o they_o or_o 3._o a_o utter_a alteration_n of_o government_n so_o that_o all_o the_o burden_n for_o moderation_n relate_v to_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o obligation_n and_o observance_n of_o the_o law_n especial_o of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o whole_a sense_n of_o moderation_n do_v contain_v many_o odd_a supposition_n particular_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o communion_n be_v very_o unlawful_a very_o immoderate_a and_o inexpedient_a wherefore_o if_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n we_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o entire_a constitution_n of_o our_o church_n do_v exhibit_v as_o great_a moderation_n and_o as_o equal_a temper_n as_o any_o church_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v or_o ever_o do_v since_o the_o primitive_a time_n we_o shall_v justify_v our_o constitution_n from_o those_o exception_n mention_v and_o a_o thousand_o time_n as_o many_o more_o as_o they_o can_v raise_v for_o suppose_v at_o present_a which_o afterward_o i_o shall_v plain_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o communion_n be_v not_o unlawful_a and_o that_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v and_o what_o relate_v thereunto_o be_v very_o moderate_a than_o it_o will_v plain_o and_o necessary_o follow_v 1._o that_o a_o indifference_n in_o do_v or_o not_o do_v what_o be_v require_v or_o a_o omission_n of_o what_o be_v matter_n of_o duty_n or_o do_v quite_o contrary_a must_v needs_o be_v so_o far_o from_o moderation_n that_o it_o will_v appear_v to_o be_v a_o great_a affront_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o well-setled_n kingdom_n and_o church_n and_o the_o more_o moderate_a this_o be_v the_o high_a will_v be_v the_o aggravation_n of_o their_o crime_n 2._o as_o to_o the_o forbearance_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o such_o law_n i_o shall_v only_o say_v thus_o much_o that_o if_o for_o political_a consideration_n superior_n shall_v give_v way_n at_o any_o time_n to_o such_o a_o forbearance_n it_o may_v not_o be_v unseasonable_a to_o consider_v as_o among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n permit_v or_o tolerate_v not_o for_o their_o own_o goodness_n but_o because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n so_o when_o constitution_n equal_a in_o themselves_o be_v remit_v in_o consideration_n only_o of_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o people_n the_o people_n ought_v to_o be_v instruct_v of_o the_o reason_n they_o have_v to_o be_v humble_v for_o their_o own_o imperfection_n that_o they_o may_v not_o glory_v in_o their_o shame_n lest_o they_o go_v on_o to_o take_v heart_n against_o the_o law_n and_o accustom_v themselves_o to_o frowardness_n 3._o as_o to_o change_v or_o abolition_n of_o law_n i_o only_o here_o touch_v upon_o what_o hereafter_o will_v be_v more_o ample_o show_v that_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v such_o that_o she_o always_o have_v public_o profess_v that_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n and_o particular_a form_n of_o worship_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a and_o mutable_a and_o it_o be_v notorious_a matter_n of_o fact_n among_o we_o that_o the_o church_n have_v often_o make_v those_o alteration_n which_o occasion_n have_v require_v and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n can_v do_v the_o like_a again_o 4._o as_o to_o a_o utter_a alteration_n of_o the_o government_n which_o some_o there_o be_v will_v look_v at_o as_o a_o prime_a point_n of_o moderation_n i_o shall_v be_v very_o injurious_a to_o truth_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o observe_v that_o some_o who_o begin_v with_o but_o desire_v of_o moderation_n never_o leave_v till_o they_o end_v in_o the_o utter_a subversion_n and_o extirpation_n of_o what_o they_o declare_v themselves_o averse_a from_o which_o render_v this_o undertake_n more_o necessary_a thus_o king_n charles_n i._o 11._o i._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d med._n 11._o take_v notice_n of_o some_o reformer_n who_o by_o vulgar_a clamour_n and_o assistance_n do_v demand_v not_o only_a toleration_n of_o themselves_o in_o their_o vanity_n novelty_n and_o confusion_n but_o also_o abolition_n of_o law_n against_o they_o and_o a_o total_a extirpation_n of_o that_o government_n who_o right_n they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o invade_v last_o to_o take_v their_o word_n in_o the_o most_o mild_a sense_n not_o for_o a_o absolute_a change_n of_o the_o entire_a government_n but_o for_o such_o a_o alteration_n of_o the_o law_n as_o seem_v to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d moderation_n as_o it_o be_v sometime_o take_v for_o a_o correction_n of_o the_o law_n by_o equity_n most_o know_a unto_o all_o it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n never_o refuse_v this_o but_o in_o case_n of_o such_o mitigation_n and_o remission_n as_o be_v call_v for_o we_o must_v consider_v there_o be_v general_o suppose_v either_o a_o unjust_a sentence_n or_o some_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n or_o some_o great_a inconvenience_n attend_v all_o which_o the_o wisdom_n of_o government_n will_v not_o hasty_o and_o at_o every_o motion_n determine_v especial_o when_o such_o alteration_n be_v challenge_v as_o matter_n of_o
church_n have_v plentiful_o instance_a but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o judge_v the_o same_o moderation_n find_v among_o themselves_o they_o seem_v to_o mention_v it_o with_o a_o great_a joy_n bohem._n joy_n retinemus_fw-la ex_fw-la singulis_fw-la regiminibus_fw-la exquisitam_fw-la temperaturam_fw-la j._n a._n comenius_n de_fw-fr ord._n eccl._n apud_fw-la bohem._n and_o count_v the_o same_o worthy_a of_o imitation_n 225._o imitation_n atque_fw-la hîc_fw-la commemorare_fw-la libet_fw-la ad_fw-la exemplum_fw-la quantâ_fw-la sapientiâ_fw-la quantoque_fw-la temperamento_fw-la compositae_fw-la fuerint_fw-la precationum_fw-la formulae_fw-la quibus_fw-la gall._n &_o genev._n utuntur_fw-la amyrald_n de_fw-fr secess_n ab_fw-la eccl._n rom._n p._n 225._o §_o 3._o wherefore_o the_o most_o general_a and_o inartificial_a but_o most_o plain_a proof_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n such_o a_o proof_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o evince_v the_o whole_a enquiry_n be_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o church_n among_o her_o adversary_n that_o be_v as_o the_o 7._o canon_n 1640._o have_v it_o between_o the_o groundless_a suspicion_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o the_o aspersion_n of_o the_o malicious_a cerem_fw-la malicious_a pref._n to_o the_o liturgy_n conc_fw-fr cerem_fw-la between_o those_o addict_v to_o their_o old_a custom_n and_o the_o new-fangled_a who_o will_v innovate_v all_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v be_v a_o patient_a sufferer_n and_o as_o the_o true_a religion_n have_v always_o be_v try_v by_o real_a persecution_n of_o its_o extreme_a adversary_n and_o thereby_o have_v become_v more_o approve_v and_o more_o glorious_a so_o by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n this_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v have_v its_o essay_n in_o two_o very_a refine_n trial_n 1._o immediate_o after_o the_o reformation_n in_o its_o persecution_n from_o those_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n and_o late_o in_o its_o second_o trial_n from_o other_o domestic_a adversary_n from_o both_o which_o sufficient_a proof_n the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n may_v be_v know_v unto_o all_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a condition_n the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v the_o ancient_a catholic_n faith_n and_o yet_o the_o romanist_n condemn_v she_o of_o novelty_n in_o her_o doctrine_n she_o practise_v church_n government_n as_o it_o have_v be_v in_o use_n in_o all_o age_n and_o place_n where_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v take_v any_o root_n both_o in_o and_o ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o yet_o the_o separatist_n condemn_v she_o for_o anti-christianism_a in_o her_o discipline_n the_o plain_a truth_n be_v she_o be_v betwixt_o these_o two_o faction_n as_o between_o two_o millstone_n and_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o while_o both_o these_o press_n hard_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o of_o they_o cry_v out_o upon_o persecution_n pref._n persecution_n archbishop_n laud_n against_o fisher_n pref._n among_o who_o she_o be_v place_v as_o a_o humble_a representation_n of_o her_o bless_a saviour_n for_o as_o he_o be_v crucify_a amid_o criminal_n so_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v most_o constant_o suffer_v betwixt_o such_o faction_n and_o sect_n of_o man_n as_o have_v run_v into_o the_o utmost_a extreme_n from_o the_o judgement_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n such_o be_v the_o romanist_n and_o other_o sectary_n and_o schismatic_n among_o we_o thus_o manasseh_n vex_v ephraim_n and_o ephraim_n manasseh_n and_o both_o against_o judah_n be_v 9_o 21._o thus_o herod_n and_o pontius_n pilate_n otherwise_o at_o variance_n become_v friend_n to_o be_v but_o the_o worse_a enemy_n to_o our_o saviour_n thus_o both_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n oppose_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o afterward_o the_o late_a jew_n and_o the_o circumcellion_n join_v against_o the_o catholic_n christian_n and_o since_o judaisme_n and_o gentilism_n have_v be_v overcome_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o corruption_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v arisen_a from_o its_o own_o professor_n which_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o christianity_n into_o popery_n and_o other_o sect_n among_o we_o for_o what_o be_v best_a in_o itself_o be_v worst_a when_o corrupt_v and_o as_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o perfection_n of_o other_o philosophy_n so_o these_o corruption_n of_o christianity_n have_v in_o they_o much_o of_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o judaisme_n and_o the_o worst_a imitation_n of_o gentilism_n and_o now_o how_o earnest_o do_v the_o several_a faction_n from_o rome_n and_o the_o whole_a gang_n of_o sect_n among_o we_o oppose_v our_o church_n who_o wise_a moderation_n and_o excellent_a constitution_n do_v place_n she_o amid_o such_o extreme_n between_o the_o ignes_fw-la fatui_fw-la pretender_n to_o new_a light_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o boutfeau_n the_o malcontented_n incendiary_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n between_o both_o these_o we_o must_v be_v serve_v as_o the_o guest_n of_o procrustes_n theseo_n procrustes_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d plutarch_n in_o theseo_n be_v in_o his_o famous_a bed_n the_o romanist_n think_v we_o too_o short_a and_o deficient_a in_o most_o of_o our_o measure_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v we_o stretch_v if_o not_o upon_o the_o rack_n the_o sectary_n count_v we_o redundant_fw-la in_o many_o superfluity_n and_o will_v fain_o have_v we_o cut_v precise_o according_a to_o their_o model_n so_o their_o mutual_a testimony_n right_o apply_v may_v thus_o far_o be_v accept_v that_o indeed_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o neither_o extreme_a but_o real_o do_v bear_v the_o test_n to_o be_v in_o the_o golden_a mean_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o excellent_a hammond_n begin_v his_o preface_n to_o his_o view_n of_o the_o directory_n there_o be_v no_o sure_a evidence_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o to_o discern_v the_o great_a excellency_n of_o moderation_n in_o that_o book_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o the_o apportionateness_n of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v design_v than_o the_o experience_n of_o these_o so_o contrary_a fate_n which_o it_o have_v constant_o undergo_v betwixt_o the_o persecutor_n on_o both_o extreme_a part_n the_o assertor_n of_o the_o papacy_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o consistory_n on_o the_o other_o the_o one_o accuse_v it_o of_o schism_n the_o other_o of_o compliance_n the_o one_o of_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o other_o of_o remain_v with_o it_o like_o the_o poor_a greek_a church_n our_o fellow_n martyr_n devour_v by_o the_o turk_n for_o too_o much_o christian_a profession_n and_o damn_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o too_o little_a it_o be_v the_o dictate_v of_o natural_a reason_n in_o aristotle_n that_o the_o middle_a virtue_n be_v most_o infallible_o know_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v accuse_v by_o either_o extreme_a as_o guilty_a of_o the_o other_o for_o as_o s._n greg._n nazianzen_n in_o his_o three_o oration_n of_o peace_n 〈◊〉_d peace_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v whatsoever_o be_v peaceable_a and_o moderate_a do_v suffer_v much_o of_o both_o the_o extreme_n and_o either_o be_v despise_v or_o resist_v of_o which_o sort_n while_o we_o be_v now_o who_o blame_v what_o be_v amiss_o we_o therefore_o be_v place_v as_o in_o a_o seat_n of_o strife_n and_o envy_n and_o no_o wonder_n if_o we_o be_v bruise_v in_o piece_n between_o both_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o more_o certain_a argument_n of_o the_o equal_a and_o just_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o that_o the_o faction_n among_o we_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o join_v with_o the_o romanist_n in_o the_o very_a same_o accusation_n it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o give_v more_o particular_a instance_n of_o the_o real_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o respect_n to_o her_o rule_n of_o faith_n §_o 1._o in_o hold_v to_o her_o true_a and_o just_a measure_n as_o be_v prove_v from_o her_o article_n and_o canon_n and_o other_o monument_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 2._o in_o her_o avoid_v the_o extreme_n of_o those_o who_o take_v away_o from_o the_o due_a perfection_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o other_o who_o seem_v officious_o to_o add_v thereunto_o §_o 3._o in_o her_o judgement_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o use_n of_o such_o consequence_n as_o be_v due_o draw_v from_o thence_o §_o 4._o in_o reference_n to_o the_o version_n and_o translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n several_a instance_n of_o moderation_n in_o our_o church_n §_o 5._o in_o her_o order_n also_o for_o dispense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o all_o within_o her_o communion_n §_o 6._o in_o govern_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o commune_v on_o the_o same_o §_o 7._o in_o her_o judgement_n of_o the_o canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a book_n §_o 8._o the_o divine_a authority_n
of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n our_o church_n rather_o do_v take_v for_o grant_v than_o prove_v too_o laborious_o or_o uncertain_o §_o 9_o all_o immoderate_a extravagancy_n concern_v interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n avoid_v by_o our_o church_n §_o 1._o whereas_o moderation_n have_v its_o name_n and_o be_v from_o the_o equal_a measure_n observe_v by_o it_o the_o first_o instance_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v most_o proper_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o right_a rule_n and_o measure_n in_o religion_n which_o this_o church_n of_o we_o constant_o receive_v and_o hold_v close_o to_o by_o which_o she_o be_v safe_o preserve_v from_o all_o undue_a extreme_n have_v to_o herself_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o her_o moderation_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o age_n have_v have_v such_o a_o rule_n as_o be_v beyond_o all_o exception_n and_o be_v of_o undeniable_a authority_n namely_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o same_o right_a and_o just_a measure_n by_o which_o she_o measure_v out_o to_o other_o and_o desire_n to_o be_v measure_v by_o herself_o in_o whatever_o she_o receive_v and_o deliver_v out_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o require_v practice_n in_o the_o necessary_a part_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n whereas_o next_o to_o the_o extreme_a of_o they_o who_o have_v no_o religion_n nor_o no_o rule_n the_o vanity_n and_o extravagance_n of_o those_o be_v very_o notorious_a who_o set_v up_o themselves_o to_o be_v their_o own_o rule_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o enthusiasm_n on_o the_o other_o between_o that_o rock_n and_o this_o gulf_n the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n do_v safe_o conduct_v its_o own_o judgement_n and_o practice_n and_o all_o that_o follow_v she_o in_o the_o six_o article_n of_o religion_n see_v how_o our_o church_n do_v own_o the_o perfection_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n holy_a scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o read_v therein_o nor_o may_v be_v prove_v thereby_o be_v not_o require_v of_o any_o man_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v believe_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o be_v think_v requisite_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v require_v herself_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o she_o own_o 1603._o own_o canon_n 3._o 1603._o as_o a_o true_a and_o apostolical_a church_n be_v because_o she_o teach_v and_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o four_o canon_n the_o church_n censure_v all_o impugner_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v her_o form_n contain_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o 36._o canon_n article_n 2._o all_o who_o be_v to_o subscribe_v be_v willing_o and_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la to_o affirm_v that_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n and_o of_o order_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n contain_v in_o it_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o article_n 3_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v all_o and_o every_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 19_o article_n of_o religion_n the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v define_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a man_n in_o the_o which_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v due_o administer_v according_a to_o christ_n ordinance_n and_o in_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n it_o be_v ask_v be_v you_o persuade_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v sufficient_o all_o doctrine_n require_v of_o necessity_n for_o eternal_a salvation_n through_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v you_o determine_v with_o the_o say_a scripture_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o your_o charge_n and_o to_o teach_v nothing_o as_o require_v of_o necessity_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n but_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v persuade_v may_v be_v conclude_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o answer_n be_v i_o be_o so_o persuade_v and_o have_v so_o determine_v by_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o 20_o article_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v declare_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o church_n to_o ordain_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n write_v neither_o to_o expound_v one_o place_n that_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o another_o from_o all_o which_o passage_n and_o many_o more_o which_o may_v be_v repeat_v out_o of_o the_o monument_n of_o our_o church_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o as_o our_o church_n be_v form_v in_o her_o whole_a constitution_n with_o a_o uniform_a respect_n to_o this_o rule_n and_o have_v frame_v her_o article_n liturgy_n homily_n and_o order_n thereby_o so_o it_o do_v require_v herself_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o those_o but_o in_o subordination_n to_o this_o rule_n and_o measure_n as_o before_o and_o superior_a to_o itself_o which_o do_v manifest_v the_o exception_n of_o many_o of_o the_o separation_n to_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a who_o seem_v to_o give_v such_o deference_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n renounce_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o do_v so_o religious_o hold_v to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n of_o which_o our_o church_n in_o union_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v a_o sure_a keeper_n a_o faithful_a witness_n a_o zealous_a defender_n and_o a_o most_o sober_a interpreter_n §_o 2._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n further_o appear_v in_o avoid_v the_o extreme_n of_o those_o who_o take_v away_o from_o the_o true_a perfection_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o other_o who_o seem_v officious_o to_o add_v thereunto_o of_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o those_o who_o detract_v from_o the_o true_a perfection_n of_o scripture_n be_v they_o who_o frame_v a_o additional_a canon_n of_o their_o own_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v who_o declare_v that_o the_o apocryphal_a write_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o inferior_a nor_o less_o canonical_a than_o the_o sovereign_n dictate_v of_o god_n as_o well_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o doctrinal_a point_n pertain_v to_o faith_n as_o for_o order_v of_o life_n and_o manner_n and_o that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o aught_o to_o be_v embrace_v with_o the_o same_o affection_n of_o piety_n and_o receive_v with_o the_o like_a religious_a reverence_n 1_o reverence_n council_n trid._n sess_n 4._o decr._n 1_o not_o make_v any_o difference_n between_o they_o thus_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o good_a work_n christ_n reprove_v the_o law_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n because_o they_o be_v set_v up_o so_o high_a as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v equal_a with_o god_n law_n and_o above_o they_o they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a that_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n for_o you_o leave_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o keep_v your_o own_o tradition_n yet_o he_o mean_v not_o thereby_o to_o overthrow_v man_n commandment_n for_o he_o himself_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o prince_n and_o their_o law_n make_v for_o good_a order_n on_o the_o other_o extreme_a they_o of_o the_o separation_n among_o we_o be_v busy_a to_o attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n such_o a_o perfection_n as_o god_n never_o intend_v they_o namely_o particular_o to_o determine_v of_o all_o action_n of_o mankind_n and_o every_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n in_o religion_n between_o these_o two_o see_v by_o how_o even_o a_o thread_n our_o church_n divide_v the_o controversy_n first_o assert_v the_o real_a perfection_n of_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n to_o be_v as_o much_o as_o need_v to_o be_v to_o be_v as_o great_a a_o perfection_n as_o god_n have_v give_v it_o in_o order_n to_o its_o end_n namely_o to_o guide_v our_o belief_n and_o practice_n in_o thing_n needful_a to_o salvation_n article_n 20._o beside_o the_o same_o namely_o god_n word_n write_v ought_v not_o the_o church_n to_o enforce_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o same_o article_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o church_n to_o ordain_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n write_v yet_o the_o article_n begin_v thus_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o decree_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o have_v authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n wherein_o according_a to_o a_o accurate_a moderation_n the_o church_n do_v behave_v itself_o in_o attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n their_o just_a and_o full_a perfection_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n our_o church_n do_v thankful_o accept_v of_o that_o christian_a liberty_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v she_o and_o indeed_o which_o he_o have_v give_v all_o particular_a christian_n according_a to_o their_o
for_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v make_v agreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o old_a father_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o profitable_a and_o commodious_a it_o be_v more_o profitable_a because_o there_o be_v leave_v out_o many_o thing_n whereof_o some_o be_v untrue_a some_o uncertain_a some_o vain_a and_o superstitious_a and_o nothing_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v read_v but_o the_o very_a pure_a word_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o language_n and_o order_n as_o be_v most_o easy_a and_o plain_a for_o the_o understanding_n both_o of_o the_o reader_n and_o the_o hearer_n it_o be_v also_o more_o commodious_a both_o for_o the_o shortness_n thereof_o and_o for_o the_o plainness_n of_o the_o order_n and_o that_o the_o rule_v be_v few_o and_o easy_a since_o the_o reformation_n those_o who_o love_v not_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o any_o good_a bound_n when_o they_o read_v the_o bible_n choose_v to_o do_v it_o out_o of_o all_o canonical_a order_n or_o general_o snap_v upon_o the_o chapter_n fortuitous_o or_o affect_v for_o their_o most_o common_a read_v the_o most_o difficult_a book_n and_o chapter_n the_o wisdom_n of_o our_o church_n have_v provide_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n may_v be_v read_v out_o every_o year_n once_o 12._o once_o tale_n aliquid_fw-la audio_fw-la esse_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la anglicanâ_fw-la in_o quâ_fw-la psalterium_fw-la singulis_fw-la mensibus_fw-la all_o solvitur_fw-la &_o totum_fw-la utrumque_fw-la testamentum_fw-la unico_fw-la anno_fw-la continuatâ_fw-la lectione_n percurritur_fw-la utinam_fw-la reliquae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la reformatae_fw-la etc._n etc._n spala●ensis_n l._n 7._o c._n 12._o all_o the_o psalm_n once_o every_o month_n and_o the_o new_a testament_n thrice_o every_o year_n read_v year_n v._o the_o order_n how_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v read_v yet_o with_o this_o moderation_n some_o difficult_a and_o very_a mysterious_a place_n be_v except_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o church_n declare_v though_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o genealogy_n and_o pedigree_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o plain_a ignorant_a people_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o impertinent_o utter_v in_o all_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o bible_n but_o may_v serve_v to_o spiritual_a purpose_n in_o some_o respect_n to_o all_o such_o as_o will_v bestow_v their_o labour_n to_o search_v out_o the_o meaning_n part._n meaning_n homily_n of_o certain_a place_n of_o scripture_n 2_o part._n thus_o manifest_a be_v it_o that_o our_o church_n do_v real_o intend_v edification_n in_o her_o institution_n and_o can_v the_o wit_n of_o man_n office_n man_n b._n jer._n taylor_n pref._n to_o his_o collection_n of_o office_n conceive_v a_o better_a temper_n and_o expedient_a than_o this_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o such_o scripture_n only_o and_o principal_o shall_v be_v lay_v before_o they_o in_o daily_a office_n which_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o good_a life_n that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o complain_v that_o the_o fountain_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v stop_v from_o they_o nor_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o mysteriousness_n of_o scripture_n be_v abuse_v and_o further_o to_o prevent_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o the_o vulgar_a use_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o wholesome_a injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n 37._o elizabeth_n 1559_o §._o 37._o fit_v here_o to_o be_v mention_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v talk_v or_o reason_n of_o holy_a scripture_n rash_o or_o contentious_o nor_o maintain_v any_o false_a doctrine_n or_o error_n but_o shall_v commune_v on_o the_o same_o when_o occasion_n be_v give_v reverent_o humble_o and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n for_o his_o comfort_n and_o better_a understanding_n for_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o homily_n against_o contention_n too_o many_o there_o be_v which_o upon_o alebenche_n and_o other_o place_n delight_v to_o set_v forth_o certain_a question_n not_o so_o much_o pertain_v to_o edification_n as_o to_o vainglory_n whence_o they_o fall_v to_o chide_v and_o contention_n with_o reference_n to_o which_o injunction_n it_o be_v that_o some_o bishop_n in_o their_o article_n of_o enquiry_n have_v this_o for_o a_o question_n whether_o any_o be_v know_v in_o their_o diocese_n who_o profane_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o table-talk_a which_o be_v captious_o misunderstand_v by_o many_o in_o their_o intemperate_a heat_n against_o the_o bishop_n as_o if_o they_o thereby_o do_v forbid_v all_o sober_a conference_n on_o any_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n whereas_o the_o injunction_n of_o the_o queen_n which_o ought_v still_o to_o have_v effect_n shall_v reasonable_o interpret_v their_o enquiry_n which_o certain_o be_v the_o ground_n thereof_o beside_o many_o of_o those_o bishop_n themselves_o when_o master_n of_o college_n in_o the_o university_n observe_v and_o cause_v to_o be_v observe_v those_o statute_n which_o in_o most_o college_n require_v read_v of_o scripture_n at_o meal_n order_v that_o communication_n which_o be_v thereon_o to_o be_v such_o as_o in_o the_o queen_n injunction_n be_v beforementioned_a §_o 7._o our_o church_n according_a to_o great_a wisdom_n have_v receive_v such_o book_n as_o canonical_a of_o who_o authority_n there_o be_v never_o any_o doubt_n in_o the_o church_n 6._o church_n 39_o article_n 6._o scio_fw-la tamen_fw-la vualdensem_fw-la tenere_fw-la quod_fw-la declarandi_fw-la &_o approbandi_fw-la libros_fw-la sacros_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o serie_fw-la patrum_fw-la omnium_fw-la &_o fidelium_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n succedentium_fw-la fr._n s._n clara._n ad_fw-la artic._n confess_v angl._n 6._o reject_v what_o true_o be_v not_o of_o the_o canon_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thrust_v in_o of_o its_o own_o head_n and_o do_v not_o leave_v out_o any_o which_o be_v as_o many_o have_v do_v in_o other_o time_n and_o place_n in_o relation_n to_o those_o book_n who_o title_n be_v the_o apocrypha_fw-la the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n express_v a_o excellent_a temper_n 1._o in_o that_o in_o their_o title_n as_o of_o uncertain_a write_n they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o canonical_a 2._o all_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v not_o recommend_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n 3._o nor_o on_o all_o day_n particular_o not_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o such_o 4._o those_o our_o church_n do_v use_v together_o with_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o it_o plain_o and_o public_o declare_v in_o her_o six_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o as_o st_n hierom_n say_v 〈◊〉_d say_v s._n hier._n pres_n ad_fw-la ●ild_n v._o e●●phan_n c._n 〈◊〉_d for_o example_n of_o life_n and_o instruction_n of_o manner_n as_o clemens_n romanus_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o other_o such_o write_n be_v read_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n etc._n church_n sunt_fw-la &_o alii_fw-la libri_fw-la qui_fw-la leguntur_fw-la quidem_fw-la sed_fw-la nonscribuntur_fw-la in_o canone_o h._n de_fw-fr s._n vic._n cap._n 6._o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n but_o do_v not_o apply_v they_o to_o establish_v any_o doctrine_n as_o if_o they_o have_v such_o authority_n alone_o by_o themselves_o our_o church_n indeed_o do_v prefer_v they_o before_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a or_o private_a write_n because_o of_o the_o many_o excellent_a and_o sacred_a instruction_n in_o they_o for_o which_o good_a and_o religious_a use_n which_o may_v be_v make_v of_o they_o by_o all_o we_o do_v they_o the_o honour_n to_o bind_v they_o up_o with_o our_o bibles_n though_o we_o make_v they_o not_o of_o equal_a authority_n thereby_o or_o of_o divine_a inspiration_n as_o we_o do_v not_o also_o either_o the_o english_a meeter_n of_o the_o psalm_n or_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o translator_n of_o the_o bible_n §_o 8._o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n our_o church_n according_a to_o great_a wisdom_n do_v rather_o take_v for_o grant_v than_o labour_n much_o to_o prove_v such_o a_o undoubted_a principle_n of_o religion_n just_o suppose_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n either_o to_o question_v that_o the_o church_n have_v sure_o receive_v those_o divine_a oracle_n or_o sure_o deliver_v they_o and_o therefore_o our_o six_o article_n speak_v of_o they_o as_o of_o who_o authority_n there_o be_v never_o any_o doubt_n in_o the_o church_n our_o church_n just_o thus_o suppose_v immediate_o therefore_o apply_v herself_o in_o a_o exhortation_n to_o a_o diligent_a read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n homily_n 1_o and_o so_o long_o as_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v by_o any_o just_a mean_n convince_v of_o their_o authority_n our_o church_n according_a to_o a_o great_a moderation_n leave_v it_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n by_o what_o particular_a argument_n of_o the_o many_o which_o lie_v before_o we_o we_o may_v come_v to_o this_o satisfaction_n not_o cause_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o any_o to_o depend_v upon_o one_o sort_n
of_o mean_n to_o the_o neglect_n of_o another_o because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o argument_n which_o may_v sufficient_o satisfy_v any_o of_o their_o authority_n because_o some_o be_v convince_v by_o some_o other_o by_o other_o we_o be_v encourage_v in_o our_o church_n to_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n both_o from_o inward_a and_o outward_a motive_n both_o of_o divine_a and_o moral_a consideration_n but_o for_o our_o great_a certainty_n and_o safety_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a concern_v our_o church_n do_v not_o lay_v the_o weight_n of_o so_o great_a a_o cause_n on_o slight_a or_o uncertain_a foundation_n as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o demonstration_n from_o the_o evidence_n of_o oral_a tradition_n or_o the_o testimony_n only_o of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n hold_v by_o some_o so_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o convince_v every_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o without_o such_o a_o inward_a testimony_n there_o can_v be_v no_o kind_n of_o certainty_n whatsoever_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n excellent_o govern_v her_o judgement_n herein_o neither_o refuse_v the_o just_a authority_n of_o god_n true_a church_n nor_o deny_v any_o necessary_a influence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n according_a to_o which_o moderation_n guide_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n elsewhere_o to_o justify_v the_o real_a certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n ch_n 6._o §_o 8._o in_o convince_a also_o those_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n who_o do_v deny_v the_o same_o the_o wisdom_n and_o temper_n of_o our_o church_n prudent_o have_v omit_v a_o twofold_a medium_n as_o improper_a to_o confute_v obstinate_a adversary_n the_o one_o be_v of_o prove_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o scripture_n themselves_o which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n among_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v they_o as_o divine_v yet_o to_o other_o it_o can_v never_o stop_v the_o objection_n from_o return_v infinite_o if_o the_o objector_n please_v to_o be_v dissatisfy_v the_o other_o method_n be_v allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o though_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n yet_o those_o that_o dispute_v this_o point_n may_v not_o have_v the_o spirit_n neither_o can_v any_o one_o say_v so_o be_v a_o proper_a argument_n to_o convince_v another_o three_o our_o church_n avoid_v the_o circle_n of_o prove_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n again_o because_o our_o church_n do_v first_o acknowledge_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o superior_a to_o itself_o 20._o itself_o article_n 6._o &_o 20._o as_o one_o of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o against_o those_o who_o deny_v that_o principle_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n veracity_n it_o do_v dispute_v no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o reason_n convince_a the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n but_o as_o archbishop_n laud_n in_o his_o preface_n against_o fisher_n take_v notice_n while_o one_o faction_n cry_v up_o the_o church_n above_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o other_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n the_o scripture_n where_o it_o be_v plain_a shall_v guide_v the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n where_o there_o be_v doubt_n shall_v expound_v the_o scripture_n §_o 9_o whereas_o many_o run_v into_o very_o immoderate_a extravagancy_n concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n our_o church_n contain_v itself_o within_o very_o wise_a and_o just_a proportion_n in_o its_o judgement_n and_o practice_n concern_v this_o matter_n 1._o concern_v holy_a scripture_n it_o do_v own_o what_o the_o ancient_a father_n scrip._n father_n s._n chrys_n hom._n 3._o in●_n ●_z thess_n s._n aug._n in_o ps_n 8._o v._o second_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o h._n scrip._n have_v testify_v that_o what_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n of_o all_o either_o for_o knowledge_n or_o practice_n be_v so_o fair_a and_o intelligible_a and_o plain_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o that_o there_o need_v no_o interpreter_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o sense_n to_o they_o who_o understand_v the_o word_n 2._o for_o the_o understanding_n other_o place_n in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v more_o obscure_a our_o church_n do_v suppose_v and_o acknowledge_v plentiful_a mean_n allow_v of_o god_n both_o to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o and_o in_o the_o church_n to_o all_o particular_a person_n as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a that_o such_o place_n be_v understand_v for_o those_o which_o be_v mysterious_a and_o intricate_a be_v for_o the_o curious_a and_o wise_a to_o inquire_v into_o they_o be_v not_o the_o repository_n of_o salvation_n but_o instance_n of_o labour_n and_o occasion_n of_o humility_n and_o argument_n of_o mutual_a forbearance_n and_o a_o endearment_n of_o reverence_n and_o adoration_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n and_o our_o bishop_n taylor_n use_v to_o speak_v such_o mean_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o ordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o church_n the_o use_n of_o our_o reason_n especial_o in_o compare_v one_o scripture_n with_o another_o which_o excellent_a mean_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o holy_a writ_n our_o church_n herself_o do_v often_o use_v and_o recommend_v the_o same_o to_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o we_o speak_v proper_o we_o do_v not_o call_v the_o scripture_n the_o interpreter_n of_o itself_o nor_o proper_o a_o judge_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n pot_n faith_n s._n scripturam_fw-la judicem_fw-la qui_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la rectè_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la sed_fw-la siguratè_fw-la ●oquuntur_fw-la gro._n de_fw-fr imp●rio_n sum_n pot_n though_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o the_o judgement_n which_o be_v of_o doctrine_n be_v make_v and_o in_o analogy_n with_o which_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n also_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v but_o because_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o vulgar_n be_v mislead_v our_o church_n do_v send_v they_o frequent_o to_o their_o pastor_n and_o minister_n for_o public_a instruction_n and_o private_a advice_n and_o counsel_n and_o inferior_a minister_n it_o refer_v to_o their_o bishop_n 53._o bishop_n exhortation_n to_o the_o holy_a communion_n canon_n 53._o the_o same_o method_n our_o church_n direct_v for_o resolution_n of_o doubt_n which_o may_v arise_v refer_v to_o the_o liturgy_n church_n preface_n concern_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v so_o plain_o set_v forth_o but_o doubt_n may_v arise_v in_o the_o use_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o same_o to_o appease_v all_o such_o diversity_n if_o any_o arise_v and_o for_o the_o resolution_n of_o all_o doubt_n concern_v the_o manner_n how_o to_o understand_v do_v and_o execute_v the_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n the_o party_n that_o so_o doubt_n shall_v always_o resort_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n who_o by_o his_o discretion_n shall_v take_v order_n for_o the_o quiet_v and_o appease_v of_o the_o same_o and_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v in_o doubt_n he_o may_v send_v for_o the_o resolution_n thereof_o to_o the_o archbishop_n 3._o our_o church_n do_v not_o attribute_n more_o or_o less_o authority_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o than_o god_n have_v give_v it_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o here_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v illustrate_v from_o the_o manifold_a extravagancy_n other_o have_v run_v into_o in_o this_o matter_n on_o all_o side_n 1._o some_o make_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n the_o only_a immediate_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n unto_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o that_o at_o any_o time_n understand_v any_o thing_n thereof_o other_o run_v into_o another_o extreme_a of_o slight_v the_o illumination_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 2._o some_o assert_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o to_o have_v a_o infallible_a and_o absolute_a authority_n herein_o other_o deny_v both_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o all_o part_n thereof_o all_o authority_n to_o teach_v those_o under_o her_o discipline_n or_o interpret_v any_o scripture_n to_o they_o 3._o some_o have_v maintain_v that_o the_o public_a magistrate_n be_v the_o only_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n other_o deny_v he_o any_o kind_n of_o authority_n over_o or_o about_o the_o church_n 4._o there_o be_v those_o who_o make_v humane_a reason_n the_o only_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n other_o reject_v all_o use_n of_o reason_n in_o divine_a matter_n among_o these_o and_o many_o more_o extravagancy_n of_o man_n the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n keep_v on_o one_o hand_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o those_o who_o make_v such_o authority_n the_o rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n which_o
encourage_v also_o those_o other_o help_n which_o be_v any_o way_n useful_a to_o the_o better_a understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o namely_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n art_n and_o science_n and_o whatever_o else_o may_v improve_v the_o industry_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o enquir_a because_o as_o our_o homily_n say_v sacrament_n say_v hom._n of_o com._n pr._n and_o sacrament_n no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n otherwise_o than_o by_o diligent_a and_o earnest_a study_n and_o elsewhere_o part._n elsewhere_o hom._n of_o the_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n 2._o part._n the_o church_n take_v notice_n how_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n come_v in_o time_n of_o ignorance_n negligence_n and_o barbarity_n lament_v the_o waste_v make_v on_o learning_n by_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n and_o hunns_n they_o burn_a library_n so_o that_o learning_n and_o true_a religion_n go_v to_o wrack_n and_o decay_v incredible_o wherefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v be_v always_o a_o bountiful_a and_o careful_a cherisher_n and_o patron_n of_o our_o famous_a university_n as_o they_o have_v be_v and_o be_v most_o dutiful_a and_o zealous_a observer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o our_o church_n govern_v itself_o according_a to_o such_o just_a measure_n in_o the_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n we_o see_v she_o do_v neither_o practice_n nor_o encourage_v the_o turn_n of_o holy_a scripture_n into_o cabala_n and_o allegory_n as_o too_o many_o have_v precarious_o and_o groundless_o do_v according_a to_o the_o humour_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n our_o church_n observe_v that_o moderation_n which_o st_n austin_n commend_v 3._o commend_v de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l._n 17._o c._n 3._o when_o he_o blame_v some_o for_o one_o extreme_a that_o will_v allow_v no_o type_n or_o signification_n in_o thing_n do_v and_o record_v and_o other_o who_o contend_v all_o thing_n in_o scripture_n record_v have_v their_o allegorical_a interpretation_n 13._o interpretation_n mihi_fw-la multùm_fw-la errare_fw-la videntur_fw-la qui_fw-la nullas_fw-la res_fw-la gestas_fw-la aliquid_fw-la aliud_fw-la praeter_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la eo_fw-la modo_fw-la gesta_fw-la sunt_fw-la significare_fw-la arbitrantur_fw-la it_o a_o multùm_fw-la audere_fw-la qui_fw-la prorsus_fw-la ibi_fw-la omne_fw-la significationibus_fw-la allegoricis_fw-la involuta_fw-la esse_fw-la contendunt_fw-la erasin_n eccles_n l._n 3._o nunquam_fw-la dubia_fw-la aenigmatum_fw-la intelligentia_fw-la ad_fw-la autoritatem_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la proficere_fw-la s._n hieron_n in_o mat._n 13._o even_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n faith_n which_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n he_o call_v a_o grievous_a piece_n of_o impudence_n to_o hold_v yet_o as_o erasmus_n in_o his_o ecclesiaste_n add_v it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o doubt_v of_o such_o type_n and_o allegory_n which_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o §_o 7._o though_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n show_v itself_o in_o that_o it_o do_v not_o vainglorious_o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o it_o may_v well_o consist_v with_o her_o excellent_a modesty_n to_o believe_v of_o herself_o that_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n she_o have_v such_o a_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n in_o general_a the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o true_a part_n thereof_o subject_n to_o and_o govern_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o account_n in_o 139._o canon_n it_o require_v that_o the_o sacred_a synod_n of_o this_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o king_n authority_n assemble_v be_v acknowledge_v the_o true_a church_n of_o england_n by_o representation_n and_o it_o may_v be_v presume_v that_o where_o the_o lawful_a representative_a of_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v together_o right_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o want_v wherefore_o it_o argue_v immoderate_a presumption_n in_o they_o who_o receive_v with_o impious_a scorn_n our_o confession_n of_o our_o undoubted_a hope_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o her_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o these_o depraver_n of_o the_o scripture_n 9_o scripture_n qui_fw-la ingenium_fw-la suum_fw-la faciunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la s._n hier._n ep._n 9_o shall_v with_o glorious_a assurance_n affirm_v to_o themselves_o and_o their_o complice_n the_o wonderful_a illapse_n and_o impulse_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o contradict_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n 1._o church_n neque_fw-la id_fw-la defendere_fw-la velim_fw-la contra_fw-la consensum_fw-la antiquitatis_fw-la &_o spiritum_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la mecum_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la aliis_fw-la caveant_fw-la ilii_fw-la jam_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ille_fw-la privatus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la divisor_n perdet_fw-la fascini_fw-la svi_fw-la efficaciam_fw-la grotius_n ad_fw-la riu._n art_n 1._o and_o themselves_o and_o when_o also_o many_o pretender_n to_o a_o double_a portion_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v act_v as_o the_o elder_a son_n of_o belial_n whereas_o indeed_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a themselves_o for_o the_o interpret_n holy_a scripture_n and_o determine_v doubtful_a matter_n have_v be_v more_o often_o urge_v than_o understand_v yea_o if_o we_o can_v suppose_v it_o be_v not_o a_o precarious_a assertion_n to_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v a_o improper_a method_n to_o convince_v gainsayer_n yet_o to_o those_o who_o be_v out_o of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o most_o uncertain_a and_o insufficient_a testimony_n §_o 8._o many_o we_o know_v there_o have_v be_v and_o be_v who_o pretend_v to_o such_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o do_v the_o donatist_n of_o old_a make_v such_o miraculous_a testimony_n the_o necessary_a sign_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o somewhat_o like_o both_o these_o be_v the_o enthusiast_n of_o our_o late_a age_n who_o will_v make_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n special_a and_o singular_a to_o their_o enclosure_n affirm_v a_o particular_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o convey_v into_o our_o mind_n the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o assure_v all_o christian_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o salvation_n to_o furnish_v they_o with_o word_n and_o petition_n in_o prayer_n to_o convince_v any_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n our_o church_n declare_v part._n declare_v homily_n for_o whit-sunday_n 2_o part._n it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o christian_a under_o pretence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o bring_v in_o his_o own_o dream_n and_o fantasy_n into_o the_o church_n for_o such_o blaspheme_n and_o bely_v the_o holy_a ghost_n whereas_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o to_o institute_v and_o bring_v in_o new_a ordinance_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n before_o teach_v the_o do_v of_o which_o the_o homily_n declare_v be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o false_a church_n and_o of_o such_o as_o be_v deceiver_n it_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o discourse_n concern_v the_o operation_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v liable_a to_o many_o difficulty_n but_o the_o principal_a conclusion_n which_o be_v right_o make_v in_o this_o matter_n i_o suppose_v may_v be_v true_o make_v out_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n declare_v in_o she_o own_o word_n 1._o for_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o reason_n why_o our_o church_n hold_v such_o extraordinary_a illumination_n not_o necessary_a be_v because_o scripture_n because_o 2_o homily_n of_o scripture_n all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n be_v plain_a to_o understand_v that_o be_v as_o the_o homily_n deliver_v to_o such_o as_o use_v the_o mean_n and_o so_o far_o as_o their_o explicit_a knowledge_n be_v require_v for_o our_o church_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n as_o general_o join_v with_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n when_o any_o apply_v their_o mind_n to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o hear_v read_v and_o search_v thus_o god_n open_v the_o dark_a thing_n of_o scripture_n unto_o faithful_a people_n it_o can_v be_v say_v st_n chrysostom_n that_o such_o shall_v be_v leave_v without_o help_n when_o our_o homily_n mention_n the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o add_v to_o they_o that_o with_o humility_n and_o diligence_n do_v search_v therefore_o which_o clause_n be_v not_o to_o be_v leave_v out_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n genuine_a interpreter_n p._n 5._o those_o that_o thus_o thankful_o cheerful_o and_o diligent_o hear_v read_v meditate_v and_o ruminate_v on_o holy_a scripture_n such_o have_v the_o sweet_a juice_n
spiritual_a effect_n taste_n comfort_n and_o consolation_n of_o they_o which_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n be_v most_o intelligible_a and_o sober_a and_o different_a from_o what_o some_o other_o mystical_o have_v discourse_v of_o concern_v spiritual_a gust_n which_o they_o attribute_v to_o unaccountable_a communication_n the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o which_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v general_o annex_v our_o church_n judge_v the_o same_o which_o dr_n hammond_n mention_n in_o his_o postscript_n concern_v divine_a illumination_n study_v search_n meditation_n the_o collation_n of_o place_n of_o scripture_n or_o bring_v one_o place_n together_o with_o another_o 1._o another_o homily_n 1._o the_o use_n of_o reason_n and_o learning_n and_o skill_n in_o original_a language_n the_o help_n of_o our_o spiritual_a guide_n the_o declaration_n of_o god_n church_n the_o analogy_n of_o receive_a doctrine_n constant_a prayer_n for_o god_n blessing_n the_o necessary_a assistance_n and_o gracious_a aid_n of_o god_n spirit_n our_o church_n indeed_o teach_v we_o that_o carnal_a reason_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n and_o to_o perceive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o carnal_a reason_n some_o do_v expound_v the_o article_n 9_o wisdom_n some_o the_o sensuality_n some_o the_o affection_n some_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o our_o church_n esteem_v it_o a_o great_a reproach_n to_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o creation_n of_o god_n to_o call_v that_o carnal_a reason_n which_o be_v our_o rational_a perception_n and_o use_n of_o what_o be_v deliver_v we_o to_o understand_v or_o a_o compare_v and_o as_o we_o say_v out_o of_o the_o homily_n a_o bring_v together_o one_o place_n with_o another_o and_o draw_v easy_a and_o plain_a consequence_n from_o scripture_n which_o we_o be_v to_o search_v whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v propound_v to_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o great_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v indeed_o in_o the_o thing_n reveal_v when_o any_o thing_n exceed_v the_o comprehension_n of_o our_o reason_n our_o church_n advise_v we_o to_o sequester_v our_o reason_n in_o such_o case_n say_v the_o homily_n part._n homily_n hom._n of_o place_n of_o script_n 2._o part._n reason_n must_v give_v place_n to_o god_n holy_a spirit_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n it_o be_v also_o very_o plain_a that_o no_o more_o supernatural_a and_o immediate_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o faithful_a and_o good_a christian_n wherefore_o our_o church_n lay_v down_o the_o same_o mean_n for_o improvement_n in_o divine_a knowledge_n as_o it_o do_v for_o obtain_v the_o holy_a spirit_n namely_o scripture_n namely_o 1_o &_o 2d._o homily_n of_o scripture_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o godliness_n the_o have_v a_o care_n of_o be_v drown_v in_o worldly_a vanity_n leave_v sin_n and_o the_o world_n our_o forsake_v the_o corrupt_a judgement_n of_o fleshly_a man_n week_n man_n 3_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n for_o rogation_n week_n let_v we_o endeavour_v ourselves_o say_v our_o church_n diligent_o to_o keep_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n let_v we_o renounce_v all_o uncleanness_n for_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o purity_n let_v we_o avoid_v all_o hypocrisy_n for_o this_o holy_a spirit_n will_v flee_v from_o that_o which_o be_v feign_v cast_v off_o all_o malice_n and_o evil_a will_n for_o this_o spirit_n will_v never_o enter_v into_o a_o evil_a willing_a soul_n let_v we_o cast_v away_o all_o the_o whole_a lump_n of_o sin_n that_o stand_v about_o we_o for_o he_o will_v never_o dwell_v in_o that_o body_n which_o be_v subdue_v to_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v our_o endeavour_n we_o shall_v never_o need_v to_o fear_v and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v suggest_v to_o we_o what_o be_v wholesome_a and_o confirm_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o attain_v also_o the_o spiritual_a wisdom_n of_o the_o scripture_n our_o way_n say_v the_o church_n be_v to_o attend_v the_o time_n and_o win_v the_o time_n with_o diligence_n and_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o light_n and_o grace_n which_o be_v offer_v we_o last_o let_v we_o meek_o call_v upon_o that_o bountiful_a spirit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o proceed_v from_o our_o father_n of_o mercy_n and_o from_o our_o mediator_n christ_n that_o he_o will_v assist_v we_o and_o inspire_v we_o with_o his_o presence_n that_o in_o he_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o hear_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n declare_v unto_o we_o to_o our_o salvation_n for_o this_o can_v be_v obtain_v but_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v spiritual_a wisdom_n 2._o our_o church_n do_v not_o judge_n that_o the_o particular_a immediate_a testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v necessary_a to_o every_o christian_a for_o his_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o salvation_n but_o suppose_v that_o the_o best_a assurance_n of_o salvation_n be_v from_o the_o sure_a trust_n and_o belief_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o a_o certain_a consciousness_n of_o our_o own_o sincerity_n according_a to_o what_o be_v require_v of_o we_o part._n we_o homily_n of_o salvation_n v._o homily_n of_o almsdeed_n 2._o part._n v._o homily_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n 1._o part._n if_o you_o will_v be_v sure_a of_o your_o faith_n try_v it_o by_o your_o live_n the_o true_a christian_a faith_n be_v no_o dead_a vain_a or_o unfruitful_a thing_n therefore_o let_v we_o by_o such_o virtue_n as_o spring_v out_o of_o faith_n show_v our_o election_n to_o be_v sure_a and_o stable_a 3._o our_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v a_o immediate_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n necessary_a to_o every_o christian_a to_o furnish_v they_o with_o word_n in_o prayer_n but_o do_v right_o suppose_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v effectual_o assist_v every_o sincere_a devout_a person_n use_v a_o good_a form_n of_o prayer_n because_o he_o by_o who_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n do_v teach_v his_o disciple_n and_o in_o they_o all_o christian_n a_o form_n of_o prayer_n require_v they_o to_o use_v the_o same_o our_o church_n also_o have_v furnish_v those_o of_o her_o communion_n with_o general_a prayer_n according_a to_o their_o occasion_n judge_v also_o that_o such_o common_a prayer_n prayer_n homily_n of_o prayer_n be_v most_o available_a before_o god_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o obtain_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v most_o assist_v we_o in_o our_o prayer_n our_o church_n declare_v be_v for_o we_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o in_o his_o sight_n and_o in_o all_o our_o prayer_n both_o public_a and_o private_a to_o have_v our_o mind_n full_o fix_v on_o he_o so_o that_o our_o church_n suppose_v those_o that_o be_v thus_o humble_a to_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n how_o far_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v necessary_a to_o convince_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n see_v chap._n 6._o §_o 8._o from_o which_o few_o passage_n already_o cite_v in_o comparison_n of_o those_o very_o many_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n which_o abound_v in_o the_o homily_n for_o whit-sunday_n the_o homily_n of_o good_a work_n of_o salvation_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n of_o alms-deed_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o our_o church_n judge_v right_o concern_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o lay_v down_o the_o best_a rule_n for_o discern_v who_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n believe_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o have_v the_o spirit_n be_v all_o one_o part._n one_o homily_n of_o salvation_n 3._o part._n for_o how_o can_v a_o man_n have_v true_a faith_n when_o he_o live_v ungodly_a and_o deni_v christ_n with_o his_o deed_n contrariwise_o he_o be_v most_o inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v most_o change_v in_o his_o life_n so_o then_o this_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o most_o true_a lesson_n teach_v by_o christ_n own_o mouth_n part._n mouth_n homily_n of_o good_a work_n 2._o part._n that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o moral_a commandment_n of_o god_n be_v the_o very_a true_a work_n of_o faith_n which_o lead_v to_o the_o bless_a life_n to_o come_v our_o church_n also_o do_v suppose_v that_o those_o who_o receive_v most_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v such_o as_o be_v most_o true_o virtuous_a and_o good_a such_o have_v most_o of_o the_o divine_a grace_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o all_o goodness_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o office_n for_o the_o holy_a communion_n if_o with_o a_o true_a penitent_a heart_n and_o lively_a faith_n we_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n than_o we_o dwell_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o we_o etc._n etc._n whitsunday_n etc._n 1._o part_v of_o the_o sermon_n for_o whitsunday_n wherefore_o if_o any_o
say_v o_o but_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v within_o i_o some_o man_n perchance_o will_v say_v forsooth_o as_o the_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o the_o fruit_n so_o be_v also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o st_n paul_n be_v these_o 5._o gal._n 5._o love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faithfulness_n meekness_n temperance_n etc._n etc._n contrariwise_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v these_o adultery_n fornication_n uncleanness_n wantonness_n idolatry_n witchcraft_n hatred_n debate_n emulation_n wrath_n contention_n sedition_n heresy_n envy_n murder_n drunkenness_n gluttony_n and_o such_o like_a here_o now_o be_v the_o glass_n wherein_o thou_o must_v behold_v thyself_o and_o discern_v whether_o thou_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n within_o thou_o or_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o thou_o see_v thy_o work_n be_v virtuous_a and_o good_a consonant_a to_o the_o prescript_n rule_v of_o god_n word_n savoury_a and_o taste_v not_o of_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o spirit_n then_o assure_v thyself_o thou_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n otherwise_o in_o think_v well_o of_o thyself_o thou_o do_v but_o deceive_v thyself_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v always_o declare_v himself_o by_o his_o fruitful_a and_o gracious_a gift_n whit-sunday_n gift_n 2_o part_n of_o the_o hom._n for_o whit-sunday_n but_o to_o conclude_v you_o shall_v brief_o take_v this_o short_a lesson_n wherever_o you_o find_v the_o spirit_n of_o arrogance_n and_o pride_n the_o spirit_n of_o envy_n hatred_n contention_n cruelty_n etc._n etc._n assure_v yourselves_o that_o there_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o of_o god_n albeit_o they_o pretend_v to_o the_o world_n outward_o ever_o so_o much_o holiness_n for_o as_o the_o gospel_n teach_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n be_v a_o good_a holy_a sweet_a lowly_a merciful_a spirit_n full_a of_o charity_n and_o love_n full_a of_o forgiveness_n and_o pity_n not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n extremity_n for_o extremity_n according_a to_o which_o rule_n if_o any_o man_n live_v upright_o of_o he_o it_o may_v be_v safe_o pronounce_v that_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n within_o he_o if_o not_o there_o be_v a_o plain_a token_n he_o do_v usurp_v the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o vain_a as_o for_o the_o manner_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o modesty_n and_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n do_v not_o decree_v any_o thing_n lest_o as_o st_n austin_n say_v humane_a infirmity_n proceed_v beyond_o what_o be_v safe_a yet_o our_o church_n give_v a_o right_a account_n in_o sundry_a place_n of_o its_o homily_n god_n homily_n second_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n how_o the_o holy_a spirit_n come_v to_o be_v withdraw_v from_o man_n by_o all_o these_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n we_o know_v that_o as_o we_o forsake_v god_n so_o shall_v he_o even_o forsake_v we_o when_o he_o withdraw_v from_o we_o his_o word_n the_o right_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n his_o gracious_a assistance_n and_o aid_n which_o be_v ever_o join_v with_o his_o word_n and_o leave_v we_o to_o our_o own_o wit_n and_o will_v and_o strength_n he_o declare_v than_o he_o begin_v to_o forsake_v we_o god_n we_o first_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n which_o be_v as_o it_o follow_v after_o any_o do_v neglect_v the_o same_o if_o they_o be_v unthankful_a to_o he_o if_o they_o order_v not_o their_o life_n according_a to_o his_o example_n and_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n from_o whence_o we_o see_v also_o that_o our_o church_n judge_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v as_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v general_o conditional_a for_o as_o god_n for_o his_o part_n deliver_v his_o son_n to_o suffer_v death_n for_o we_o so_o again_o we_o for_o our_o part_n shall_v walk_v in_o a_o godly_a life_n as_o become_v his_o child_n so_o to_o do_v alms-deed_n do_v 2._o part_v of_o the_o homily_n of_o alms-deed_n he_o that_o be_v first_o make_v good_a by_o the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n afterward_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n as_o for_o those_o who_o affirm_v a_o supernatural_a and_o immediate_a illumination_n necessary_a without_o which_o other_o ordinary_a mean_n be_v insufficient_a either_o to_o give_v we_o certainty_n of_o the_o authority_n or_o interpretation_n of_o divine_a writ_n 1._o they_o affirm_v that_o which_o no_o where_n be_v declare_v 2._o that_o which_o we_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o credit_v from_o they_o that_o affirm_v so_o we_o have_v neither_o experience_n of_o their_o extraordinary_a knowledge_n or_o goodness_n but_o have_v find_v they_o most_o mistake_v of_o any_o in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o also_o by_o the_o note_n of_o have_v the_o spirit_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n what_o be_v quite_o different_a have_v appear_v 3._o the_o hold_v such_o a_o opinion_n tend_v to_o lessen_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v the_o dictate_v of_o the_o humane_a spirit_n if_o not_o sometime_o the_o diabolical_a equal_a with_o the_o holy_a canon_n and_o those_o other_o who_o lie_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n upon_o such_o uncertainty_n as_o only_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o be_v yet_o neither_o prove_v necessary_a or_o real_a however_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n unto_o other_o verily_a such_o labour_n unprofitable_o to_o overthrow_n christianity_n and_o render_v all_o our_o faith_n uncertain_a 4._o their_o doctrine_n lead_v to_o such_o enthusiasm_n as_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o the_o peace_n of_o kingdom_n much_o less_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n church_n but_o such_o be_v the_o constant_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n though_o it_o do_v reject_v and_o oppose_v all_o fanatical_a and_o ungrounded_a pretence_n to_o the_o spirit_n yet_o our_o church_n most_o frequent_o and_o with_o all_o humble_a reverence_n own_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o gracious_a aid_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o phrase_n be_v in_o our_o homily_n several_a time_n use_v as_o without_o which_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o please_v to_o god_n for_o in_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rest_v all_o wisdom_n and_o all_o ability_n to_o know_v god_n and_o to_o please_v he_o week_n he_o 3_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n for_o rogation_n week_n therefore_o we_o pray_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o will_v merciful_o direct_v and_o rule_v our_o heart_n we_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o grant_v we_o his_o spirit_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v may_v please_v he_o god_n he_o in_o the_o absolution_n collect_v after_o the_o h._n c._n hom._n of_o fall_v from_o god_n to_o prevent_v we_o in_o all_o our_o do_n etc._n etc._n because_o of_o the_o ill_a condition_n of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n chap._n vi_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o judgement_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n do_v wise_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o what_o be_v not_o §_o 2._o her_o article_n be_v few_o §_o 3._o which_o be_v general_o exhibit_v not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o consent_n concern_v subscription_n §_o 4._o our_o article_n be_v propound_v so_o as_o to_o avoid_v unnecessary_a controversy_n §_o 5._o the_o wise_a moderation_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o their_o injunction_n to_o preacher_n and_o order_n take_v to_o preserve_v truth_n unity_n and_o charity_n §_o 6._o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o late_a age_n be_v well_o moderate_v by_o the_o determination_n of_o our_o church_n §_o 7._o as_o our_o church_n require_v our_o consent_n in_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o sense_n or_o reason_n so_o it_o have_v also_o contain_v itself_o from_o immoderate_a curiosity_n in_o treat_v of_o venerable_a mystery_n §_o 8._o our_o church_n do_v not_o insist_v upon_o such_o kind_n of_o certainty_n as_o other_o without_o just_a cause_n do_v exact_a §_o 9_o doctrine_n be_v so_o propound_v to_o those_o in_o our_o church_n communion_n as_o not_o to_o render_v useless_a their_o own_o reason_n and_o judgement_n the_o reasonableness_n of_o which_o be_v prove_v and_o the_o objection_n answer_v §_o 10._o the_o use_n which_o we_o be_v all_o allow_v of_o our_o private_a judgement_n be_v require_v to_o be_v manage_v with_o a_o due_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n the_o duty_n of_o which_o submission_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o sundry_a proposition_n §_o 1._o because_o all_o thing_n in_o divine_a revelation_n be_v alike_o true_a but_o not_o alike_o necessary_a for_o furtherance_n of_o faith_n and_o piety_n and_o establish_v union_n among_o christian_n
and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n our_o church_n have_v wise_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v necessary_a absolute_o and_o what_o only_o in_o some_o circumstance_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n say_v the_o homily_n scripture_n homily_n 2_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v plain_a to_o understand_v and_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n every_o man_n duty_n be_v to_o learn_v they_o and_o as_o for_o dark_a mystery_n to_o be_v content_v to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o they_o till_o such_o time_n as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o open_v those_o thing_n unto_o they_o 1._o they_o hom._n 1._o if_o it_o shall_v require_v to_o teach_v any_o truth_n or_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n requisite_a for_o our_o salvation_n all_o those_o thing_n say_v st_n chrysostom_n we_o may_v learn_v plentiful_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o 19_o article_n of_o the_o church_n the_o preach_v of_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v indispensable_a note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n namely_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o of_o necessity_n be_v requisite_a to_o the_o same_o and_o the_o 8_o article_n declare_v the_o three_o creed_n ought_v thorough_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o receive_v for_o that_o they_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o most_o certain_a warrant_n of_o holy_a scripture_n where_o our_o church_n give_v the_o reason_n of_o her_o faith_n and_o show_v her_o earnestness_n in_o contend_v for_o it_o but_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n contain_v herself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o what_o be_v before_o make_v necessary_a the_o principal_a and_o essential_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n such_o as_o be_v fit_a to_o make_v up_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o constitute_v a_o church_n be_v no_o other_o among_o we_o than_o what_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n at_o first_o make_v necessary_a which_o also_o the_o ancient_a church_n receive_v as_o necessary_a unto_o baptism_n and_o for_o distinction_n of_o heresy_n which_o fundamental_a maxim_n of_o christian_a science_n be_v frequent_o and_o plain_o repeat_v in_o scripture_n and_o by_o our_o church_n be_v first_o of_o all_o insist_v on_o at_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n 1537._o in_o the_o first_o injunction_n of_o our_o king_n and_o our_o form_n of_o catechism_n whereas_o the_o catechism_n and_o system_n which_o have_v be_v set_v up_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o catechism_n and_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v abound_v with_o many_o doubtful_a and_o unnecessary_a definition_n yet_o so_o insist_v upon_o by_o some_o as_o if_o the_o hinge_n of_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n turn_v upon_o those_o proposition_n whereby_o many_o have_v agree_v with_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o who_o by_o his_o bull_n set_v out_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o a_o large_a edition_n of_o about_o as_o many_o more_o article_n without_o belief_n of_o which_o be_v declare_v no_o salvation_n trid._n salvation_n extra_n quam_fw-la nemo_fw-la salvus_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la bulla_n pii_fw-la quarti_fw-la super_fw-la formâ_fw-la juramenti_fw-la professionis_fw-la fidei_fw-la sub_fw-la finem_fw-la concilii_fw-la trid._n unto_o such_o a_o strange_a circumference_n be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o unnecessary_a belief_n extend_v whereas_o the_o religion_n of_o our_o church_n tend_v to_o the_o centre_n which_o distinction_n of_o thing_n necessary_a from_o what_o be_v not_o so_o king_n james_z according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n declare_v of_o great_a use_n to_o lay_v a_o foundation_n for_o the_o public_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n perr_n church_n ut_fw-la de_fw-la necessariis_fw-la conveniat_fw-la omnis_fw-la opera_fw-la insumatur_fw-la in_o non-necessariis_a libertati_fw-la christianae_n locus_fw-la rex_fw-la jacobus_n ad_fw-la card._n perr_n and_o of_o particular_a man_n mind_n and_o the_o furtherance_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o piety_n §_o 2._o those_o article_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o our_o church_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o establish_v consent_n touch_v true_a religion_n 1._o they_o be_v few_o especial_o those_o of_o positive_a doctrine_n and_o the_o other_o negative_a position_n be_v necessary_a to_o assert_v our_o liberty_n from_o the_o abuse_n and_o encroachment_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o their_o contrary_a affirmative_n few_o if_o we_o consider_v either_o the_o time_n or_o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o be_v frame_v it_o be_v just_a about_o the_o meeting_n at_o trent_n make_v it_o necessary_a for_o our_o church_n to_o declare_v her_o sense_n of_o many_o doctrine_n for_o the_o better_a satisfaction_n and_o direction_n of_o her_o son_n and_o to_o testify_v her_o equal_a condition_n of_o communion_n especial_o also_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o cruel_a number_n of_o article_n which_o either_o the_o westminster_n divine_v or_o the_o trent_n councillor_n have_v impose_v on_o their_o follower_n 1018._o follower_n bishop_n ●ramball_n fol._n p._n 1018._o indeed_o the_o romanist_n do_v call_v our_o religion_n a_o negative_a religion_n because_o in_o all_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o we_o maintain_v the_o negative_a that_o be_v we_o go_v as_o far_o as_o we_o dare_v or_o can_v with_o warrant_n from_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o excess_n or_o those_o invention_n which_o they_o themselves_o have_v add_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n they_o forget_v that_o we_o maintain_v all_o those_o article_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o hope_v be_v more_o than_o negative_a the_o church_n of_o england_n say_v archbishop_n laud_n 14._o laud_n archbishop_z laud_v against_o fisher_n 5._o 14._o come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n severity_n who_o be_v anathema_n be_v not_o for_o 39_o article_n but_o for_o very_a many_o more_o above_o one_o hundred_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o in_o many_o point_n as_o far_o remote_a from_o the_o foundation_n though_o to_o the_o far_o great_a rack_n of_o man_n conscience_n they_o must_v be_v all_o fundamental_a if_o that_o church_n have_v determine_v they_o whereas_o the_o church_n of_o england_n never_o declare_v that_o every_o one_o of_o her_o article_n be_v fundamental_o in_o the_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v no_o one_o of_o they_o be_v superstitious_a or_o erroneous_a and_o quite_o another_o to_o say_v every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v fundamental_a beside_o the_o church_n of_o england_n prescribe_v only_o to_o her_o own_o child_n and_o by_o those_o article_n provide_v but_o for_o her_o peaceable_a consent_n in_o those_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n severe_o impose_v on_o all_o the_o world_n her_o doctrine_n and_o that_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n §_o 3._o these_o article_n of_o religion_n be_v general_o exhibit_v as_o article_n of_o peace_n and_o consent_n not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o communion_n and_o as_o such_o they_o be_v propound_v to_o all_o the_o communicant_n in_o our_o church_n 48._o church_n schisin_n guard_v p._n 150._o bishop_n lany_n sermon_n p._n 48._o in_o general_n for_o the_o avoid_n diversity_n of_o opinion_n as_o the_o title_n of_o the_o article_n be_v not_o such_o a_o consent_n as_o curcellaeus_n 15._o curcellaeus_n curcellaeus_n religionis_fw-la christianae_n institut_fw-la c._n 15._o mean_v where_o he_o suppose_v some_o in_o the_o dregs_o of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o reformation_n obtrude_v their_o confession_n and_o catechism_n as_o a_o secondary_a rule_n if_o not_o of_o truth_n yet_o of_o consent_n such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v urge_v only_o to_o a_o infallible_a truth_n it_o be_v likely_a he_o may_v know_v many_o who_o do_v so_o but_o the_o consent_n design_v to_o be_v establish_v by_o our_o article_n be_v such_o a_o consent_n as_o may_v keep_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o church_n undisturbed_a according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o five_o canon_n where_o the_o prohibition_n be_v direct_v against_o such_o as_o shall_v speak_v against_o the_o 39_o article_n as_o superstitious_a and_o erroneous_a such_o as_o may_v not_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v subscribe_v to_o whosoever_o shall_v hereafter_o affirm_v 5._o affirm_v quicunque_fw-la in_o posterum_fw-la affirmabit_fw-la etc._n etc._n ecclesiae_fw-la anglic._n canon_n 5._o not_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n originis_fw-la trent_n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la contrà_fw-la senserit_fw-la anathema_n sit_v council_n trid._n de_fw-fr peccato_fw-la originis_fw-la direct_v its_o anathema_n against_o those_o that_o shall_v so_o much_o as_o think_v diverse_o wherefore_o our_o church_n no_o where_o deliver_v our_o article_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v neither_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o necessity_n or_o her_o own_o command_n as_o several_a with_o bishop_n bramhall_n have_v note_v for_o which_o reason_n subscription_n unto_o they_o be_v
not_o require_v of_o any_o lay-person_n whatsoever_o mere_o in_o order_n to_o his_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n although_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n calvini_n geneva_n a_o quibus_fw-la discedere_fw-la neque_fw-la ministris_fw-la neque●ivibus_fw-la liceret_fw-la be●a_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la calvini_n urge_v subscription_n not_o of_o the_o minister_n only_o but_o the_o people_n protect_v people_n extet_fw-la forma_fw-la quaedam_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la &_o parochi_fw-la jurejurando_a astringantur_fw-la ut_fw-la nemo_fw-la ad_fw-la munus_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la admittatur_fw-la nisi_fw-la spondeat_fw-la calvin_n ad_fw-la angl._n protect_v there_o be_v perfect_o another_o reason_n why_o subscription_n be_v require_v of_o all_o who_o receive_v the_o privilege_n of_o degree_n in_o our_o university_n and_o in_o case_n of_o factious_a appellant_n 98._o appellant_n canon_n 98._o who_o be_v inhibit_v unless_o they_o first_o subscribe_v and_o especial_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n 12._o church_n discrimen_fw-la latum_fw-la est_fw-la inter_fw-la verbi_fw-la ministros_fw-la &_o plebeios_fw-la homines_fw-la quos_fw-la ministri_fw-la informant_a testis_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la historia_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la non_fw-la per_fw-la plebeios_fw-la sed_fw-la poti●s_fw-la per_fw-la clericos_fw-la introductas_fw-la esse_fw-la haereses_fw-la &_o schismata_fw-la forbesius_n in_o irenico_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 12._o namely_o because_o she_o may_v be_v as_o secure_a as_o she_o can_v of_o they_o to_o who_o she_o commit_v so_o great_a a_o trust_n in_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n wherefore_o of_o they_o who_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v require_v that_o they_o disavow_v all_o obligation_n and_o opinion_n to_o break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o assent_n to_o the_o use_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o christian_n in_o this_o kingdom_n among_o themselves_o which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v grant_v every_o society_n which_o the_o church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n practise_v and_o which_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o do_v use_v for_o the_o 13._o the_o vi._n disc_n of_o toler_n sect._n 13._o presbyterian_o require_v a_o subscription_n to_o their_o solemn_a league_n and_o the_o independent_n have_v their_o church_n government_n therefore_o in_o that_o our_o church_n take_v all_o the_o security_n she_o can_v by_o sponsor_n at_o baptism_n and_o by_o subscription_n of_o minister_n be_v a_o proof_n of_o her_o wisdom_n and_o great_a care_n of_o she_o own_o especial_o among_o we_o where_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n have_v bless_a be_v god_n another_o tenure_n than_o in_o holland_n during_o the_o precarious_a pleasure_n of_o their_o paymaster_n benefice_a man_n among_o we_o have_v a_o freehold_a and_o not_o to_o be_v turn_v out_o but_o in_o a_o legal_a way_n upon_o great_a cause_n deserve_v neither_o be_v subscription_n require_v by_o our_o church_n of_o its_o minister_n unless_o they_o can_v do_v it_o willing_o and_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la nor_o unless_o they_o can_v with_o freedom_n of_o mind_n assent_n and_o consent_n to_o the_o uniform_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n this_o if_o they_o can_v do_v with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n they_o be_v leave_v free_a by_o the_o church_n to_o enjoy_v a_o laical_a indulgence_n which_o be_v very_o large_a and_o exceed_v bountiful_a as_o for_o dissatisfaction_n or_o weakness_n what_o say_v king_n james_n court_n james_n conference_n at_o hampton_n court_n how_o long_o will_v such_o brethren_n be_v weak_a be_v not_o 45_o year_n sufficient_a 12._o sufficient_a qui_fw-la decennali_fw-la disciplinâ_fw-la nondum_fw-la usque●o_fw-la prosecerunt_fw-la ut_fw-la tam_fw-la faciles_fw-la in_o theologiá_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la intelligant_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la apti_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la sustinendum_fw-la onus_fw-la pastoral_a in_o e●clesiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la forbes_n iren_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o to_o grow_v strong_a in_o some_o of_o they_o be_v strong_a enough_o if_o not_o headstrong_a but_o i_o wonder_v there_o shall_v be_v such_o earnest_a recusant_n to_o subscription_n of_o the_o follower_n of_o calvin_n among_o we_o whenas_o he_o to_o the_o english_a protector_n write_v thus_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o look_v after_o the_o desultory_a humour_n of_o they_o who_o will_v have_v too_o much_o lawful_a to_o themselves_o the_o door_n be_v to_o be_v shut_v to_o curious_a doctrine_n and_o one_o expedite_a mean_n for_o that_o purpose_n be_v if_o there_o be_v a_o summary_n of_o doctrine_n receive_v of_o all_o which_o all_o may_v follow_v in_o preach_v to_o the_o observe_v of_o which_o all_o bishop_n and_o parish_n priest_n may_v be_v bind_v by_o a_o oath_n that_o no_o one_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a office_n unless_o he_o first_o engage_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v inviolate_a that_o consent_n of_o doctrine_n and_o so_o for_o catechism_n and_o as_o to_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n and_o ecclesiastical_a rite_n i_o very_o much_o approve_v that_o there_o be_v a_o constant_a form_n extant_a from_o which_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o pastor_n in_o their_o function_n to_o depart_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o simplicity_n and_o unskillfullness_n of_o some_o and_o that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n among_o themselves_o may_v more_o certain_o be_v manifest_a last_o to_o prevent_v the_o desultory_a levity_n of_o those_o who_o affect_v novelty_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o farellus_n 87._o farellus_n calv._n ep._n 87._o calvin_n write_v it_o always_o prevail_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v decree_v in_o ancient_a synod_n that_o those_o who_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o common_a discipline_n shall_v be_v dismiss_v from_o their_o function_n §_o 4._o the_o very_a frame_n of_o the_o article_n show_v the_o great_a moderation_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v propound_v on_o purpose_n so_o as_o to_o avoid_v unnecessary_a controversy_n propound_v not_o with_o a_o laodicean_n indifference_n or_o lukewarmness_n in_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o contend_v for_o 25._o for_o parker_n eccles_n pol._n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o as_o some_o charge_n our_o church_n with_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v here_o or_o elsewhere_o by_o moderation_n such_o a_o latitude_n which_o bishop_n taylor_n say_v 23._o say_v ductor_n dub._n l._n 3._o ●_o 4._o §._o 23._o have_v something_o of_o craft_n but_o very_o little_a of_o ingenuity_n which_o can_v only_o serve_v the_o end_n of_o peace_n and_o external_a charity_n or_o a_o fantastic_a concord_n but_o not_o the_o end_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n and_o christian_a simplicity_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v here_o as_o if_o our_o article_n be_v frame_v like_o the_o dubious_a oracle_n of_o delphos_n that_o the_o subscriber_n may_v understand_v they_o which_o way_n they_o please_v like_o a_o shoe_n for_o every_o foot_n as_o if_o they_o be_v to_o deceive_v by_o ambiguous_a term_n 15._o term_n conference_n at_o hamp_n c._n p._n 15._o the_o judicious_a bishop_n sanderson_n 52._o sanderson_n pax_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la p._n 52._o in_o his_o direction_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n lay_v down_o this_o as_o the_o first_o that_o particular_a church_n will_v be_v as_o tender_a as_o may_v be_v in_o give_v their_o definition_n and_o determination_n especial_o where_o there_o may_v be_v admit_v a_o latitude_n of_o dissent_v without_o prejudice_n do_v either_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o to_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o dissenter_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v much_o to_o be_v commend_v and_o to_o be_v prefer_v not_o only_o before_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o with_o unsufferable_a tyranny_n bind_v all_o her_o child_n upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o all_o her_o determination_n even_o in_o those_o point_n which_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o also_o before_o sundry_a other_o reform_a church_n who_o have_v proceed_v further_a than_o this_o church_n have_v do_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o church_n if_o what_o it_o have_v declare_v and_o intend_v to_o declare_v have_v a_o true_a clear_a and_o certain_a meaning_n and_o her_o article_n do_v sure_o conduce_v to_o peace_n if_o it_o appear_v all_o agree_v in_o the_o true_a usual_a literal_a meaning_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o be_v not_o intend_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o they_o article_n they_o king_n charles_n i._o declaration_n 1630._o publish_v with_o the_o article_n if_o even_o in_o these_o curious_a point_n in_o which_o the_o present_a difference_n lie_v most_o man_n of_o all_o sort_n take_v the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o they_o then_o may_v be_v infer_v what_o the_o right_a reverend_a bishop_n of_o chester_n have_v say_v 1660._o say_v no_o necessity_n of_o reformation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 1660._o this_o rather_o give_v a_o testimony_n of_o
be_v innumerable_a argument_n which_o convince_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o divine_a testimony_n in_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v receive_v yet_o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n she_o do_v not_o require_v every_o one_o in_o her_o communion_n necessary_o to_o know_v and_o receive_v all_o the_o reason_n of_o certainty_n which_o be_v and_o may_v be_v give_v nor_o yet_o to_o rely_v on_o one_o to_o the_o neglect_n of_o another_o but_o leave_v we_o to_o be_v satisfy_v according_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o opportunity_n which_o we_o have_v abundant_o offer_v unto_o we_o just_o suppose_v there_o be_v so_o many_o reason_n persuade_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o we_o believe_v that_o some_o be_v convince_v by_o some_o other_o by_o other_o as_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n dispose_v thing_n 3._o our_o church_n no_o where_o make_v infallible_a certainty_n of_o assent_n a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v our_o faith_n certain_a if_o our_o rule_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o apply_v with_o moral_a evidence_n that_o be_v such_o a_o evidence_n as_o we_o can_v have_v of_o thing_n and_o action_n past_a as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o guide_v and_o govern_v our_o manner_n and_o behaviour_n some_o of_o late_o have_v contend_v with_o very_o ill_a success_n that_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o assent_n be_v necessary_o wrought_v by_o demonstration_n and_o what_o they_o love_v to_o call_v scientific_a evidence_n in_o every_o believer_n which_o doctrine_n of_o j._n s._n be_v condemn_v by_o his_o adversary_n even_o of_o rome_n 54._o rome_n animadv_n p._n talboti_n arch._n dubl_n in_o prop._n 2._o p._n 54._o as_o the_o pith_n of_o manicheism_n because_o it_o lay_v this_o burden_n on_o the_o church_n or_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n evident_o to_o demonstrate_v its_o own_o infallibility_n if_o destroy_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n be_v all_o we_o may_v dispense_v with_o that_o inconvenience_n as_o it_o render_v their_o motive_n of_o credibility_n insufficient_a which_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n be_v receive_v use_v to_o be_v the_o only_a way_n they_o have_v to_o recommend_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o approbation_n of_o proselyte_n but_o to_o affirm_v that_o all_o certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v general_o wrought_v by_o such_o demonstration_n in_o case_n that_o doctrine_n prove_v false_a the_o consequence_n be_v if_o christian_a faith_n have_v no_o other_o certainty_n christianity_n itself_o be_v leave_v uncertain_a in_o its_o very_a foundation_n other_o there_o be_v who_o deliver_v that_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o assent_n wrought_v only_o by_o the_o immediate_a extraordinary_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_o in_o every_o true_a believer_n now_o though_o our_o church_n do_v as_o much_o as_o any_o can_v do_v own_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n to_o prevent_v assist_v and_o follow_v we_o especial_o in_o what_o concern_v divine_a matter_n yet_o our_o church_n be_v not_o so_o bold_a with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o affirm_v that_o such_o a_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n work_v together_o in_o our_o spirit_n a_o infallible_a assent_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o other_o doctrine_n in_o question_n as_o without_o which_o we_o can_v have_v no_o such_o belief_n as_o be_v require_v to_o salvation_n which_o precarious_a presumption_n tend_v to_o render_v useless_a all_o those_o sufficient_a evidence_n we_o have_v of_o divine_a truth_n by_o the_o gracious_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v ordinary_a in_o his_o church_n and_o whereas_o the_o assertor_n of_o this_o extraordinary_a spirit_n exclude_v all_o other_o mean_n of_o real_a certainty_n as_o insufficient_a such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v false_a must_v needs_o tend_v also_o to_o overthrow_v all_o christian_a religion_n such_o be_v the_o sad_a consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o dr_n 1._o o._n and_o mr_n i._n s._n in_o make_v though_o on_o differ_v ground_n a_o infallible_a assent_n necessary_a to_o a_o true_a belief_n they_o agree_v together_o also_o in_o the_o injury_n they_o do_v christian_a religion_n by_o traduce_v our_o faith_n as_o a_o probable_a fallible_a humane_a natural_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o very_a word_n they_o vindicated_n they_o v._o dr_n i._n o._n reason_n of_o faith_n p._n 72._o mr_n 1._o s._n faith_n vindicated_n both_o unite_v in_o to_o expose_v our_o belief_n to_o contempt_n which_o be_v ground_v on_o such_o evidence_n as_o god_n have_v abundant_o afford_v we_o to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o divine_a testimony_n which_o evidence_n especial_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o they_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o certain_a our_o church_n have_v always_o hold_v needless_a such_o a_o infallible_a guide_n as_o the_o romanist_n will_v impose_v upon_o we_o and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o do_v not_o expect_v any_o new_a revelation_n nor_o any_o ostentation_n of_o new_a miracle_n necessary_a to_o a_o true_a church_n or_o true_a faith_n they_o be_v supersede_v by_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o same_o reason_n we_o can_v presume_v to_o expect_v much_o less_o to_o make_v necessary_a to_o every_o true_a belief_n such_o extraordinary_a illapse_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n which_o make_v those_o who_o only_o think_v they_o have_v it_o think_v themselves_o only_o infallible_a and_o thus_o we_o may_v discern_v how_o many_o be_v lead_v to_o popery_n by_o the_o way_n of_o enthusiasm_n for_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o those_o into_o who_o head_n enthusiasm_n be_v fly_v to_o reel_v from_o one_o extreme_a to_o another_o 4._o to_o preserve_v we_o from_o these_o uncertainty_n among_o the_o very_a many_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v from_o rational_a and_o moral_a evidence_n whereby_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o divine_a testimony_n be_v confirm_v to_o we_o abundant_o our_o church_n own_v no_o one_o great_a since_o the_o miraculous_a gift_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n church_n now_o and_o in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n time_n because_o of_o the_o sundry_a evidence_n also_o which_o confirm_v to_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o church_n testimony_n all_o which_o amount_v to_o more_o than_o high_a probability_n for_o as_o 5._o as_o ●_o lomini_fw-la hi●l_n &_o consul_n haeres_fw-la blacklo_n p._n 2._o c._n 4._o §._o 5._o lominus_fw-la tell_v j._n s._n probability_n on_o one_o side_n do_v not_o exclude_v probability_n also_o on_o the_o opposite_a side_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o moral_a evidence_n and_o certainty_n do_v exclude_v any_o probability_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n and_o that_o so_o manifest_o that_o only_o grievous_a ignorance_n and_o pertinacy_n can_v incline_v a_o man_n thereunto_o §_o 9_o as_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n allow_v we_o to_o be_v reasonable_o satisfy_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n much_o more_o be_v other_o doctrine_n so_o propound_v to_o those_o of_o our_o communion_n as_o not_o to_o render_v useless_a their_o own_o reason_n and_o judgement_n notwithstanding_o our_o church_n do_v sufficient_o vindicate_v she_o own_o just_a power_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o what_o she_o testify_v and_o determine_v article_n 20._o 34._o etc._n etc._n and_o by_o her_o canon_n require_v a_o just_a submission_n all_o care_n be_v also_o take_v by_o the_o church_n to_o prevent_v error_n and_o dissension_n and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n canon_n 34._o 49._o 139._o yet_o all_o be_v perform_v among_o we_o with_o a_o most_o excellent_a and_o golden_a mean_n and_o in_o that_o nothing_o in_o our_o church_n be_v determine_v contrary_a to_o truth_n nor_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o right_a reason_n the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v the_o better_o allow_v her_o son_n their_o right_n to_o search_v examine_v and_o discern_v what_o they_o must_v approve_v which_o bishop_n davenant_n and_o bishop_n bramhall_n and_o some_o other_o understand_v by_o their_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n though_o the_o word_n sound_v not_o so_o please_v to_o some_o religious_a ear_n because_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o phrase_n in_o english_a to_o incline_v private_a person_n to_o a_o power_n of_o refuse_v what_o the_o church_n right_o determine_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v for_o as_o the_o suffrage_n of_o our_o church_n have_v be_v constant_o unanimous_a with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n but_o for_o the_o truth_n much_o more_o ought_v private_a person_n to_o be_v bound_v thereby_o if_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n will_v appear_v the_o more_o remarkable_a if_o we_o
disposition_n to_o swallow_v all_o poison_n and_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o guilt_n not_o only_o of_o their_o first_o solitary_a error_n but_o all_o which_o be_v consequent_a thereon_o whereas_o those_o who_o use_v a_o sober_a examination_n after_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o one_o error_n will_v be_v more_o cautious_a of_o other_o and_o the_o truth_n they_o come_v to_o of_o choice_n and_o judgement_n be_v also_o more_o praiseworthy_a and_o more_o tenible_a i_o shall_v swell_v this_o head_n into_o too_o great_a a_o bulk_n if_o i_o shall_v enumerate_v the_o sundry_a place_n wherein_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n do_v stir_v up_o and_o provoke_v the_o industry_n of_o the_o christian_a disciple_n to_o search_v discern_v prove_v try_v examine_v what_o they_o receive_v lest_o at_o any_o time_n they_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a prophet_n the_o same_o admonition_n and_o method_n have_v the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n pursue_v both_o which_o will_v be_v endless_a here_o to_o recite_v indeed_o all_o sort_n of_o persuasion_n of_o man_n seem_v to_o confess_v the_o necessity_n of_o first_o convince_a the_o reason_n and_o judgement_n of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o truth_n and_o therefore_o the_o romanist_n use_v so_o many_o motive_n of_o credibility_n to_o induce_v belief_n of_o their_o church_n in_o which_o if_o once_o the_o proselyte_n be_v catch_v they_o serve_v he_o as_o the_o chaldee_n do_v king_n zedekiah_n after_o they_o have_v take_v he_o captive_n they_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n 138._o eye_n caeco_fw-la judicio_fw-la imperata_fw-la facere_fw-la quantumvis_fw-la ea_fw-la blasphema_fw-la sint_fw-la atque_fw-la impia_fw-la apol._n eccl._n anglic._n §._o 138._o 2_o king_n 25._o 7._o where_o indeed_o the_o mystery_n we_o be_v sure_o be_v certain_o declare_v and_o deliver_v by_o god_n there_o we_o ought_v to_o captivate_v not_o only_o our_o imagination_n but_o our_o reason_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n not_o stay_v for_o a_o connexion_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o scientific_a evidence_n which_o mr_n sergeant_n make_v his_o sure-footing_a but_o where_o we_o be_v not_o assure_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n nor_o otherwise_o understand_v the_o reason_n for_o such_o a_o assent_n no_o one_o can_v put_v off_o humane_a nature_n so_o far_o as_o to_o believe_v what_o they_o please_v mirandula_n please_v nullus_fw-la credit_n aliquid_fw-la verum_fw-la esse_fw-la quia_fw-la vult_fw-la credere_fw-la id_fw-la esse_fw-la verum_fw-la nam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o potestate_fw-la hominis_fw-la sacere_fw-la aliquid_fw-la apparer●_n intellectui_fw-la svo_fw-la verum_fw-la quando_fw-la voluerit_fw-la picus_n mirandula_n indeed_o it_o be_v the_o great_a honour_n of_o our_o church_n that_o it_o do_v not_o testify_v nor_o require_v attestation_n unto_o any_o thing_n but_o where_o some_o good_a reason_n why_o we_o do_v so_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a which_o right_o as_o she_o maintain_v towards_o other_o so_o she_o vindicate_v the_o same_o to_o herself_o namely_o of_o examine_v what_o be_v offer_v to_o she_o under_o the_o venerable_a name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o if_o need_v be_v of_o reform_v any_o abuse_n or_o error_n within_o the_o bound_n of_o its_o own_o discipline_n and_o so_o separate_v the_o precious_a from_o the_o vile_a which_o power_n of_o examine_v doctrine_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o her_o son_n seem_v to_o prevent_v the_o first_o occasion_n and_o mean_n of_o reformation_n 〈◊〉_d reformation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr eutychianis_fw-la inter_fw-la athanasii_fw-la opera_fw-la consulatur_fw-la integer_fw-la tractatus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o render_v she_o even_o incorrigible_a in_o her_o error_n and_o corruption_n and_o remain_v so_o irreconcilable_a but_o some_o do_v object_n that_o if_o we_o allow_v a_o right_n of_o private_a judgement_n it_o will_v be_v a_o direct_a mean_n to_o establish_v among_o we_o a_o enthusiastic_a private_a spirit_n which_o will_v rely_v upon_o its_o own_o judgement_n to_o the_o despise_v all_o other_o and_o if_o all_o may_v use_v a_o private_a judgement_n why_o may_v they_o not_o follow_v it_o and_o profess_v it_o then_o you_o open_v a_o window_n to_o all_o division_n and_o heresy_n and_o render_v the_o church_n useless_a and_o all_o her_o guide_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o use_v our_o faculty_n of_o discern_v in_o a_o discreet_a manner_n which_o include_v all_o due_a reverence_n to_o all_o those_o instrument_n which_o god_n and_o the_o church_n have_v give_v we_o for_o our_o direction_n and_o conduct_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o rely_v on_o our_o own_o prudence_n to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o our_o own_o sense_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 2._o trent_n nemo_fw-la prudentiae_fw-la suae_fw-la innixus_fw-la s._n scripturam_fw-la ad_fw-la suos_fw-la sensus_fw-la contorqueat_fw-la conc._n trid._n sess_n 4._o decr._n 2._o speak_v which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n first_o of_o all_o detest_v article_n 20._o every_o private_a person_n be_v here_o require_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o public_a reason_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v also_o clear_a and_o true_a can_v allow_v the_o be_v search_v into_o and_o for_o that_o purpose_n she_o desire_v but_o her_o son_n to_o open_v their_o own_o eye_n wherefore_o the_o sober_a use_n of_o our_o own_o faculty_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o private_a spirit_n which_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o general_a notice_n of_o truth_n and_o good_a and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n and_o the_o judgement_n also_o of_o the_o church_n such_o a_o spirit_n be_v the_o candle_n of_o the_o lord_n not_o a_o evil_a spirit_n nor_o a_o spirit_n of_o innovation_n nor_o dissension_n nor_o a_o spirit_n of_o pride_n nor_o temptation_n as_o many_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n blazon_v it_o as_o for_o the_o growth_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n from_o the_o use_n of_o such_o a_o private_a judgement_n as_o the_o church_n allow_v which_o objection_n be_v ancient_o make_v against_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o of_o old_a by_o celsus_n to_o origen_n l._n 3._o unto_o which_o be_v answer_v that_o where_o any_o thing_n be_v receive_v which_o be_v very_o excellent_a such_o difference_n be_v common_a as_o among_o the_o philosopher_n and_o jew_n so_o among_o christian_n but_o these_o now_o who_o make_v the_o objection_n general_o those_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n yet_o know_v that_o though_o they_o carry_v as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o unity_n to_o their_o people_n they_o have_v as_o great_a division_n as_o any_o be_v and_o though_o indeed_o the_o corruption_n of_o good_a thing_n be_v great_a by_o the_o abuse_n of_o ill_a man_n this_o ill_a consequence_n through_o the_o vice_n of_o some_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v away_o the_o common_a right_n of_o all_o no_o more_o than_o the_o contention_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o render_v they_o dangerous_a to_o be_v proclaim_v the_o christian_a religion_n of_o itself_o be_v sufficient_a to_o keep_v all_o from_o error_n or_o vice_n if_o all_o man_n will_v comply_v with_o its_o wholesome_a and_o pacific_a decree_n as_o arnobius_n 1._o arnobius_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la omnes_fw-la omnino_fw-la salutaribus_fw-la ejus_fw-la pacificisque_fw-la decretis_fw-la aurem_fw-la vellent_fw-la accommodare_fw-la paulisper_fw-la &_o non_fw-la fastu_fw-la &_o supercilio_fw-la luminis_fw-la suis_fw-la potius_fw-la sensibus_fw-la quàm_fw-la illius_fw-la comminationibus_fw-la crederent_fw-la universus_fw-la jamdudum_fw-la orbis_fw-la mitiora_fw-la in_o opera_fw-la conversis_fw-la usibus_fw-la ferri_fw-la tranquillitate_fw-la mollissimâ_fw-la degeret_fw-la &_o in_o concordiam_fw-la salutarem_fw-la incorruptis_fw-la foederum_fw-la sanctionibus_fw-la conveniret_fw-la arnobius_n l._n 1._o long_o since_o have_v deliver_v and_o the_o church_n in_o observance_n hereof_o do_v procure_v she_o own_o peace_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v in_o that_o all_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o publish_v their_o private_a sense_n to_o the_o detriment_n of_o public_a peace_n and_o by_o her_o censure_n have_v a_o power_n of_o repress_v public_a dissenter_n and_o in_o case_n of_o doubt_n arise_v our_o church_n wise_o send_v the_o party_n so_o doubt_v to_o their_o superior_n church_n superior_n preface_n concern_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o whereas_o god_n true_a religion_n be_v but_o one_o the_o profession_n of_o which_o article_n 19_o and_o not_o other_o article_n 18._o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o god_n church_n and_o therein_o to_o our_o salvation_n bless_a be_v god_n in_o our_o church_n there_o be_v abundant_a care_n take_v of_o god_n holy_a religion_n both_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n for_o the_o instruction_n and_o government_n of_o its_o member_n unto_o edification_n and_o peace_n and_o every_o one_o may_v be_v satisfy_v in_o his_o conscience_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o religion_n he_o profess_v yet_o this_o
know_v it_o to_o be_v such_o be_v in_o a_o hopeful_a and_o ready_a way_n to_o be_v reduce_v last_o if_o the_o dissenter_n from_o the_o church_n err_v not_o but_o the_o church_n do_v manifest_o enjoin_v unjust_a condition_n of_o its_o communion_n whoever_o they_o be_v who_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n catholick_o interpret_v and_o the_o use_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n come_v into_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o christian_a doctrine_n if_o they_o be_v divide_v from_o that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v unjust_a in_o its_o condition_n of_o union_n they_o themselves_o not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o division_n they_o in_o very_a deed_n notwithstanding_o be_v unite_v mean_a while_n to_o the_o church_n catholic_n i_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o that_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n part._n 6._o p._n ●_o error_n as_o vice_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o extreme_n we_o owe_v respect_n teachableness_n and_o submission_n unto_o all_o they_o who_o god_n set_v over_o we_o to_o instruct_v we_o this_o be_v not_o contest_v but_o this_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o change_v this_o submission_n into_o voluntary_a blindness_n which_o be_v rather_o a_o spirit_n of_o servitude_n chap._n vii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n §_o 1._o our_o prayer_n be_v not_o mingle_v with_o controversy_n §_o 2._o they_o be_v frame_v according_a to_o a_o most_o grave_a and_o serious_a manner_n with_o moderate_a variety_n and_o proper_a length_n §_o 3._o in_o the_o zeal_n of_o reformation_n our_o church_n do_v not_o cast_v off_o what_o be_v good_a in_o itself_o §_o 4._o in_o all_o our_o church_n there_o be_v the_o same_o rule_n §_o 5._o common_a prayer_n for_o the_o vulgar_a require_v in_o english_a to_o minister_n and_o scholar_n a_o just_a and_o moderate_a liberty_n allow_v §_o 6._o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v the_o method_n of_o private_a devotion_n to_o a_o general_a liberty_n §_o 7._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o appoint_v her_o hour_n and_o time_n of_o prayer_n §_o 8._o in_o her_o use_n and_o judgement_n of_o sermon_n §_o 9_o in_o what_o be_v require_v of_o people_n with_o reference_n to_o their_o parish_n church_n §_o 10._o the_o excellent_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o order_n for_o the_o reverend_a read_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o a_o voice_n as_o may_v be_v hear_v §_o 11._o in_o her_o form_n and_o use_v of_o catechise_v §_o 12._o the_o interest_n of_o inward_a and_o outward_a worship_n be_v both_o secure_v according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n in_o our_o church_n §_o 13._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o oath_n §_o 1._o in_o treat_v of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o the_o divine_a worship_n i_o first_o speak_v of_o prayer_n because_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v handle_v by_o itself_o ch._n 10._o in_o our_o public_a prayer_n our_o church_n moderation_n be_v apparent_a in_o that_o it_o never_o intend_v to_o intermingle_v matter_n of_o doubtful_a controversy_n but_o have_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o plain_a and_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o most_o intelligent_a thus_o our_o bishop_n according_a to_o great_a moderation_n also_o justify_v our_o church_n in_o their_o debate_n with_o the_o presbyterian_a brethren_n the_o church_n have_v be_v careful_a to_o put_v nothing_o into_o the_o liturgy_n but_o what_o be_v either_o evident_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o what_o have_v be_v general_o receive_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n neither_o of_o which_o can_v be_v call_v private_a opinion_n and_o if_o the_o contrary_n can_v be_v prove_v we_o wish_v it_o out_o of_o the_o liturgy_n yet_o because_o as_o bishop_n taylor_n say_v they_o can_v not_o prophesy_v they_o put_v in_o some_o thing_n which_o since_o have_v be_v call_v into_o question_n liturg._n question_n exorti_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o angliâ_fw-la morosi_fw-la scrupulosi_fw-la &_o delicatuli_fw-la nimium_fw-la ne_fw-la superstitiosos_fw-la planè_fw-la dicam_fw-la homines_fw-la quibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suae_fw-la hactenus_fw-la usurpata_fw-la liturgia_fw-la visa_fw-la est_fw-la multis_fw-la abroganda_fw-la etc._n etc._n ludo._n capellus_n de_fw-fr liturg._n by_o person_n who_o interest_n be_v high_o concern_v to_o find_v fault_n with_o something_o anglic._n something_o quaedam_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la rapi_fw-la possunt_fw-la ab_fw-la inquietis_fw-la in_o materiam_fw-la contentionis_fw-la bucer_n de_fw-fr liturgiâ_fw-la anglic._n §_o 2._o our_o prayer_n be_v frame_v both_o according_a to_o a_o grave_n modest_a and_o serious_a manner_n every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v moderate_o short_a and_o all_o together_o not_o immoderate_o long_a and_o so_o more_o accommodate_v to_o render_v devotion_n more_o earnest_a and_o intent_n and_o proper_o intermit_v by_o other_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n that_o by_o a_o moderate_a variety_n the_o devotion_n of_o christian_n may_v be_v both_o entertain_v and_o advantage_v and_o to_o stir_v up_o devotion_n in_o christian_a people_n they_o bear_v in_o our_o church_n a_o moderate_a part_n in_o the_o public_a prayer_n and_o praise_n for_o as_o mr_n baxter_n well_o note_n 856._o note_n christian_n direct_a p._n 856._o it_o be_v the_o decay_n of_o zeal_n in_o the_o people_n that_o first_o shut_v out_o the_o response_n the_o use_n of_o the_o tongue_n keep_v awake_v the_o mind_n and_o stir_v up_o god_n grace_n in_o his_o servant_n and_o so_o much_o do_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n give_v measure_n to_o the_o appointment_n of_o our_o church_n that_o the_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o accustom_a place_n of_o the_o church_n chappel_n or_o chancel_n or_o in_o such_o place_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o ecclesiastical_a 14_o canon_n 14_o ordinary_n of_o the_o place_n shall_v think_v meet_a for_o the_o largeness_n or_o straitness_n of_o the_o same_o so_o as_o the_o people_n may_v most_o be_v edifyed_a §_o 3._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v always_o to_o be_v admire_v that_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o reformation_n when_o the_o essay_n be_v first_o have_v for_o the_o refine_n our_o liturgy_n from_o romish_a corruption_n and_o innovation_n our_o church_n be_v not_o so_o transport_v with_o zeal_n but_o that_o it_o retain_v what_o be_v pious_a and_o profitable_a among_o the_o prayer_n in_o use_n and_o whereas_o general_o opposition_n be_v most_o fierce_a at_o first_o and_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o become_v moderate_a the_o excellent_a temper_n of_o our_o church_n be_v such_o it_o be_v most_o moderate_a at_o first_o which_o wisdom_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o temper_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n can_v never_o be_v enough_o take_v notice_n of_o wherefore_o the_o use_n of_o some_o collect_v and_o passage_n in_o our_o liturgy_n which_o before_o be_v have_v in_o the_o romish_a communion_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o real_a argument_n against_o our_o church_n that_o it_o be_v a_o proper_a proof_n of_o our_o church_n just_a reformation_n that_o it_o maintain_v its_o freedom_n from_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o its_o zeal_n if_o some_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n themselves_o and_o liturgy_n have_v be_v draw_v into_o matter_n of_o debate_n it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o all_o word_n and_o writing_n be_v liable_a to_o when_o they_o meet_v with_o those_o who_o be_v concern_v to_o be_v displease_v but_o the_o exception_n against_o they_o be_v such_o that_o i_o speak_v my_o conscience_n in_o what_o i_o know_v the_o most_o probable_a mean_n to_o reconcile_v any_o to_o a_o just_a apprehension_n of_o our_o liturgy_n and_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o same_o be_v well_o to_o consider_v the_o feeble_a weakness_n of_o the_o exception_n which_o be_v use_v against_o it_o which_o king_n james_n note_v long_o since_o how_o mighty_a and_o vehement_a information_n against_o the_o common_a prayer_n be_v support_v with_o weak_a and_o slender_a proof_n but_o say_v the_o king_n 1603._o king_n king_n james_n proclamation_n for_o uniformity_n 1603._o we_o be_v nice_a or_o rather_o jealous_a that_o the_o public_a form_n thereof_o shall_v be_v free_a not_o only_o from_o blame_n but_o from_o suspicion_n so_o as_o neither_o the_o common_a adversary_n shall_v take_v advantage_n nor_o the_o troublesome_a at_o home_n cavil_v between_o which_o two_o sort_n of_o adversary_n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v try_v so_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n consider_v archbishop_n cranmer_n letter_n cranmer_n archbishop_z cranmer_n letter_n have_v very_o good_a reason_n to_o declare_v that_o he_o with_o some_o other_o he_o shall_v choose_v will_v by_o god_n grace_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o defend_v not_o only_o the_o common-prayer_n
make_v between_o a_o preach_a and_o a_o non-preaching_a minister_n homily_n minister_n canon_n 46_o 67._o preface_n to_o the_o homily_n who_o though_o he_o be_v not_o so_o profound_o learn_v as_o other_o of_o which_o learned_a sort_n bless_v be_v god_n we_o have_v some_o good_a abundance_n yet_o if_o he_o be_v blameless_a in_o his_o life_n and_o faithful_a in_o his_o office_n and_o observant_a of_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n there_o be_v so_o many_o help_v ready_a provide_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n among_o we_o that_o a_o not-preaching_a minister_n may_v perform_v a_o ministerial_a office_n both_o for_o the_o necessary_a edification_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o just_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o church_n more_o than_o many_o preach_a minister_n of_o who_o discretion_n and_o wise_a order_n the_o church_n can_v be_v so_o well_o secure_v hear_v we_o archbishop_n whitgift_n 1572._o whitgift_n answer_v to_o the_o admon_n 1572._o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o he_o come_v near_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o orderly_o preach_v once_o a_o month_n than_o some_o who_o be_v backbiter_n at_o other_o man_n table_n and_o run_v up_o and_o down_o seldom_o or_o never_o study_v though_o they_o preach_v twice_o a_o day_n for_o though_o no_o church_n do_v more_o promote_v and_o encourage_v the_o proficiency_n of_o her_o son_n in_o all_o useful_a literature_n yet_o the_o church_n think_v it_o not_o reason_n to_o reject_v the_o ministry_n of_o a_o not-preaching_a minister_n otherwise_o reasonable_o qualify_v can._n 34._o where_o it_o be_v necessary_a especial_o when_o as_o the_o church_n declare_v the_o sacrament_n be_v effectual_o administer_v by_o they_o that_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o preach_v artic._n 26._o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n be_v also_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o require_v those_o who_o be_v benefice_v to_o procure_v at_o least_o a_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n once_o a_o month_n 47._o month_n can._n 46_o 47._o and_o especial_o there_o be_v wholesome_a homily_n for_o the_o other_o day_n the_o church_n have_v do_v her_o part_n in_o provide_v for_o the_o spiritual_a sustenance_n of_o her_o child_n both_o for_o their_o necessity_n and_o entertainment_n and_o those_o who_o can_v preach_v as_o bless_a be_v god_n there_o be_v many_o think_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o do_v the_o same_o frequent_o and_o constant_o §_o 9_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n be_v also_o that_o none_o neglect_v their_o own_o parish_n church_n and_o with_o great_a reason_n to_o avoid_v unspeakable_a confusion_n yet_o even_o in_o 1._o in_o stat._n 1._o r._n eliz._n c._n 2._o 32_o eliz_n c._n 1._o q._n elizabeth_n injunction_n 1559._o §_o 33._o the_o precept_n be_v express_v with_o this_o indulgence_n except_o it_o be_v by_o the_o occasion_n of_o some_o extraordinary_a sermon_n in_o some_o parish_n of_o the_o same_o town_n and_o in_o the_o article_n for_o enquiry_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n one_o be_v whether_o you_o know_v any_o that_o in_o contempt_n of_o their_o own_o parish_n church_n do_v resort_n to_o any_o other_o church_n so_o in_o the_o homily_n church_n homily_n the_o homily_n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v say_v that_o to_o the_o say_a house_n or_o temple_n of_o god_n at_o all_o time_n by_o common_a order_n appoint_v be_v all_o people_n that_o be_v godly_a indeed_o bind_v with_o all_o diligence_n to_o resort_v unless_o by_o sickness_n or_o other_o most_o urgent_a cause_n they_o be_v let_v therefrom_o so_o willing_a be_v always_o our_o church_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o allow_v all_o reasonable_a liberty_n provide_v it_o may_v not_o be_v abuse_v no_o man_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o london-derry_n in_o his_o vindication_n be_v ever_o punish_v for_o instruct_v his_o own_o family_n but_o it_o may_v be_v for_o hold_v unlawful_a conventicle_n or_o for_o instruct_v they_o in_o seditious_a schismatical_a or_o heretical_a principle_n nor_o for_o go_v to_o the_o next_o parish_n to_o hear_v a_o sermon_n thousand_o do_v it_o daily_o and_o never_o suffer_v for_o it_o but_o it_o may_v be_v for_o neglect_v or_o desert_v his_o parish_n church_n 3._o church_n cuique_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la parochiâ_fw-la sacris_fw-la coetibus_fw-la ad●●_n &_o ibi_fw-la christi_fw-la ceremoniis_fw-la vacet_fw-la sacramentaque_fw-la omne_fw-la percipiat_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la haec_fw-la sacere_fw-la ●●●ligal_a excommunicetur_fw-la eucer_n de_fw-fr eccs_n angl._n censura_fw-la c._n 3._o and_o gad_v up_o and_o down_o after_o nonconformist_n and_o strange_a unknown_a form_n of_o serve_v god_n §_o 10._o because_o as_o bucer_n observe_v too_o many_o do_v not_o in_o the_o read_n or_o recite_v the_o divine_a service_n use_v that_o devout_a reverend_a and_o intelligible_a manner_n as_o be_v fit_a the_o special_a care_n of_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v very_o great_a of_o this_o as_o appear_v from_o the_o admonition_n to_o all_o minister_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n and_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n injunction_n 1559._o and_o in_o the_o several_a article_n for_o enquiry_n by_o all_o which_o all_o care_n be_v take_v 1571._o take_v vi._n librum_fw-la quorundam_fw-la canonum_fw-la 1571._o that_o all_o minister_n and_o reader_n of_o public_a prayer_n chapter_n and_o homily_n shall_v be_v charge_v to_o read_v leisurely_o plain_o and_o distinct_o 35._o distinct_o 39_o article_n 35._o and_o the_o rubric_n require_v the_o minister_n to_o read_v the_o lesson_n stand_v and_o turn_v himself_o so_o as_o he_o may_v best_o be_v hear_v of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v present_a which_o precept_n contain_v as_o much_o as_o the_o general_a missal_n 17._o missal_n liquet_n omnino_fw-la requiri_fw-la ut_fw-la ministri_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la have_v preces_fw-la psalmos_fw-la &_o conciones_fw-la recitent_fw-la summâ_fw-la gravitate_fw-la &_o religione_fw-la disertè_fw-la quoque_fw-la &_o perspicué_fw-fr bucer_n de_fw-fr ordin_n eccl._n anglic._n c._n 1._o canatur_fw-la &_o legatur_fw-la drticulatim_fw-la explanatè_fw-la &_o reverendo_fw-la gestu_fw-la ad_fw-la aedificationem_fw-la orantis_fw-la interea_fw-la laici_fw-la wicelii_n meth._n concor_n c._n 17._o rubric_n which_o require_v the_o priest_n to_o read_v neither_o too_o precipitant_o fast_o nor_o too_o morose_o slow_a with_o a_o voice_n mean_a and_o grave_a fit_a to_o excite_v devotion_n and_o which_o be_v accommodate_v to_o the_o hearer_n but_o whereas_o in_o the_o mass_n the_o romanist_n be_v enjoin_v a_o secret_a and_o private_a whisper_n in_o our_o church_n it_o be_v otherwise_o order_v for_o the_o common_a benefit_n which_o order_n our_o homily_n of_o the_o common-prayer_n and_o sacrament_n defend_v from_o divers_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o doctor_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o justinian_n 23._o justinian_n justin_n novel_a constit_fw-la 23._o who_o live_v 527_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v this_o we_o command_v that_o all_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v celebrate_v the_o holy_a oblation_n and_o the_o prayer_n in_o holy_a baptism_n not_o speak_v low_a but_o with_o a_o clear_a or_o loud_a voice_n which_o may_v be_v hear_v of_o the_o people_n that_o thereby_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o hearer_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o with_o great_a devotion_n in_o utter_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n for_o so_o that_o holy_a apostle_n teach_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n c._n 14._o therefore_o for_o these_o cause_v it_o be_v convenient_a that_o among_o other_o prayer_n those_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o holy_a oblation_n be_v utter_v and_o speak_v of_o the_o most_o religious_a priest_n unto_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n our_o god_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n which_o be_v as_o our_o homily_n take_v notice_n a_o plain_a decree_n of_o justinian_n for_o pray_v and_o administer_a of_o sacrament_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o will_v have_v ignorance_n make_v devotion_n to_o this_o head_n of_o right_n read_v the_o divine_a service_n belong_v the_o order_n of_o our_o church_n to_o use_v the_o divine_a service_n in_o public_a as_o order_n have_v prescribe_v 14._o prescribe_v non_fw-la transcu●●●ndo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d syncopando_fw-la syn._n ling._n 14_o 4._o can._n 14._o not_o chap_a and_o change_v add_v and_o pluck_v away_o whit-sunday_n away_o second_o part_n of_o the_o homily_n for_o whit-sunday_n as_o the_o homily_n speak_v of_o the_o romanist_n intermingle_v their_o own_o tradition_n yet_o though_o the_o church_n do_v not_o allow_v her_o clergy_n to_o mangle_v her_o office_n yet_o where_o need_n be_v remission_n be_v allow_v as_o in_o the_o office_n of_o private_a baptism_n communion_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o the_o like_a and_o if_o any_o liberty_n leave_v to_o the_o prudence_n and_o discretion_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v a_o proper_a instance_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n many_o may_v be_v
church_n moderation_n the_o ceremony_n of_o our_o church_n be_v but_o very_o few_o and_o those_o of_o great_a antiquity_n simplicity_n decency_n and_o clear_a signification_n hardly_o to_o be_v wrest_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o inward_a piety_n wherefore_o they_o be_v neither_o unprofitable_a nor_o burdensome_a of_o which_o they_o be_v charge_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o directory_n our_o church_n avoid_v extreme_n on_o one_o hand_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 13._o rome_n council_n trid._n sess_n 7._o can._n 13._o who_o ceremony_n be_v so_o cumbersome_a for_o their_o number_n 34._o number_n quia_fw-la ad_fw-la aures_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la totius_fw-la sermè_fw-la orbis_fw-la justissimae_fw-la querelae_fw-la pervenerint_fw-la de_fw-la moderandâ_fw-la &_o corrigendâ_fw-la onerosâ_fw-la multitudine_fw-la quorundam_fw-la rituum_fw-la chemnit_fw-la examen_fw-la ib._n p._n 34._o that_o they_o make_v no_o end_n of_o command_v and_o forbid_v till_o they_o come_v to_o the_o other_o extremity_n of_o moroseness_n of_o which_o humour_n st_n austin_n 118._o austin_n s._n aug._n ep._n 118._o in_o express_a word_n complain_v religion_n which_o god_n in_o his_o mercy_n have_v make_v free_a with_o few_o and_o clear_a sacrament_n be_v make_v more_o burdensome_a than_o ever_o be_v the_o jewish_a wherefore_o our_o church_n be_v most_o careful_a lest_o by_o any_o excess_n of_o ceremony_n religion_n shall_v be_v any_o wise_a obscure_v and_o by_o outward_a and_o sensible_a thing_n the_o mind_n of_o people_n shall_v be_v divert_v to_o the_o neglect_n of_o what_o be_v inward_a and_o spiritual_a therefore_o our_o church_n in_o its_o preface_n of_o ceremony_n why_o some_o be_v abolish_v complain_v that_o the_o excessive_a number_n of_o ceremony_n be_v so_o great_a and_o many_o of_o they_o so_o dark_a that_o they_o do_v more_o confound_v and_o darken_v than_o declare_v and_o set_v forth_o christ_n benefit_n unto_o we_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n our_o church_n avoid_v that_o other_o kind_n of_o superstition_n of_o those_o that_o consider_v not_o the_o frame_n of_o man_n nor_o the_o use_n and_o experience_n of_o have_v some_o rite_n for_o comeliness_n and_o edification_n liturgy_n edification_n v._o pref._n to_o the_o liturgy_n and_o for_o exciting_a piety_n and_o devotion_n in_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n let_v i_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o those_o who_o rather_o will_v accept_v such_o a_o truth_n from_o mr_n perkins_n tradition_n perkins_n reform_v catholic_n 7._o §._o of_o tradition_n repeat_v his_o word_n we_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v power_n to_o prescribe_v ordinance_n rule_n or_o tradition_n touch_v time_n and_o place_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o touch_v order_n and_o comeliness_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o same_o and_o in_o this_o regard_n paul_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 2._o commend_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n for_o keep_v his_o tradition_n and_o act_n 15._o 29._o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n decree_v that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v abstain_v from_o blood_n and_o from_o thing_n strangle_v this_o decree_n be_v term_v a_o tradition_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o tradition_n whether_o make_v by_o general_a or_o particular_a synod_n we_o have_v a_o care_n to_o maintain_v and_o observe_v these_o caveat_n be_v remember_v 15._o remember_v ritus_fw-la pauci_fw-la numero_fw-la sine_fw-la sumptu_fw-la minimè_fw-la grave_n grot._n in_o cassand_n artic._n 15._o 1._o that_o they_o prescribe_v nothing_o childish_a or_o absurd_a to_o be_v do_v 2._o that_o they_o be_v not_o impose_v as_o any_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n 3._o that_o they_o be_v sever_v from_o superstition_n or_o opinion_n of_o merit_n last_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v not_o burden_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o and_o indeed_o a_o worthy_a instance_n of_o the_o prudent_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v that_o in_o her_o reformation_n from_o rome_n she_o have_v deliver_v herself_o from_o such_o a_o endless_a 3._o endless_a europae_n speculum_fw-la p._n 3._o multitude_n of_o superstition_n and_o ceremony_n enough_o to_o take_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o a_o man_n life_n to_o gaze_v on_o and_o peruse_v a_o huge_a sort_n of_o which_o be_v so_o childish_a and_o unsavoury_a that_o as_o they_o argue_v great_a silliness_n and_o rawness_n in_o their_o inventor_n so_o can_v they_o natural_o bring_v no_o other_o than_o disgrace_n and_o contempt_n to_o those_o exercise_n of_o religion_n wherein_o they_o be_v stir_v yet_o after_o the_o fashion_n of_o a_o modest_a and_o prudent_a matron_n though_o our_o church_n do_v not_o appear_v tawdry_a dress_v with_o too_o great_a a_o variety_n of_o ill_n place_v cost_n yet_o do_v she_o endeavour_v always_o to_o appear_v discreet_a and_o comely_a in_o her_o attire_n on_o purpose_n retain_v some_o rite_n in_o respect_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o to_o vindicate_v herself_o from_o the_o imputation_n of_o moroseness_n and_o not_o to_o side_n with_o the_o other_o extreme_a of_o those_o who_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n affect_v carelessness_n and_o neglect_n of_o any_o good_a form_n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v retain_v some_o ceremony_n in_o her_o office_n thereby_o also_o to_o vindicate_v real_a christian_a liberty_n namely_o the_o public_a liberty_n of_o god_n church_n one_o part_n of_o which_o as_o bucer_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n well_o note_v be_v for_o the_o church_n to_o choose_v its_o own_o rite_n and_o also_o to_o vindicate_v the_o liberty_n of_o private_a christian_n who_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n have_v their_o choice_n direct_v for_o their_o own_o edification_n and_o the_o better_a order_n of_o divine_a thing_n for_o diversity_n of_o ceremony_n in_o divers_a church_n do_v serve_v to_o testify_v the_o christian_a liberty_n and_o do_v great_o conduce_v to_o teach_v the_o true_a judgement_n of_o ceremony_n namely_o that_o all_o man_n by_o this_o diversity_n may_v understand_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o may_v be_v alter_v as_o the_o time_n and_o circumstance_n of_o edification_n do_v require_v 194._o require_v sprint_n necessity_n of_o conformity_n in_o case_n of_o deprivation_n p._n 115._o it_o a_o forbesius_n in_o irenico_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o harmon_n confess_v p_o 194._o which_o reason_n of_o they_o though_o it_o have_v be_v frequent_o repeat_v yet_o have_v not_o sufficient_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v such_o assertor_n of_o christian_a liberty_n who_o fall_v foul_a into_o another_o servile_a and_o unquiet_a sort_n of_o superstition_n yet_o when_o we_o consider_v the_o horrid_a stiff_a superstition_n of_o such_o precisian_n who_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o point_n of_o ceremony_n do_v affright_v we_o can_v think_v they_o so_o mope_v but_o other_o appear_v to_o have_v run_v into_o a_o great_a excess_n of_o madness_n when_o we_o behold_v the_o exceed_a number_n of_o ceremony_n and_o observance_n which_o the_o roman_a rubric_n appoint_v in_o their_o ritual_n missal_n and_o pontifical_a etc._n etc._n we_o may_v bless_v ourselves_o who_o within_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n be_v free_v from_o such_o a_o bondage_n more_o grievous_a than_o the_o jewish_a especial_o since_o their_o rite_n many_o of_o which_o be_v so_o ridiculous_a and_o trifle_a etc._n trifle_a vi._n pontificale_fw-la rom._n de_fw-fr ecclesiae_fw-la dedicatione_n p._n 237._o vi._n rituale_fw-la rom._n in_fw-la absolvendo_fw-la excommunicatum_fw-la jam_fw-la mortuum_fw-la etc._n etc._n 550._o etc._n quando_fw-la primò_fw-la clericis_fw-la barbae_fw-la tondentur_fw-la dici_fw-la debet_fw-la pontifice_fw-la sedente_fw-la cum_fw-la mitrâ_fw-la antiphona_n sicut_fw-la ros_fw-fr hermon_n etc._n etc._n pontificale_fw-la p._n 550._o be_v not_o only_o approve_v but_o require_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o anathema_n 13._o anathema_n conc._n trid._n sess_n 7._o can._n 13._o and_o that_o for_o sure_a notice_n repeat_v in_o the_o first_o page_n of_o their_o ritual_a wherefore_o as_o plutarch_n well_o say_v of_o religion_n it_o have_v its_o place_n between_o contempt_n of_o divine_a thing_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o superstition_n on_o the_o other_o so_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v excellent_o temper_v to_o keep_v christian_n from_o enthusiasm_n in_o one_o extreme_a and_o from_o what_o some_o call_v rituality_n on_o the_o other_o 105._o other_o d._n h._n mori_n ethic._n c._n 5._o p._n 105._o of_o our_o church_n care_n in_o this_o last_o particular_a bishop_n taylor_n thus_o endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v some_o conscience_n there_o be_v reason_n say_v he_o to_o celebrate_v and_o honour_v the_o wisdom_n and_o prudence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o have_v in_o all_o her_o office_n retain_v but_o one_o ritual_a or_o ceremony_n that_o be_v not_o of_o divine_a ordinance_n or_o apostolical_a practice_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n which_o
gaudio●um_fw-la &_o numerositas_fw-la festivitatum_fw-la cives_fw-la decet_fw-la non_fw-la exules_fw-la s._n bern._n ep._n 174._o such_o a_o number_n of_o festivity_n be_v fit_a for_o citizen_n than_o for_o exile_n and_o pilgrim_n and_o clemangius_n note_n that_o moses_n appoint_v but_o three_o great_a solemnity_n whereas_o at_o present_a the_o romanist_n concor_fw-fr romanist_n quarta_fw-la pars_fw-la anni_fw-la feratiunculis_fw-la conteritur_fw-la wicelius_n meth._n conc._n §._o 19_o essraenis_fw-la earum_fw-la numerus_fw-la centum_fw-la gravam_fw-la 37._o turba_n festorum_fw-la dierum_fw-la de_fw-la causis_fw-la non_fw-la necessariis_fw-la etc._n etc._n erasin_n de_fw-fr amab_n concor_fw-fr observe_v more_o festival_n than_o ever_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v neither_o have_v they_o any_o feast_n for_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n as_o the_o other_o have_v for_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n it_o be_v true_a a_o french_a writer_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o some_o sorbon_n doctor_n and_o other_o of_o the_o same_o communion_n have_v think_v that_o many_o of_o their_o festival_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o by_o the_o pope_n leave_n or_o without_o it_o according_a to_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n but_o now_o as_o they_o write_v under_o correction_n of_o superior_n it_o be_v pretty_a to_o see_v in_o their_o prune_n the_o luxuriant_a number_n of_o feast_n what_o choice_n some_o puritan_n romanist_n offer_v at_o in_o their_o scheme_n of_o reformation_n 48._o reformation_n i_o bapt._n thiers_n the_o fest_n dier_z imminutione_fw-la c._n 48._o for_o the_o feast_n of_o circumcision_n they_o will_v blot_v out_o because_o it_o fall_v on_o the_o first_o of_o january_n a_o day_n of_o gentile_a superstition_n the_o feast_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v present_v in_o the_o temple_n or_o of_o the_o purification_n because_o 51._o c._n 51._o on_o that_o day_n the_o gentile_n honour_a mars_n or_o pluto_n call_v februus_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o epiphany_n they_o will_v have_v expunge_v because_o on_o those_o day_n some_o choose_v king_n and_o queen_n yet_o how_o do_v they_o strain_v 49._o c._n 49._o at_o a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n for_o these_o glorious_a reformer_n of_o the_o calendar_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n have_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n into_o heaven_n omit_v 339._o omit_v assumptionis_fw-la celebritatem_fw-la seruari_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-fr c._n 52._o p._n 339._o and_o at_o this_o day_n the_o romanist_n keep_v for_o a_o solemnity_n the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n by_o which_o as_o st_n austin_n speak_v of_o some_o they_o love_v to_o canonize_v their_o own_o apocryphal_a error_n notwithstanding_o among_o the_o feast-day_n to_o be_v delete_v the_o forementioned_a reformer_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o reckon_v up_o all_o saint_n day_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o st_n michael_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n 55._o c._n 53_o 54_o 55._o except_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n whereas_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o also_o in_o the_o lutheran_n and_o other_o reform_a church_n 163._o church_n d._n d._n durell_n of_o ref._n ch._n sect._n 2._o §._o 23_o 24._o chemnit_fw-la exam._n par_fw-fr 4._o p._n 163._o after_o the_o reformation_n a_o moderate_a number_n of_o festival_n be_v appoint_v 171._o appoint_v v._o the_o act_n for_o abrogation_n of_o superfluous_a holiday_n bishop_n spar._n collect._n p._n 225._o king_n edw._n 6._o inj._n 1547._o queen_n eliz._n inj._n §._o 46._o festos_fw-la die_v protestant_n legum_n praescripto_fw-la vicunque_fw-la tenent_fw-la eosdem_fw-la omnes_fw-la quos_fw-la antiquitus_fw-la celebravit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la satetur_fw-la saunder_n de_fw-fr schism_n angl._n p._n 171._o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o most_o sober_a romanist_n have_v desire_v many_o of_o they_o may_v be_v rescind_v §_o 2._o another_o consideration_n which_o moderate_v the_o number_n of_o festival_n in_o our_o church_n be_v several_a of_o they_o fall_v in_o with_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o indeed_o most_o of_o they_o have_v relation_n to_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n so_o that_o from_o the_o very_a design_n of_o the_o festival_n the_o hardhanded_n artisan_n may_v learn_v the_o name_n and_o meaning_n of_o some_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n as_o bishop_n taylor_n speak_v 36._o speak_v pref._n to_o collection_n of_o office_n §._o 36._o and_o by_o such_o anniversary_n remembrance_n of_o his_o faith_n may_v at_o once_o help_v his_o memory_n and_o devotion_n both_o which_o among_o the_o romanist_n be_v much_o overcharge_v with_o the_o exceed_a number_n of_o festival_n and_o also_o by_o they_o the_o mean_a man_n be_v much_o hinder_v from_o maintain_v his_o family_n and_o pay_v his_o due_n in_o the_o poor_a man_n almanac_n the_o number_n of_o festival_n on_o one_o side_n increase_a the_o number_n of_o debt_n on_o the_o other_o together_o confound_v his_o devotion_n and_o his_o estate_n whereas_o in_o our_o calendar_n the_o festival_n be_v set_v down_o with_o such_o choice_n as_o bishop_n hall_n somewhere_o have_v note_v that_o the_o mean_a sort_n by_o skill_n in_o their_o almanac_n may_v be_v teach_v their_o christian_a faith_n 7._o faith_n festorum_fw-la recurrens_fw-la meditatio_fw-la est_fw-la veluti_fw-la catecheseos_fw-la christianae_n inculcatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n forbes_n irenic_n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o §_o 3._o as_o we_o can_v but_o account_v it_o a_o very_a scandalous_a reproach_n which_o some_o of_o the_o romanist_n have_v use_v that_o 3_o that_o richworth_n dialogue_n 3_o catholic_n have_v some_o saint_n protestant_n none_o so_o they_o may_v know_v we_o celebrate_v such_o who_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n always_o have_v celebrate_v and_o which_o be_v also_o celebrate_v by_o many_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n morav_n church_n v._o confess_v helvet_n c._n 24._o confess_v eccl._n bohem._n &_o morav_n yea_o and_o as_o we_o have_v have_v our_o saint_n so_o our_o church_n have_v have_v her_o martyr_n too_o which_o be_v more_o than_o common_a saint_n who_o have_v be_v glorious_a witness_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n and_o of_o the_o extreme_a rigour_n of_o our_o church_n adversary_n on_o either_o hand_n in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o who_o as_o bishop_n cousin_n 92._o cousin_n private_a deu._n p._n 92._o have_v take_v notice_n such_o be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n she_o have_v take_v one_o solemn_a day_n of_o the_o year_n to_o magnify_v god_n for_o the_o generality_n of_o his_o saint_n together_o hereby_o avoid_v the_o burden_n and_o unnecessary_a number_n of_o festival_n day_n neither_o be_v the_o memory_n of_o any_o saint_n among_o we_o celebrate_v of_o who_o sanctity_n much_o more_o of_o who_o existence_n we_o be_v uncertain_a finem_fw-la uncertain_a of_o the_o canonization_n of_o st._n thomas_n a_o becket_n v._o consid_fw-la of_o present_a concernment_n §._o 9_o v._o c._n baron_n in_o martyrol_n die_v 29._o decembr_n s._n thom._n cantuar._n macte_fw-la animo_fw-la macte_fw-la virtute_fw-la anglicanorum_fw-la nobilissime_fw-it ac_fw-la gloriosissime_fw-la coetus_fw-la qui_fw-la tam_fw-la illustri_fw-la militiae_fw-la nomen_fw-la dedisti_fw-la ac_fw-la sacramento_n sanguinem_fw-la spospondisti_fw-la aemulor_fw-la sanè_fw-la vos_fw-la dei_fw-la aemulatione_fw-la cum_fw-la vos_fw-la martyrii_fw-la candidatos_fw-la ac_fw-la nobilissimae_fw-la purpurae_fw-la martyr_n aspicio_fw-la quae_fw-la verba_fw-la dixit_fw-la vir_fw-la gravissimus_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la de_fw-fr his_o qui_fw-la temporibus_fw-la elizabethae_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la de_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la svo_fw-la etiam_fw-la tempore_fw-la sub_fw-la jacobo_n propter_fw-la similem_fw-la causam_fw-la passi_fw-la sunt_fw-la suarii_n def._n l._n 6._o c._n 11._o de_fw-fr veris_fw-la anglicanis_fw-la martyribus_fw-la h._n garnetto_n etc._n etc._n v._o saunder_n de_fw-fr schism_n angl._n ad_fw-la finem_fw-la so_o far_o be_v our_o church_n from_o allow_v the_o roman_a way_n of_o apotheosis_n who_o calendar_n afford_v a_o red_a letter_n for_o some_o who_o have_v die_v for_o the_o black_a and_o foul_a crime_n nor_o do_v our_o church_n obtrude_v upon_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n any_o apocryphal_a legend_n 32●_n legend_n ludou._n viu._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr caus_n corrup_n be_v v._o the_o fest_n imminutione_fw-la c._n 50._o p._n 32●_n or_o fable_n of_o saint_n nor_o receive_v any_o false_a revelation_n or_o vision_n for_o the_o keep_n new_a festival_n §_o 4._o the_o end_v propound_v in_o our_o church_n why_o we_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o saint_n be_v most_o just_a and_o unexceptionable_a namely_o that_o we_o may_v bless_v god_n for_o their_o gift_n and_o grace_n which_o have_v be_v eminent_a in_o they_o which_o we_o magnify_v and_o celebrate_v that_o we_o may_v more_o cheerful_o be_v enliven_v to_o imitate_v 14._o imitate_v divos_fw-la ac_fw-la divas_fw-la optim●_fw-la coli_fw-la imitando_fw-la vitam_fw-la illorum_fw-la erasm_n de_fw-fr amab_n eccl_n concor_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n chrys_n to._n 5._o p._n 625._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n eccl._n hist_o l._n 4._o c._n 14._o they_o and_o breath_n after_o the_o
our_o church_n reform_v altaris_fw-la scintilla_fw-la altaris_fw-la that_o to_o avoid_v excess_n of_o dedication_n wherein_o other_o be_v too_o burdensome_a she_o sometime_o unit_v two_o of_o the_o apostle_n at_o once_o in_o one_o festivity_n as_o s._n simon_n and_o judas_n s._n philip_n and_o james_n §_o 8._o the_o more_o immoderate_a be_v their_o reproach_n who_o brand_n our_o reform_a church_n for_o be_v guilty_a of_o popery_n only_o because_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o just_a among_o we_o be_v bless_v 22._o bless_v co●●mus_fw-la martyr_n cultu_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la non_fw-la servitutis_fw-la s._n aug._n c._n faus_n l._n 22._o notwithstanding_o those_o very_a exceptor_n be_v real_o like_o the_o romanist_n canonise_a and_o saint_v one_o another_o for_o be_v of_o some_o particular_a humour_n and_o faction_n in_o this_o for_o one_o that_o they_o will_v not_o keep_v a_o festival_n or_o remember_v a_o apostle_n with_o honour_n indeed_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v canonize_v the_o worst_a of_o man_n and_o let_v any_o one_o tell_v the_o difference_n when_o many_o of_o those_o other_o saint_n each_o other_o and_o affect_v no_o other_o title_n but_o of_o your_o holiness_n and_o here_o let_v any_o equal_a and_o intelligent_a christian_n judge_n whether_o those_o who_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o sundry_a infirmity_n and_o fail_n ought_v not_o and_z may_z not_o more_o proper_o according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v call_v saint_n than_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o outward_a communion_n of_o god_n church_n although_o they_o usurp_v the_o name_n peculiar_o to_o themselves_o and_o here_o we_o can_v but_o observe_v the_o modesty_n of_o those_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o be_v true_a christian_a moderation_n they_o never_o be_v so_o forward_o to_o rush_v sudden_o as_o it_o be_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n in_o call_v themselves_o and_o one_o another_o absolute_a saint_n but_o rather_o while_o they_o be_v in_o their_o way_n and_o pilgrimage_n choose_v to_o be_v honour_v with_o more_o modest_a title_n even_o as_o pythagoras_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v commend_v for_o his_o moderation_n in_o lay_v aside_o the_o great_a name_n of_o wife_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v a_o lover_n of_o wisdom_n §_o 9_o the_o same_o moderation_n which_o our_o church_n use_v towards_o saint_n she_o observe_v likewise_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o holy_a angel_n yea_o indeed_o great_a be_v the_o modesty_n and_o sober_a wisdom_n of_o our_o church_n in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o where_o excessive_o curious_a nor_o positive_a in_o determine_v of_o the_o nature_n action_n knowledge_n number_n order_n or_o special_a guardianship_n of_o angel_n our_o church_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o distinct_a order_n of_o angel_n but_o no_o where_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o show_v how_o those_o order_n be_v dispose_v but_o avoid_v the_o extreme_a of_o those_o who_o be_v stupid_o insensible_a of_o the_o conduct_n of_o holy_a angel_n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v glorify_v god_n for_o their_o creation_n for_o their_o admirable_a order_n and_o ministry_n and_o affection_n to_o we_o we_o pray_v to_o god_n we_o may_v imitate_v their_o readiness_n and_o cheerfulness_n in_o praise_v and_o serve_v he_o and_o minister_a daily_o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o yet_o our_o church_n have_v always_o hold_v the_o angel_n to_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o worship_n and_o not_o of_o those_o who_o be_v worship_v and_o for_o we_o to_o worship_v those_o who_o be_v themselves_o worshipper_n will_v be_v such_o a_o voluntary_a humility_n as_o be_v sinful_a namely_o to_o address_v ourselves_o to_o such_o substitute_n as_o god_n no_o where_n have_v appoint_v to_o receive_v his_o peculiar_a honour_n 57_o honour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d orig._n c._n cell_n l._n 8._o neque_fw-la invocationibus_fw-la angelicis_fw-la sed_fw-la 〈◊〉_d purè_fw-la &_o manifestè_fw-la orationes_fw-la dirigens_fw-la ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la qui_fw-la omne_fw-la s●it_fw-la iren._n l._n 2._o c._n 57_o which_o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n a._n d._n 364._o call_v idolatry_n §_o 10._o the_o like_a moderation_n do_v our_o church_n excellent_o well_o observe_v in_o the_o honour_n she_o give_v to_o the_o ever_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n so_o high_o favour_v of_o god_n as_o to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o our_o church_n celebrate_v and_o always_o humble_o call_v her_o bless_a and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o convocation_n 1537._o we_o may_v worthy_o say_v she_o be_v the_o most_o bless_a of_o all_o other_o woman_n 174._o woman_n maria_fw-la mater_fw-la domini_fw-la principatum_fw-la inter_fw-la mulieres_fw-la tenuit_fw-la s._n aug._n scrm._n 136._o hanc_fw-la ego_fw-la christi_fw-la matrem_fw-la veneror_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la illi_fw-la divae_fw-la modò_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o deae_fw-la nomen_fw-la tribuens_fw-la r._n jac._n apol._n pro_fw-la jur._n honour_n reginae_fw-la judicium_fw-la diligit_fw-la virgo_fw-la regius_fw-la falso_fw-la non_fw-la eget_fw-la honore_fw-la de_fw-fr b._n v._o mariâ_fw-la s._n bernard_n ep._n 174._o and_o we_o not_o where_o doubt_n but_o she_o be_v high_o grace_v in_o heaven_n as_o she_o receive_v a_o most_o special_a privilege_n upon_o earth_n but_o our_o church_n do_v no_o where_n believe_v that_o she_o have_v a_o immaculate_a conception_n which_o the_o romanist_n celebrate_v with_o a_o holiday_n on_o purpose_n neither_o do_v our_o church_n believe_v she_o be_v ever_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o assume_v into_o heaven_n which_o they_o solemnize_v with_o another_o festival_n neither_o do_v erasmus_n 2._o erasmus_n erasm_n ecclesiaste_n l._n 2._o without_o cause_n admire_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v they_o salute_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n with_o more_o religion_n than_o they_o invoke_v christ_n himself_o or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n calling_z her_z the_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o sundry_a expression_n they_o use_v of_o the_o like_a affiance_n in_o the_o authority_n and_o merit_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o succour_v help_v and_o save_v sinner_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o rosary_n and_o psalter_n and_o special_o litany_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 392._o mary_n v._o consult_v cassandr_n art_n 20._o p._n 140._o jube_fw-la filio_fw-la etc._n etc._n cùm_fw-la vix_fw-la aliud_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la choro_fw-la sit_fw-la alienius_fw-la à_fw-la scripture_n sanctis_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la cum_fw-la evangelio_n christi_fw-la atque_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la apostolicâ_fw-la perditiùs_fw-la pugnet_fw-la wicelius_n de_fw-fr abusu_fw-la eccl._n p._n 392._o in_o their_o form_n of_o auricular_a confession_n they_o be_v teach_v thus_o to_o begin_v 128._o begin_v manuale_fw-la confessionum_fw-la cap._n 10._o p._n 128._o i_o confess_v to_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n to_o the_o bless_a mary_n always_o virgin_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o they_o enter_v into_o their_o monastery_n they_o vow_v themselves_o to_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n they_o be_v so_o superdevout_a 〈◊〉_d superdevout_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o virgin_n that_o a_o oath_n by_o she_o be_v account_v most_o sacred_a and_o any_o of_o the_o festival_n may_v be_v soon_o expunge_v than_o that_o of_o her_o assumption_n into_o heaven_n and_o although_o they_o prohibit_v the_o bible_n yet_o they_o free_o suffer_v sundry_a book_n of_o devotion_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n §_o 11._o our_o church_n have_v take_v great_a care_n that_o a_o special_a honour_n be_v have_v to_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o that_o neither_o the_o lord_n day_n nor_o any_o other_o festival_n be_v abuse_v to_o luxury_n or_o impiety_n 26._o impiety_n haeccine_fw-la solemne_v dies_fw-la decent_a quae_fw-la alios_fw-la non_fw-la decent_a tertull._n ita_fw-la festa_fw-la moderanda_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la nimia_fw-la neque_fw-la tam_fw-la flagitiosè_fw-la profanentur_fw-la bucer_n censur_n c._n 26._o it_o appear_v from_o the_o office_n in_o our_o liturgy_n the_o rubric_n canon_n homily_n and_o statute_n of_o the_o land_n and_o injunction_n of_o our_o king_n since_o the_o reformation_n that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o first_o and_o special_a care_n take_v for_o the_o holy_a celebration_n of_o sunday_n or_o lord_n day_n wherein_o we_o be_v equal_a to_o any_o church_n among_o the_o reform_a 54._o reform_a vi._n d._n crackenthorp_n defence_n eccl._n aug._n c._n 54._o the_o other_o festival_n be_v overrule_v that_o in_o a_o concurrence_n of_o office_n they_o may_v not_o disturb_v its_o solemnity_n the_o very_a religious_a observation_n of_o which_o be_v earnest_o also_o persuade_v in_o our_o homily_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o 13._o canon_n with_o which_o agree_v the_o injunction_n of_o k._n edw._n 6._o and_o q._n eliz._n require_v apol._n require_v coimus_fw-la in_o coetum_fw-la ut_fw-la deum_fw-la quasi_fw-la manu_fw-la factâ_fw-la precationibus_fw-la ambiamus_fw-la orantes_fw-la coimus_fw-la ad_fw-la divinarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la commemorationem_fw
her_o moderation_n in_o what_o be_v assert_v of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n §_o 3._o in_o that_o her_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o suitable_a to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o appointment_n §_o 4._o in_o that_o our_o church_n do_v not_o make_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o depend_v upon_o unrequire_v condition_n in_o reference_n to_o holy_a baptism_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n do_v make_v nothing_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o baptism_n but_o the_o use_n of_o the_o invariable_a form_n §_o 2._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o infant_n unbaptise_v her_o sound_n and_o charitable_a judgement_n of_o such_o as_o die_v after_o baptism_n §_o 3._o in_o some_o necessary_a caution_n refer_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n §_o 4._o refer_v also_o to_o the_o susceptor_n §_o 5._o in_o what_o be_v require_v of_o they_o who_o administer_v that_o sacrament_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o our_o lord_n §_o 1._o the_o same_o be_v with_o we_o celebrate_v in_o both_o kind_n §_o 2._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v reject_v by_o our_o church_n not_o run_v to_o the_o other_o extreme_a of_o deny_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n §_o 3._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o comply_v with_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o age_n but_o not_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o who_o require_v their_o people_n to_o communicate_v not_o so_o much_o as_o thrice_o a_o year_n §_o 4._o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n require_v after_o confirmation_n but_o not_o after_o the_o rigid_a examination_n of_o some_o or_o the_o auricular_a confession_n of_o other_o neither_o be_v it_o make_v a_o private_a banquet_n §_o 5._o in_o our_o church_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o eucharist_n without_o communicant_n the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o other_o rubric_n refer_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n §_o 1._o our_o church_n according_a to_o that_o moderation_n in_o which_o she_o excel_v raise_v no_o needless_a strife_n or_o controversy_n about_o word_n or_o name_n perr_n name_n saepe_fw-la a._n eccl._n angl._n professa_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la nullam_fw-la litem_fw-la se_fw-la moturam_fw-la modo_fw-la pristina_fw-la side_n sit_fw-la restituta_fw-la rex_fw-la jac._n ad_fw-la c._n perr_n particular_o relate_v to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n say_v the_o homily_n sacram._n homily_n homily_n of_o com._n pr._n and_o sacram._n may_v in_o general_a acception_n be_v attribute_v to_o any_o thing_n whereby_o a_o holy_a thing_n be_v signify_v thus_o as_o chilingworth_n 24._o chilingworth_n chilingw_n pref._n §._o 24._o note_v we_o use_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n and_o altar_n and_o yet_o believe_v neither_o the_o corporal_a presence_n nor_o any_o proper_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n yea_o so_o exceed_v moderate_a and_o prudent_a be_v the_o church_n that_o in_o the_o 7._o canon_n 1640._o it_o abundant_o caution_n lest_o those_o word_n be_v use_v otherwise_o than_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o improper_a attribution_n 220._o attribution_n in_o liturgiâ_fw-la anglicanâ_fw-la habemus_fw-la quidem_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la nomen_fw-la offerendi_fw-la verbum_fw-la etiam_fw-la hostiae_fw-la mentionem_fw-la sed_fw-la nihil_fw-la magis_fw-la adversatur_fw-la missatico_n sacrificio_fw-la quàm_fw-la tota_fw-la haec_fw-la oratio_fw-la rivet_n gro._n discuss_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 220._o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o just_a and_o careful_a explication_n why_o shall_v our_o church_n for_o the_o use_n of_o those_o word_n be_v traduce_v as_o relish_v of_o popery_n any_o more_o than_o for_o favour_v the_o sabbatarian_n doctrine_n because_o in_o the_o 70._o canon_n in_o english_a the_o word_n sabbath_n day_n be_v use_v for_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o dies_fw-la dominicus_fw-la it_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a canon_n in_o the_o homily_n also_o of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o prayer_n it_o be_v call_v sabbath_n day_n that_o be_v the_o sunday_n the_o holy_a day_n of_o rest_n and_o in_o king_n henr._n 8._o act_n of_o abrogation_n of_o certain_a day_n it_o be_v say_v since_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v ordain_v for_o man_n rest_n and_o in_o qu._n eliz._n injunction_n the_o same_o word_n be_v as_o in_o the_o rest_n use_v in_o a_o general_a accommodation_n to_o the_o improper_a use_n of_o the_o vulgar_a which_o clause_n mention_v be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v before_o this_o word_n among_o some_o other_o have_v be_v set_v apart_o as_o one_o of_o the_o shiboleth_n of_o a_o party_n whereas_o rather_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o which_o insist_o not_o so_o much_o on_o the_o nicety_n of_o the_o word_n as_o on_o the_o integrity_n of_o its_o sense_n §_o 2._o our_o church_n receive_v none_o as_o proper_a sacrament_n general_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o such_o as_o be_v so_o which_o say_v expression_n contain_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o moderation_n notwithstanding_o it_o have_v be_v much_o cavil_v at_o by_o some_o of_o rigid_a principle_n for_o our_o church_n do_v no_o where_n assert_v the_o receive_n so_o much_o as_o the_o true_a sacrament_n to_o be_v always_o to_o every_o one_o particular_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n our_o church_n say_v bishop_n branthal_n militier_n branthal_n to_o m._n militier_n receive_v not_o the_o septenary_n number_n of_o sacrament_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v in_o any_o scripture_n or_o council_n or_o creed_n or_o father_n or_o ancient_a author_n first_o devise_v by_o peter_n lombard_n 1439._o first_o decree_v by_o eugenius_n the_o 4_o 1528._o first_o confirm_v in_o the_o provincial_a council_n of_o senes_fw-la 1547._o and_o after_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v take_v large_o and_o then_o wash_v the_o disciple_n foot_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n than_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o ash_n on_o a_o christian_n head_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n than_o there_o be_v god_n know_v how_o many_o sacrament_n more_o than_o 7._o or_o else_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o visible_a sign_n institute_v by_o christ_n to_o convey_v and_o confirm_v invisible_a grace_n to_o all_o such_o partaker_n thereof_o as_o do_v not_o set_v a_o bar_n against_o themselves_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n between_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o proper_a and_o the_o certain_a sacrament_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n common_a to_o all_o or_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n general_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v but_o two_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n more_o than_o these_o s._n ambrose_n write_v not_o of_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la because_o he_o do_v not_o know_v they_o and_o here_o it_o may_v not_o be_v improper_a to_o add_v those_o memorable_a word_n of_o s._n austin_n 118._o austin_n s._n aug._n ep._n ad_fw-la januar_fw-la 118._o which_o be_v recite_v in_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n 1552._o publish_v by_o king_n edw._n 6._o and_o be_v cite_v also_o in_o our_o homily_n of_o sacrament_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v knit_v together_o a_o company_n of_o new_a people_n that_o be_v christian_n with_o sacrament_n most_v few_o in_o number_n most_o easy_a to_o be_v keep_v most_o excellent_a in_o signification_n as_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n beside_o which_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n our_o church_n appoint_v no_o other_o way_n of_o solemn_a engagement_n to_o christianity_n §_o 3._o the_o holy_a sacrament_n among_o we_o be_v administer_v in_o such_o order_n prescribe_v as_o be_v suitable_a to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o appointment_n our_o church_n most_o strict_o hold_v to_o what_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o add_v nothing_o which_o be_v humane_a to_o the_o sacrament_n themselves_o nevertheless_o the_o prayer_n and_o blessing_n and_o exhortation_n and_o what_o be_v enjoin_v promote_v the_o true_a design_n of_o the_o administration_n in_o which_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n hold_v a_o just_a mean_a between_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n any_o use_n of_o its_o christian_a liberty_n and_o between_o the_o intolerable_a excess_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o so_o very_o moderate_a be_v our_o church_n in_o this_o particular_a that_o the_o lutheran_n church_n can_v compare_v themselves_o with_o she_o for_o moderation_n for_o they_o retain_v exorcism_n and_o other_o ceremony_n in_o use_n with_o their_o sacrament_n beside_o their_o peculiar_a doctrine_n and_o usage_n refer_v to_o the_o holy_a supper_n §_o 4._o our_o church_n do_v not_o make_v the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o bare_a administration_n whether_o the_o mind_n be_v well_o prepare_v or_o no_o i_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o most_o romanist_n general_o mean_v so_o by_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 8._o trent_n council_n
the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v multiply_v without_o communicant_n out_o of_o which_o they_o suck_v no_o small_a advantage_n 5._o advantage_n minuatur_fw-la ingens_fw-la turba_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la missantium_fw-la propter_fw-la saginandum_fw-la aqualiculum_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la wicelii_n meth._n concord_n c._n 5._o whereas_o our_o church_n in_o great_a moderation_n appoint_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v free_o administer_v without_o any_o charge_n for_o their_o ministration_n and_o also_o at_o every_o celebration_n there_o be_v require_v a_o convenient_a number_n of_o communicant_n sick_a communicant_n 2_o rubr._n after_o h._n c._n rubr._n before_o com._n for_o sick_a last_o rubr._n after_o h._n com._n for_o the_o sick_a as_o in_o the_o communion_n for_o the_o sick_a 1603._o sick_a 2_o rubr._n after_o the_o h._n c._n for_o the_o sick_a canon_n 71._o 1603._o there_o be_v always_o to_o be_v three_o or_o two_o at_o the_o least_o except_o in_o case_n of_o contagion_n and_o in_o case_n that_o those_o who_o sincere_o desire_v to_o communicate_v be_v lawful_o hinder_v the_o moderation_n and_o wisdom_n of_o our_o church_n have_v prescribe_v a_o most_o pious_a instruction_n for_o the_o sick_a person_n such_o as_o may_v at_o once_o most_o exceed_o satisfy_v and_o comfort_v chap._n xi_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o other_o rite_n and_o usage_n §_o 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o judgement_n and_o use_n of_o confirmation_n §_o 2._o concern_v matrimony_n allow_v her_o clergy_n to_o marry_v afford_v opportunity_n of_o voluntary_a celibacy_n in_o our_o university_n according_a to_o a_o commendable_a moderation_n undue_a degree_n of_o marriage_n and_o some_o particular_a time_n forbid_v etc._n etc._n §_o 3._o in_o reference_n to_o holy_a order_n 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o consecrate_v minister_n 2._o in_o take_v care_n to_o have_v they_o be_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v both_o before_o and_o after_o ordination_n with_o good_a effect_n 3._o yet_o if_o not_o so_o great_a as_o be_v desire_v why_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v 4._o in_o retain_v such_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n as_o be_v primitive_a 5._o the_o moderate_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v such_o as_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o elsewhere_o 6._o our_o church_n endeavour_v to_o preserve_v all_o due_a regard_n to_o whatever_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n 7._o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n assert_v in_o our_o church_n with_o due_a moderation_n §_o 4._o of_o penance_n 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n between_o those_o who_o sleight_n penance_n and_o those_o who_o explain_v it_o extravagant_o 2._o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v require_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o design_n of_o repentance_n 3._o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n in_o our_o church_n be_v as_o sacred_a as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v 4._o the_o use_n of_o external_n penance_n in_o our_o church_n according_a to_o due_a moderation_n 5._o the_o use_n of_o absolution_n in_o our_o church_n maintain_v according_a to_o a_o just_a temper_n §_o 5._o for_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_n 1._o the_o worthy_a care_n of_o the_o church_n therein_o and_o some_o instance_n of_o its_o moderation_n refer_v thereunto_o 2._o our_o church_n care_n for_o prepare_v those_o who_o be_v of_o her_o communion_n for_o death_n without_o extreme_a unction_n in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o many_o instance_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n refer_v to_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a §_o 1._o our_o church_n in_o its_o judgement_n and_o use_n of_o confirmation_n hold_v a_o just_a moderation_n between_o those_o who_o reject_v the_o use_n of_o it_o and_o other_o who_o make_v it_o a_o proper_a confir_n proper_a conc._n tri._n sess_n 7._o can._n 1._o de_fw-fr confir_n sacrament_n it_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o holy_a and_o useful_a rite_n perpetual_o expedient_a though_o not_o of_o necessity_n to_o man._n to_o v._o instit_fw-la of_o a_o christian_a man._n salvation_n with_o which_o our_o church_n do_v not_o join_v chrism_n or_o unction_n as_o in_o baptism_n also_o we_o use_v not_o oil_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o either_o in_o scripture_n or_o in_o primitive_a antiquity_n for_o such_o purpose_n neither_o be_v the_o baptize_v person_n bring_v 6._o hic_fw-la mos_fw-la fuit_fw-la ut_fw-la christianorum_fw-la puert-coram_a episcopo_fw-la sisterentur_fw-la calvin_n inst_z l._n 4._o c._n 19_o §_o 4._o laudo_fw-la &_o restitutam_fw-la in_o purum_fw-la usum_fw-la velim_fw-la ib._n v._o bez._n in_o hebr._n c._n 6._o to_o confirmation_n till_o every_o such_o a_o one_o be_v of_o competent_a year_n of_o understanding_n solemn_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o obligation_n enter_v into_o in_o baptism_n which_o be_v due_o perform_v the_o bishop_n do_v impose_v his_o hand_n on_o every_o of_o they_o with_o prayer_n and_o blessing_n which_o be_v the_o order_n of_o our_o church_n for_o the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o episcopacy_n according_a to_o primitive_a and_o ancient_a jovin_n ancient_a qui_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la baptizantur_fw-la praeposito_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la offeruntur_fw-la s._n cypr._n ad_fw-la jovin_n practice_n although_o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n that_o its_o presbyter_n be_v take_v into_o some_o society_n with_o the_o bishop_n general_o in_o those_o ministery_n neither_o be_v any_o in_o our_o 1603._o professio_fw-la baptizatorum_fw-la infantium_fw-la per_fw-la susceptores_fw-la facta_fw-la in_fw-la puberibus_fw-la unà_fw-la congregatis_fw-la solemni_fw-la ritis_fw-la renovetur_fw-la wicelii_n meth._n concord_n c._n 4._o canon_n 60._o &_o 61._o 1603._o church_n to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v confirm_v or_o be_v ready_a and_o desirous_a to_o be_v confirm_v so_o wise_o moderate_a be_v our_o church_n to_o accept_v of_o a_o true_a preparation_n and_o sincere_a desire_n of_o confirmation_n when_o in_o some_o case_n it_o can_v be_v have_v either_o through_o the_o lamentable_a neglect_n of_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o 8._o to_o si_fw-mi in_o hoc_fw-la e●iscoporum_fw-la negligentia_fw-la peccatum_fw-la est_fw-la hactenus_fw-la negligentia_fw-la damnetur_fw-la n●n_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la bonum_fw-la est_fw-la wicelii_n meth._n concord_n c._n 8._o perform_v it_o or_o those_o who_o shall_v desire_v it_o be_v perform_v it_o be_v a_o discipline_n of_o the_o helvetian_o to_o forbid_v the_o banne_n of_o marriage_n to_o such_o as_o can_v not_o give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o their_o catechism_n which_o soon_o make_v all_o who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o marriage_n to_o be_v very_o diligent_a in_o learn_v their_o lesson_n by_o heart_n and_o by_o a_o canon_n of_o a_o 1584._o a_o conc._n bituricens_fw-la 1584._o council_n in_o france_n none_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o eucharist_n or_o 11._o or_o nec_fw-la enim_fw-la alia_fw-la adversus_fw-la foediss_fw-la ignorantiam_fw-la via_fw-la restabat_fw-la nisi_fw-la maritalis_fw-la tori_fw-la sit_fw-la be_v in_o subsidium_fw-la vocaretur_fw-la hammondus_fw-la de_fw-la confirm_v c._n 2._o §._o 11._o matrimony_n but_o such_o who_o have_v be_v confirm_v the_o same_o if_o well_o look_v into_o be_v indeed_o a_o canon_n also_o of_o our_o 1571._o our_o a_o book_n of_o certain_a canon_n 1571._o english_a church_n especial_o they_o shall_v warn_v young_a folk_n not_o only_o man_n but_o also_o woman_n that_o it_o be_v provide_v by_o the_o law_n that_o none_o of_o they_o may_v either_o receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n or_o be_v marry_v or_o undertake_v for_o a_o child_n in_o baptism_n except_o they_o before_o have_v learn_v the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o can_v fit_o and_o apt_o answer_v to_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n neither_o be_v this_o rite_n among_o we_o degenerate_v into_o a_o practice_n of_o mere_a gain_n and_o covetousness_n as_o spalatensis_n complain_v of_o the_o church_n of_o 12._o of_o de_fw-fr rep._n eccl._n l._n 5._o c._n 12._o rome_n where_o confirmation_n with_o chrism_n be_v make_v such_o a_o sacrament_n as_o they_o think_v confer_v a_o great_a grace_n than_o the_o true_a sacrament_n of_o 69._o of_o v._o chem._n exam._n de_fw-fr confirm_v p._n 69._o baptism_n but_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v restore_v the_o ancient_a primitive_a rite_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v be_v extrude_v from_o the_o romish_a confirmation_n by_o other_o superstitious_a 3._o superstitious_a libertas_n eccles_n l._n 2._o c._n 4._o §._o 3._o ceremony_n §_o 2._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o what_o relate_v to_o marriage_n chief_o appear_v in_o that_o it_o esteem_v matrimony_n honourable_a in_o aug._n in_o dei_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la nulla_fw-la lex_fw-la humana_fw-la nullum_fw-la votum_fw-la potest_fw-la tollere_fw-la conf._n aug._n all_o and_o particular_o also_o in_o priest_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o make_v vow_n of_o perpetual_a virginity_n
admonition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o her_o ordinal_n most_o particular_o give_v a_o account_n after_o their_o ordination_n also_o of_o the_o exemplary_a behaviour_n of_o the_o clergy_n our_o church_n have_v take_v all_o the_o care_n that_o may_v be_v see_v we_o for_o instance_n that_o excellent_a canon_n no_o ecclesiastical_a person_n shall_v at_o any_o 75._o canon_n 75._o time_n other_o than_o for_o their_o honest_a necessity_n resort_n to_o any_o tavern_n or_o alehouse_n neither_o shall_v they_o board_v or_o lodge_v in_o any_o such_o place_n furthermore_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v themselves_o to_o any_o base_a or_o servile_a labour_n or_o to_o drink_v or_o riot_n spend_v their_o time_n idle_o by_o day_n or_o by_o night_n play_v at_o die_n card_n or_o table_n or_o any_o other_o unlawful_a game_n but_o at_o all_o time_n convenient_a they_o shall_v hear_v or_o read_v somewhat_o of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o shall_v occupy_v themselves_o with_o some_o other_o honest_a study_n or_o exercise_n always_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o honesty_n and_o endeavour_v to_o profit_v the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v always_o in_o mind_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o excel_v all_o other_o in_o purity_n of_o life_n and_o shall_v be_v example_n to_o the_o people_n to_o live_v well_o and_o christianly_o under_o pain_n of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n to_o be_v inflict_v with_o 322._o quomodo_fw-la inquiritur_fw-la in_o excessus_fw-la &_o defectus_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la verbi_fw-la v._o de_fw-la polit._n eccl._n anglic._n c._n 6._o p._n 322._o severity_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o offence_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o suspension_n deprivation_n deposition_n or_o other_o great_a censure_n as_o be_v the_o demerit_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n have_v be_v sundry_a article_n and_o injunction_n and_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n 26._o church_n v._o librum_fw-la 9_o canonum_fw-la v._n articulos_fw-la pro_fw-la clero_fw-la canon_n 33_o 34_o 35._o 1603._o 39_o article_n 26._o very_o express_v at_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n it_o be_v ask_v they_o whether_o they_o will_v be_v diligent_a to_o frame_v and_o fashion_n themselves_o and_o their_o family_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v both_o themselves_o and_o they_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v wholesome_a example_n and_o spectacle_n to_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n last_o all_o promotion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v distribute_v so_o equal_o that_o any_o son_n of_o a_o layman_n in_o the_o kingdom_n otherwise_o fit_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o high_a eminence_n in_o the_o church_n in_o her_o canon_n restraint_n be_v make_v of_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n canon_n proclero_fw-la v._o articulos_fw-la proclero_fw-la 41._o with_o indulgence_n only_o in_o case_n extraordinary_a require_v *_o also_o convenient_a collection_n v._o bishop_n sparrow_n collection_n residence_n and_o hospitality_n and_o every_o one_o discharge_n of_o their_o function_n in_o case_n of_o lawful_a absence_n that_o a_o just_a and_o conscientious_a supply_n be_v provide_v always_o let_v the_o people_n see_v that_o they_o do_v not_o seek_v their_o own_o profit_n promotion_n or_o advantage_n more_o than_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o injunction_n v._o k._n ed._n 6._o injunction_n soul_n they_o have_v under_o their_o cure_n or_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o these_o order_n if_o any_o inquire_v beside_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o church_n that_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n in_o this_o case_n such_o may_v consider_v what_o the_o great_a verulam_n have_v witness_v that_o scarce_o any_o church_n since_o the_o primitive_a time_n have_v yield_v in_o like_a manner_n of_o year_n a_o great_a number_n of_o famous_a writer_n excellent_a preacher_n grave_a governor_n and_o the_o most_o and_o chief_a of_o they_o of_o holy_a and_o good_a life_n and_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o oxford_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o n._n c._n 1603._o reply_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o that_o traduce_v we_o for_o a_o dumb_a idol-ministry_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n more_o learne●_n man_n in_o this_o kingdom_n than_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o europe_n which_o must_v not_o be_v impute_v for_o vanity_n since_o the_o apostle_n when_o his_o ministry_n be_v reproach_v defend_v his_o godly_a boast_n which_o premise_v bishop_n hall_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o speak_v for_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n what_o christian_n church_n under_o heaven_n say_v he_o in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n yield_v so_o many_o glorious_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o many_o able_a and_o prevalent_a adversary_n of_o schism_n and_o antichristianism_n so_o many_o eminent_a author_n of_o learned_a work_n which_o shall_v outbid_v time_n itself_o let_v envy_n grind_v her_o tooth_n and_o eat_v her_o heart_n the_o memory_n of_o these_o worthy_a prelate_n shall_v ever_o be_v sweet_a and_o bless_a 3._o if_o all_o this_o care_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o its_o absolute_a and_o entire_a effect_n which_o when_o it_o have_v not_o be_v much_o lament_v according_a to_o the_o sincere_a desire_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o 4._o nec_fw-la hac_fw-la culpae_fw-la est_fw-la christiani_n nominis_fw-la si_fw-la simulator_n religionis_fw-la in_o vitio_fw-la sit_fw-la s._n hier._n ep._n 4._o that_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o that_o effect_n upon_o all_o christian_n as_o they_o ought_v our_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n must_v be_v acquit_v while_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o thing_n she_o have_v use_v her_o best_a care_n and_o endeavour_v and_o if_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n always_o can_v her_o law_n must_v bear_v she_o out_o ju._n out_o delictum_fw-la personae_fw-la in_o detrimentum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la redundare_fw-la reg_n ju._n wherefore_o very_o reasonable_a be_v the_o injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o for_o default_n which_o people_n find_v in_o ecclesiastical_a person_n they_o be_v not_o to_o detain_v their_o due_n 1559_o §._o 15._o 1559_o to_o requite_v one_o wrong_v with_o another_o but_o to_o call_v for_o reformation_n thereof_o at_o their_o ordinary_n and_o other_o superior_n who_o upon_o complaint_n and_o due_a proof_n thereof_o shall_v reform_v the_o same_o according_o now_o of_o thousand_o who_o be_v apt_a to_o complain_v of_o the_o clergy_n how_o few_o take_v the_o right_a course_n to_o rectify_v any_o thing_n if_o any_o be_v vicious_a among_o we_o we_o protest_v against_o their_o practice_n and_o be_v advocate_n for_o none_o in_o what_o be_v evil_a but_o leave_v they_o to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o before_o proper_a judge_n be_v sure_a it_o will_v be_v a_o happy_a world_n if_o right_a principle_n in_o the_o understanding_n and_o a_o conformable_a practice_n can_v always_o go_v together_o but_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a practice_n who_o doctrine_n they_o can_v confute_v their_o life_n endeavour_v to_o bring_v into_o hatred_n 53._o hatred_n cum_fw-la viderint_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la nostram_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la rectè_fw-la accusari_fw-la malu●run●_n in_o mores_fw-la nostros_fw-la in_o vehere_fw-la apol._n eccl._n angl._n §_o 53._o it_o may_v be_v add_v according_a to_o a_o excellent_a moderation_n be_v also_o the_o age_n appoint_v of_o they_o who_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o holy_a order_n proclero_n order_n v._o preface_n to_o the_o ordinal_n canon_n 33._o artic._n proclero_n §_o 3._o our_o church_n maintain_v and_o preserve_v those_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n 36._o 39_o articl_n 36._o which_o be_v true_o primitive_a without_o the_o additional_a train_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v necessary_a even_o seven_o kind_n of_o order_n suitable_a to_o their_o number_n of_o sacrament_n and_o with_o much_o the_o like_a necessity_n that_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o geneva_n government_n appoint_v their_o lay-elders_a the_o power_n of_o order_n consist_v partly_o in_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o other_o office_n of_o public_a worship_n common_a to_o bishop_n with_o other_o minister_n partly_o in_o ordain_v priest_n and_o deacon_n admit_v they_o to_o particular_a cure_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n proper_a to_o they_o alone_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v either_o internal_a in_o retain_v and_o remit_v sin_n in_o the_o camera_fw-la hoc_fw-la malè_fw-la habet_fw-la quosdam_fw-la immoderatiores_fw-la reddi_fw-la jurisdectionem_fw-la restitui_fw-la politiam_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la ph._n melanct._n ad_fw-la camera_fw-la court_n of_o conscience_n common_a to_o they_o also_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o authority_n though_o with_o some_o difference_n in_o the_o degree_n with_o other_o 34._o other_o of_o episcopacy_n and_o regal_a power_n bishop_n sanderson_n p._n 33_o 34._o minister_n or_o external_n for_o the_o outward_a government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o some_o part_n thereof_o peculiar_a to_o they_o alone_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o these_o
man_n conscience_n traitor_n conscience_n v._o proceed_n against_o the_o traitor_n and_o yet_o suarius_n 1._o suarius_n suarius_n de_fw-fr poen_n disp_n 33._o §._o 1._o determin_n that_o in_o no_o case_n for_o no_o end_n though_o it_o be_v to_o save_v a_o whole_a commonwealth_n from_o a_o great_a evil_n temporal_a or_o spiritual_a may_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o violate_v confession_n ja._n binet_n 140._o binet_n i_o s._n casaub_n ad_fw-la frontod_n p._n 140._o go_v high_o it_o be_v better_a all_o king_n shall_v perish_v than_o even_o once_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n shall_v be_v violate_v the_o catholic_a apologist_n go_v high_a yet_o 426._o pag._n 426._o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n be_v of_o such_o reverence_n among_o we_o that_o we_o can_v lawful_o disclose_v a_o secret_a know_v by_o it_o though_o it_o be_v to_o save_v christianity_n itself_o nay_o the_o apology_n for_o garnet_n 327._o garnet_n eud._n jo._n apol._n pro_fw-la garnetto_n p._n 327._o have_v a_o notable_a fetch_n to_o bring_v in_o all_o the_o gunpowder_n conspirator_n as_o martyr_n for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o catholic_n that_o all_o who_o receive_v the_o matter_n from_o the_o confessor_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o penitent_a be_v bind_v by_o religion_n of_o secrecy_n but_o what_o abuse_n of_o confession_n be_v this_o to_o hold_v those_o martyr_n who_o confess_v a_o wickedness_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o commit_v and_o their_o priest_n absolve_v they_o from_o a_o treason_n they_o be_v then_o swear_v to_o undertake_v §_o 4._o the_o discipline_n of_o our_o church_n do_v by_o no_o mean_n exclude_v the_o use_n of_o external_n penance_n and_o in_o its_o judgement_n be_v more_o right_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o enforce_v both_o inward_a and_o outward_a penance_n our_o church_n have_v a_o special_a office_n of_o commination_n upon_o solemn_a occasion_n to_o be_v use_v and_o for_o some_o scandalous_a sin_n when_o notorious_a solemn_a penance_n be_v by_o a_o special_a canon_n require_v for_o the_o humiliation_n and_o compunction_n of_o the_o sinner_n for_o the_o example_n of_o other_o and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n proclero_fw-la church_n v._o artic_a proclero_fw-la the_o commutation_n of_o which_o for_o very_o good_a reason_n require_v the_o church_n have_v take_v care_n sometime_o to_o moderate_v but_o the_o commutation_n allow_v by_o our_o 1571._o commutationem_fw-la a._n injunctae_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la nec_fw-la cancellarius_fw-la faciet_fw-la nec_fw-la archidiac_n nec_fw-la officialis_fw-la nec_fw-la commissarius_fw-la ea_fw-la potestas_fw-la multis_fw-la gravibus_fw-la de_fw-la causis_fw-la episcopo_fw-la soli_fw-la reservabitur_fw-la v._o libr._n qu._n canonum_fw-la 1571._o church_n be_v sincere_o design_v for_o the_o end_n of_o charity_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o consideration_n of_o piety_n but_o be_v not_o tax_v in_o a_o penitentiary_n table_n as_o it_o be_v to_o invite_v man_n to_o sin_n the_o 328._o de_fw-fr polit._n eccl._n angl._n c._n 6._o p._n 328._o godly_a discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o open_a penance_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o commination_n v._o office_n of_o commination_n notorious_a offender_n the_o church_n of_o england_n wish_v may_v be_v restore_v again_o but_o the_o satisfaction_n that_o god_n require_v of_o we_o say_v the_o homily_n of_o repentance_n be_v that_o we_o cease_v from_o evil_a and_o do_v good_a and_o if_o we_o have_v do_v any_o man_n wrong_v to_o endeavour_v ourselves_o to_o make_v he_o true_a amends_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o our_o power_n follow_v in_o this_o the_o example_n of_o zacheus_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o the_o penance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o there_o be_v call_v satisfaction_n and_o be_v count_v deletory_n of_o sin_n and_o meritorious_a of_o pardon_n our_o church_n do_v account_v no_o otherwise_o than_o superstitious_a §_o 5._o the_o absolution_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v its_o due_a honour_n and_o use_v in_o our_o church_n although_o it_o be_v make_v no_o part_n of_o any_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o that_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n may_v be_v more_o perceive_v observe_v 1._o that_o our_o church_n ascribe_v not_o the_o power_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o any_o but_o to_o god_n only_o 2._o it_o constant_o hold_v that_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n be_v the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n 3._o it_o assert_n what_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o special_a power_n and_o commission_n which_o other_o believer_n have_v not_o authoritative_o to_o declare_v this_o absolution_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o benefit_n and_o consolation_n of_o true_a penitency_n which_o if_o due_o dispense_v can_v but_o have_v a_o real_a effect_n from_o the_o very_a promise_n of_o christ_n s._n jo._n 20._o 23._o esaiam_n vid._n s._n chrys_n hom._n 5._o in_o esaiam_n 4._o this_o penitence_n our_o church_n make_v not_o a_o new_a sacrament_n as_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o mean_n of_o return_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bestow_v in_o baptism_n they_o which_o in_o act_n or_o deed_n sin_n after_o baptism_n say_v our_o homily_n when_o they_o turn_v to_o god_n unfeigned_o they_o be_v likewise_o wash_v by_o this_o sacrifice_n from_o their_o sin_n 199._o poenitentia_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la reditus_fw-la ad_fw-la promissionem_fw-la gratiae_fw-la baptismi_fw-la chemn_v exam_fw-la de_fw-fr paenit_fw-la p._n 199._o the_o rare_a temper_n and_o proportion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n use_v in_o commensurate_v the_o form_n of_o absolution_n to_o the_o degree_n of_o preparation_n and_o necessity_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n after_o a_o general_a confession_n the_o form_n of_o absolution_n be_v in_o general_a declarative_n and_o by_o way_n of_o proposition_n in_o the_o office_n of_o communion_n it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o intercession_n in_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a when_o it_o be_v suppose_v and_o enjoin_v that_o the_o penitent_n shall_v disburden_v himself_o of_o the_o clamorous_a load_n on_o his_o conscience_n the_o church_n prescribe_v a_o medicinal_a form_n by_o way_n of_o delegate_v authority_n therefore_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o down_o it_o be_v the_o excellent_a temper_n of_o the_o church_n so_o to_o prescribe_v her_o form_n of_o absolution_n as_o to_o show_v they_o to_o be_v the_o result_v of_o the_o whole_a priestly_n office_n all_o which_o form_n 23._o v._o bishop_n sparrow_n rationale_n p._n 23._o in_o sense_n and_o virtue_n be_v the_o same_o 5._o for_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a such_o be_v the_o care_n of_o our_o church_n that_o by_o its_o canon_n when_o any_o person_n be_v dangerous_o sick_a 1603._o can._n 67._o 1603._o in_o any_o parish_n the_o minister_n or_o curate_n have_v knowledge_n thereof_o shall_v resort_v unto_o he_o or_o she_o if_o the_o disease_n be_v not_o know_v or_o probable_o suspect_v to_o be_v infectious_a to_o instruct_v and_o comfort_v they_o in_o their_o distress_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o common-prayer-book_n if_o he_o be_v no_o preacher_n or_o if_o he_o be_v a_o preacher_n then_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v most_o needful_a and_o convenient_a and_o so_o in_o the_o rubric_n it_o be_v say_v the_o minister_n may_v use_v that_o or_o the_o like_a exhortation_n from_o both_o which_o passage_n although_o we_o be_v not_o greedy_a of_o liberty_n yet_o for_o good_a reason_n and_o the_o occasional_a necessity_n of_o accommodate_v our_o address_n in_o that_o kind_n to_o the_o particular_a case_n of_o person_n we_o observe_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o comply_v accurate_o with_o all_o the_o necessity_n of_o her_o people_n and_o further_o we_o note_v from_o that_o canon_n that_o although_o in_o prudence_n and_o kindness_n and_o christian_a duty_n the_o minister_n may_v and_o aught_o in_o many_o case_n to_o go_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n to_o visit_v his_o charge_n especial_o yet_o we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o church_n do_v bind_v always_o her_o minister_n thereunto_o till_o he_o be_v certify_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o st._n james_n chap._n 5_o ver_fw-la 14._o be_v any_o sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o call_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n yet_o because_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o concern_v the_o church_n will_v not_o have_v its_o minister_n use_v such_o a_o capricio_n as_o to_o stand_v upon_o their_o nicety_n in_o so_o serious_a and_o momentous_a a_o matter_n nor_o the_o people_n so_o forgetful_a of_o their_o own_o interest_n as_o to_o neglect_v their_o part_n therein_o therefore_o so_o punctual_a be_v our_o church_n and_o moderate_a according_a to_o reason_n the_o canon_n only_o say_v the_o minister_n have_v knowledge_n thereof_o shall_v resort_v etc._n etc._n excellent_a be_v the_o injunction_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o 1547._o and_o
q._n elizabeth_n §_o 17._o 1559._o that_o the_o damnable_a vice_n of_o despair_n may_v clear_o be_v take_v away_o and_o firm_a belief_n and_o steadfast_a hope_n sure_o conceive_v of_o all_o their_o parishioner_n be_v in_o any_o danger_n the_o parson_n vicar_n and_o curate_n shall_v learn_v and_o have_v in_o readiness_n such_o comfortable_a place_n and_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n as_o do_v set_v forth_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o almighty_a god_n towards_o all_o penitent_a and_o believe_a person_n that_o they_o may_v at_o all_o time_n when_o necessity_n require_v prompt_o comfort_v their_o flock_n with_o the_o lively_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o only_a stay_n of_o man_n conscience_n wherefore_o certain_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o special_a study_n of_o every_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o provide_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v ready_a and_o dexterous_a to_o assist_v such_o as_o desire_v a_o spiritual_a guide_n and_o counsellor_n at_o so_o needful_a a_o time_n §_o 2._o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o prepare_v those_o of_o her_o communion_n for_o death_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o primitive_a time_n which_o be_v prayer_n and_o absolution_n and_o the_o holy_a viaticum_fw-la of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o retain_v and_o i_o pray_v 5._o c._n 8._o §._o 5._o say_v spalatensis_n what_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a effect_n can_v extreme_a unction_n have_v on_o any_o faithful_a man_n for_o the_o occasion_n of_o pass_v from_o this_o mortal_a life_n to_o a_o glorious_a immortality_n which_o may_v not_o be_v entire_o obtain_v by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o alm_n and_o prayer_n especial_o the_o public_a prayer_n and_o absolution_n of_o the_o church_n these_o and_o no_o other_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o council_n mention_v as_o have_v the_o common_a and_o abide_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o extreme_a unction_n have_v not_o and_o as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o and_o about_o the_o time_n that_o s._n james_n speak_v of_o anoint_v the_o sick_a with_o oil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o heal_a the_o effect_n of_o which_o be_v their_o recovery_n as_o it_o follow_v and_o the_o lord_n shall_v raise_v he_o up_o different_a from_o which_o also_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n never_o or_o rare_o anel_v any_o with_o exorcesed_a oil_n on_o the_o five_o organ_n of_o their_o sense_n till_o they_o be_v pass_v all_o hope_n of_o recovery_n from_o which_o practice_n the_o people_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v bring_v off_o by_o degree_n for_o in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o the_o rubric_n be_v thus_o if_o the_o sick_a person_n desire_v to_o be_v anoint_v then_o shall_v the_o priest_n anoint_v they_o on_o the_o forehead_n or_o breast_n only_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n say_v as_o with_o this_o visible_a oil_n thy_o body_n outward_o be_v anoint_v so_o god_n grant_v that_o thy_o soul_n etc._n etc._n 182._o etc._n v._o alliance_n of_o d._n office_n p._n 182._o unto_o which_o ceremony_n of_o crism_n in_o baptism_n and_o extreme_a unction_n as_o it_o be_v then_o here_o in_o use_n those_o repeat_v word_n of_o calvin_n may_v appear_v particular_o to_o refer_v and_o not_o general_o to_o other_o constitution_n among_o we_o in_o the_o english_a liturgy_n say_v he_o i_o see_v there_o have_v be_v many_o tolerable_a trifle_n francofur_n trifle_n in_o anglic._n liturgiâ_fw-la qualem_fw-la describitis_fw-la multas_fw-la video_fw-la fuisse_fw-la tolerabiles_fw-la in_o eptias-his_a duobus_fw-la verbis_fw-la experimo_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la eam_fw-la puritatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n ep._n 200._o anglis_fw-la francofur_n which_o two_o word_n as_o conscious_a that_o they_o be_v very_o brigose_a and_o severe_a if_o too_o general_o take_v therefore_o he_o soften_v they_o in_o the_o next_o immediate_a word_n by_o a_o apology_n by_o which_o say_v he_o i_o mean_v there_o have_v not_o be_v that_o purity_n which_o may_v be_v wish_v what_o he_o particular_o mean_v i_o suppose_v be_v express_v in_o another_o epistle_n to_o the_o english_a protector_n there_o be_v other_o thing_n say_v he_o 8●_n he_o sunt_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la non_fw-la proinde_fw-la damnanda_fw-la fortasse_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la ut_fw-la excusari_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la viz._n crisma_n &_o vnctionis_fw-la ceremonia_fw-la prot._n angl._n ep._n 8●_n perhaps_o not_o present_o to_o be_v condemn_v but_o yet_o of_o that_o sort_n as_o can_v be_v excuse_v viz_o crism_n in_o baptism_n and_o the_o ceremony_n of_o unction_n which_o only_a if_o he_o refer_v to_o how_o often_o have_v his_o severe_a follower_n be_v mistake_v §_o 3._o in_o reference_n to_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o it_o concern_v itself_o but_o as_o far_o as_o christian_a religion_n do_v 6._o do_v can._n 48._o 1603._o de_fw-fr donatistis_fw-la qui_fw-fr catholicorum_n corpora_fw-la sepel●ri_fw-la verabant_fw-la v._o optat._n mile●_n l._n 6._o 1._o confirm_v all_o natural_a and_o civil_a law_n herein_o provide_v that_o christian_a scpulture_n be_v decent_a honourable_a and_o religious_a as_o exeq._n quibus_fw-la constat_fw-la quod_fw-la semel_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la non_fw-la susce●erint_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la confessionis_fw-la eccles_n scpultura_fw-la negatur_fw-la rit_fw-fr rom._n de_fw-fr exeq._n become_v a_o church_n in_o which_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n be_v assert_v our_o church_n well_o remember_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n do_v obtain_v by_o no_o mean_n more_o than_o by_o the_o care_n the_o primitive_a christian_n have_v of_o the_o burial_n of_o their_o dead_a wherefore_o julian_n 49._o julian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d juliani_n imp._n ad_fw-la arsaicum_fw-la pontif._n ep._n 49._o who_o be_v a_o great_a bigot_n to_o gentilism_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o his_o gentile_a high_a priest_n recommend_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n among_o they_o by_o which_o the_o christian_a religion_n get_v so_o much_o ground_n which_o be_v by_o the_o gravity_n of_o the_o christian_n deportment_n by_o their_o kindness_n to_o stranger_n and_o by_o their_o care_n of_o burial_n and_o though_o indeed_o the_o ecclesiastical_a solemnity_n by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o liturgy_n be_v forbid_v at_o the_o burial_n of_o such_o as_o die_v unbaptise_v rubric_n unbaptise_v v._o rubric_n or_o excommunicate_v or_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o themselves_o the_o same_o be_v but_o in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o chief_a design_n of_o the_o burial_n office_n viz._n the_o benefit_n of_o the_o live_n 19_o live_n ut_fw-la hoc_fw-la pacto_fw-la à_fw-la peccato_fw-la retrahantur_fw-la grot._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la b._n c._n 19_o that_o all_o may_v avoid_v whatsoever_o may_v deprive_v they_o of_o such_o a_o honourable_a sign_n of_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v die_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o our_o church_n christian_a burial_n be_v not_o such_o a_o dumb_a show_n as_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o a_o shameful_a company_n of_o people_n in_o this_o realm_n who_o have_v excommunicate_v themselves_o while_o they_o live_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o less_o matter_n though_o they_o keep_v by_o themselves_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o our_o burial_n office_n christian_a people_n may_v be_v at_o once_o comfort_v and_o admonish_v and_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a be_v unite_v in_o one_o society_n under_o one_o supreme_a head_n because_o also_o at_o death_n the_o happiness_n of_o the_o best_a be_v but_o incomplete_a therefore_o in_o our_o church_n we_o beseech_v god_n of_o his_o great_a goodness_n short_o to_o accomplish_v the_o number_n of_o his_o elect_n and_o to_o hasten_v his_o kingdom_n that_o we_o with_o all_o those_o etc._n etc._n may_v have_v our_o perfect_a consummation_n and_o bliss_n etc._n etc._n here_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n stop_v and_o leave_v the_o romanist_n in_o their_o extreme_n although_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v often_o lay_v up_o in_o our_o church_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n it_o be_v without_o any_o superstition_n require_v or_o allow_v the_o body_n and_o coffin_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o sprinkle_v with_o holy_a water_n exeq_fw-fr water_n parochus_fw-la antequam_fw-la calaver_n efferatur_fw-la illud_fw-la aspergit_fw-la aq_fw-la ●_o benedictâ_fw-la rit_fw-fr ro._n de_fw-fr exeq_fw-fr as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o evil_a spirit_n from_o interrupt_v the_o worm_n we_o attribute_v no_o effect_n to_o the_o garment_n we_o be_v bury_v in_o which_o those_o friar_n do_v who_o persuade_v people_n to_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v in_o their_o habit_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n there_o be_v not_o among_o we_o any_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a vigil_n trental_n adore_v the_o bone_n of_o saint_n worship_v their_o relic_n which_o
with_o the_o like_a the_o article_n of_o k._n edward_n 6._o call_v blind_a devotion_n there_o be_v not_o consecrate_v and_o reconcile_a church-yard_n with_o so_o many_o ceremony_n and_o opinion_n of_o efficacy_n and_o necessity_n as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1675._o rome_n five_o form_n of_o consecration_n of_o church_n bishop_n sparr_n collect._n 1675._o the_o bell_n which_o sound_v at_o funeral_n among_o we_o be_v not_o appoint_v for_o any_o superstition_n 50._o superstition_n centum_fw-la gravam_fw-la 50._o or_o to_o drive_v away_o spirit_n from_o the_o grave_a and_o because_o by_o death_n all_o be_v make_v equal_a therefore_o all_o have_v the_o same_o office_n for_o burial_n all_o among_o we_o be_v deposit_v in_o the_o same_o general_a place_n of_o the_o earth_n 2._o earth_n redditur_fw-la terrae_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la locatum_fw-la quasi_fw-la operimento_fw-la matris_fw-la obdusitur_fw-la cic._n the_o leg_n l._n 2._o in_o other_o circumstance_n respect_v and_o distinction_n be_v permit_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n and_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n decease_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o it_o also_o leave_v all_o nation_n to_o their_o proper_a usage_n and_o do_v not_o oppose_v any_o civil_a law_n or_o indifferent_a custom_n of_o this_o or_o of_o any_o other_o kingdom_n as_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o god_n himself_o though_o he_o forbid_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n 1._o israel_n leu._n 19_o 28._o deut._n 14._o 1._o to_o cut_v themselves_o or_o make_v any_o baldness_n upon_o themselves_o for_o the_o dead_a or_o print_v any_o mark_n upon_o themselves_o which_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o that_o idolatrous_a nation_n yet_o in_o such_o ancient_a custom_n they_o have_v those_o which_o be_v innocent_a refer_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o burial_n be_v permit_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v they_o from_o the_o egyptian_n and_o other_o heathen_a nation_n whereunto_o even_o also_o the_o burial_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n jesus_n be_v conformable_a of_o which_o it_o be_v record_v 4●_n record_v john_n 19_o 4●_n they_o take_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n and_o wound_v it_o in_o linen_n with_o the_o spice_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v to_o bury_v among_o who_o as_o have_v be_v note_v 4._o note_v bishop_n ●earson_n on_o the_o creed_n note_n on_o expos_n art_n 4._o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o law_n that_o they_o shall_v use_v no_o other_o graveclothe_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v all_o one_o urnam_fw-la one_o tabésne_fw-la cadavera_fw-la solvat_fw-la aut_fw-la rogus_fw-la aut_fw-la refert_fw-la capit_fw-la omne_fw-la tellus_fw-la quae_fw-la genuit_fw-la coelo_fw-la tegitur_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la habit_n urnam_fw-la to_o our_o body_n whether_o they_o be_v deposit_v in_o linen_n or_o in_o woollen_a with_o spice_n or_o without_o in_o the_o earth_n or_o in_o any_o other_o element_n whether_o we_o lie_v in_o s._n innocent_n churchyard_n where_o the_o body_n soon_o consume_v or_o in_o the_o sand_n of_o egypt_n where_o they_o last_v long_o or_o under_o the_o mole_n of_o adrianus_n and_o if_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o seem_v uneasy_a in_o relation_n to_o one_o way_n of_o burial_n more_o than_o another_o it_o convince_v we_o how_o great_a tyrant_n custom_n and_o imagination_n be_v and_o perhaps_o in_o no_o instance_n can_v it_o be_v confirm_v more_o than_o in_o the_o late_a alteration_n refer_v to_o burial_n concern_v which_o st._n augustine_n comment_n may_v be_v of_o use_n 13._o use_n s._n aug._n de_fw-fr doct._n chr._n l._n 3._o v._o de_fw-la civita_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 13._o the_o evangelist_n say_v he_o do_v seem_v to_o i_o not_o in_o vain_a to_o have_v say_v as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v to_o bury_n for_o so_o unless_o i_o be_o deceive_v he_o admonish_v in_o such_o office_n of_o piety_n which_o be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o dead_a the_o custom_n of_o every_o nation_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v wherefore_o our_o church_n of_o england_n always_o leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o have_v its_o reason_n to_o itself_o in_o what_o it_o appoint_v instruct_v her_o son_n also_o how_o little_a soever_o the_o matter_n be_v from_o thence_o to_o receive_v the_o great_a honour_n of_o obedience_n and_o because_o at_o so_o solemn_a a_o providence_n as_o be_v the_o death_n of_o our_o friend_n if_o some_o well-disposed_a person_n find_v their_o mind_n then_o more_o lift_v up_o to_o the_o desire_n of_o heaven_n and_o become_v more_o mortify_v to_o the_o world_n will_v take_v a_o opportunity_n of_o serious_o commemorate_n the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o by_o death_n overcome_v death_n and_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n unto_o all_o believer_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o brief_a peculiar_a appointment_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n at_o funeral_n collection_n funeral_n peculiaria_fw-la quaedam_fw-la in_o funeribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n r._n eliz._n v._o bishop_n sparow_v collection_n appoint_v 1560_o with_o a_o collect_n epistle_n and_o gospel_n which_o bear_v a_o part_n of_o the_o reform_a liturgy_n which_o here_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o as_o a_o proof_n how_o refine_v every_o part_n thereof_o be_v from_o romish_a superstition_n the_o like_a instance_n of_o inoffensive_a moderation_n may_v be_v the_o public_a office_n appoint_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o benefactor_n which_o be_v use_v in_o our_o college_n and_o university_n which_o do_v testify_v what_o worthy_a care_n we_o have_v of_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o deserve_n though_o decease_v and_o also_o do_v show_v how_o much_o purge_v these_o honourable_a office_n be_v from_o superstition_n chap._n xii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o what_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 1._o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n own_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v only_o spiritual_a §_o 2._o all_o other_o power_n which_o ecclesiastical_a person_n receive_v be_v ready_o acknowledge_v entire_o depend_v on_o the_o favour_n of_o our_o king_n §_o 3._o the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n be_v excellent_o accommodate_v in_o our_o constitution_n which_o be_v not_o do_v in_o other_o model_n §_o 4._o the_o pious_a moderation_n of_o our_o king_n be_v preserve_v their_o own_o rightful_a supremacy_n and_o leave_v to_o the_o church_n the_o exercise_n of_o their_o spiritual_a power_n acknowledge_v by_o our_o church_n §_o 5._o the_o just_a right_n of_o king_n shameful_o invade_v by_o other_o sect_n pretend_v divine_a right_n concern_v which_o claim_n the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n observe_v §_o 6._o the_o dutiful_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o assert_v monarchy_n the_o first_o canon_n 1640._o justify_v §_o 7._o all_o interest_n of_o humane_a society_n especial_o of_o subject_n allegiance_n in_o our_o church_n abundant_o secure_v which_o be_v not_o do_v by_o those_o in_o separation_n from_o she_o §_o 8._o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o church_n be_v frame_v with_o great_a mildness_n and_o moderation_n §_o 9_o the_o same_o compare_v with_o the_o mild_a obligation_n which_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n pretend_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n lay_v upon_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n §_o 10._o sundry_a instance_n of_o our_o church_n great_a regard_n to_o equity_n §_o 1._o the_o church_n of_o england_n always_o have_v confess_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n be_v only_o spiritual_a and_o ministerial_a for_o the_o head_n the_o authority_n the_o conversation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o heaven_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o call_v law_n but_o canon_n or_o rule_n by_o which_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n rather_o lead_v than_o compel_v yea_o in_o matter_n of_o canon_n the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n do_v but_o propound_v such_o constitution_n as_o they_o think_v useful_a and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v send_v they_o to_o his_o majesty_n who_o peruse_v and_o approve_v they_o puts_z life_n into_o they_o and_o of_o dead_a proposition_n make_v they_o canon_n so_o be_v they_o the_o king_n canon_n not_o the_o clergy_n 430._o clergy_n bishop_n hall_n remain_n p._n 430._o and_o the_o infliction_n ecclesiastical_a the_o church_n herself_o do_v not_o call_v punishment_n but_o censure_n for_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v for_o vengeance_n spiritual_a for_o discipline_n 11._o discipline_n bishop_n lany_n on_o 1_o thess_n 4._o 11._o the_o temporal_a judge_n except_o he_o be_v supreme_a in_o many_o thing_n can_v pardon_v the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n can_v but_o pardon_v upon_o repentance_n as_o our_o church_n do_v express_v itself_o in_o the_o canon_n if_o the_o offender_n revoke_v that_o his_o wicked_a error_n to_o this_o purpose_n st._n chrysostom_n isaiam_n chrysostom_n st._n chrys_n homil_n 4._o in_o isaiam_n speak_v the_o king_n remit_v the_o guilt_n of_o body_n
the_o late_a history_n of_o the_o irish_a affair_n which_o most_o remarkable_a story_n be_v a_o strange_a proof_n of_o the_o dangerous_a influence_n on_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o be_v also_o a_o great_a instance_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o government_n and_o how_o ineffectual_a the_o same_o be_v on_o such_o §_o 8._o the_o rule_n and_o order_n of_o our_o church_n be_v mild_o and_o moderate_o frame_v our_o church_n be_v ever_o most_o remove_v from_o the_o guilt_n or_o humour_n of_o domineer_a over_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o she_o teach_v and_o enforce_v the_o divine_a command_n and_o use_v her_o liberty_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v leave_v undetermined_a and_o be_v within_o she_o own_o just_a compass_n the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v very_o few_o be_v just_o affirm_v to_o bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o command_n of_o god_n yet_o their_o obligation_n which_o be_v declare_v not_o to_o be_v universal_a only_o to_o her_o son_n and_o that_o but_o so_o long_o as_o she_o judge_v expedient_a be_v intend_v or_o remit_v as_o just_a reason_n of_o the_o case_n require_v no_o council_n evangelical_n be_v any_o where_o make_v into_o law_n in_o our_o church_n or_o set_v up_o as_o a_o fund_z for_o merit_n and_o supererogation_n but_o be_v leave_v free_a for_o our_o further_a exercise_n and_o endeavour_v after_o christian_a perfection_n which_o because_o it_o can_v be_v thorough_o attain_v in_o this_o imperfect_a state_n therefore_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n no_o where_o pretend_v to_o this_o perfection_n either_o of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o grace_n so_o k._n james_n affirm_v to_o the_o cardinal_n he_o never_o shall_v boast_v of_o this_o church_n as_o be_v perfect_o without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n §_o 9_o for_o illustration_n sake_n if_o we_o will_v compare_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o law_n with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o can_v better_o do_v it_o than_o by_o take_v into_o consideration_n a_o chapter_n of_o card._n bellarmine_n legum_n bellarmine_n c._n bellarm_n l._n de_fw-fr pontif._n ro._n cap._n de_fw-fr comparatione_fw-la legum_n wherein_o he_o use_v very_o neat_a sleight_n to_o elevate_v the_o heaviness_n and_o number_n of_o the_o pontifical_a law_n and_o to_o make_v they_o few_o and_o light_a than_o be_v the_o ordinance_n among_o the_o jew_n for_o say_v he_o the_o law_n absolute_o impose_v upon_o all_o christian_n by_o our_o church_n be_v scarce_o find_v any_o more_o than_o four_o viz._n to_o observe_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o fast_n and_o to_o confess_v once_o a_o year_n and_o to_o communicate_v at_o easter_n indeed_o the_o man_n of_o that_o generation_n be_v so_o wise_a that_o until_o any_o be_v a_o through_o proselyte_n there_o be_v all_o show_n of_o moderation_n that_o may_v be_v to_o entice_v they_o into_o their_o communion_n but_o first_o what_o bondage_n be_v there_o ever_o among_o the_o jew_n comparable_a to_o that_o one_o obligation_n among_o the_o romanist_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n infallible_a with_o the_o consequence_n of_o that_o in_o practice_n which_o be_v heavy_a than_o all_o the_o jewish_a observance_n set_v together_o 2_o on_o the_o supposition_n that_o there_o be_v only_o those_o four_o general_a precept_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v consider_v how_o great_a burden_v any_o one_o of_o they_o single_o do_v contain_v 1._o in_o that_o their_o feast_n be_v so_o excessive_a in_o their_o number_n and_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o have_v so_o many_o superstition_n v._n ch._n 9_o the_o same_o 2._o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o their_o fast_n 3._o in_o that_o auricular_a confession_n of_o all_o mortal_a sin_n with_o all_o their_o circumstance_n be_v enjoin_v as_o by_o divine_a right_n v._n ch._n 11._o 4._o the_o slight_a precept_n of_o the_o four_o be_v the_o last_o of_o communicate_v at_o easter_n but_o consider_v therewith_o the_o round_a belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o all_o be_v require_v to_o have_v we_o may_v true_o say_v with_o our_o bishop_n hall_n 30._o hall_n remain_v p._n 30._o the_o pope_n little_a finger_n be_v heavy_a than_o moses_n be_v loin_n but_o perhaps_o one_o reason_n why_o the_o cardinal_n say_v there_o be_v so_o few_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n be_v because_o he_o will_v say_v that_o many_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v divine_a command_n as_o extreme_a unction_n etc._n etc._n the_o rest_n say_v he_o of_o which_o the_o tome_n of_o council_n and_o book_n of_o canon_n law_n be_v so_o full_a be_v not_o law_n but_o admonition_n only_o or_o pious_a institution_n without_o obligation_n to_o fault_n however_o there_o be_v great_a store_n of_o they_o of_o a_o great_a bulk_n but_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o so_o many_o canon_n of_o council_n and_o other_o law_n enforce_v with_o anathema_n shall_v have_v no_o intend_a obligation_n to_o a_o fault_n in_o case_n of_o transgression_n why_o be_v such_o law_n make_v or_o why_o be_v such_o anathemaes_n annex_v or_o say_v he_o they_o be_v conditional_a law_n as_o of_o celibacy_n in_o case_n any_o enter_v into_o sacred_a order_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v burdensome_a because_o the_o law_n leave_v they_o to_o their_o choice_n as_o also_o in_o case_n of_o vow_n how_o many_o and_o how_o strict_a observance_n be_v contain_v under_o such_o conditional_a obligation_n be_v too_o well_o know_v to_o be_v large_o insist_v on_o the_o purification_n the_o choice_n of_o meat_n among_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o all_o of_o they_o comparable_o so_o many_o rite_n and_o order_n and_o law_n as_o the_o pontifical_a oeconomy_n have_v but_o to_o make_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n show_v very_o light_a and_o easy_a indeed_o the_o four_o law_n of_o the_o church_n say_v bellarmin_n be_v rather_o a_o determination_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n than_o any_o new_a law_n for_o by_o the_o divine_a law_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o dedicate_v some_o time_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n sometime_o to_o fast_o to_o confess_v to_o communicate_v true_o indeed_o but_o then_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o scripture_n the_o edification_n of_o christian_a people_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o end_n of_o religious_a action_n themselves_o aught_o to_o give_v measure_n to_o law_n as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v practise_v and_o not_o to_o let_v their_o command_n run_v out_o into_o such_o lavish_a extremity_n where_o god_n have_v leave_v we_o at_o so_o large_a and_o safe_a freedom_n last_o he_o say_v the_o command_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o most_o moderate_a obligation_n for_o in_o their_o fast_n those_o who_o be_v sick_a and_o aged_n be_v accept_v and_o for_o festival_n their_o observation_n also_o be_v dispense_v with_o upon_o a_o just_a cause_n so_o that_o in_o conclusion_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o most_o moderate_a governor_n that_o ever_o be_v for_o there_o it_o be_v the_o easy_a matter_n to_o get_v off_o from_o the_o strict_a precept_n that_o be_v if_o you_o have_v money_n but_o the_o poor_a can_v be_v comfort_v apostol_n comfort_v nota_fw-la diligenter_n quod_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la gratia_fw-la &_o dispensationes_fw-la non_fw-la conceduntur_fw-la pauperibus_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la consolari_fw-la taxa_fw-la cancel_v apostol_n so_o great_a be_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o large_a be_v her_o indulgence_n whether_o for_o commission_n of_o sin_n or_o for_o omission_n of_o duty_n §_o 10._o have_v mention_v the_o mildness_n of_o the_o church_n power_n it_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o further_o show_v her_o moderation_n to_o note_v that_o our_o church_n in_o the_o government_n of_o her_o ecclesiastical_a court_n in_o their_o manner_n of_o process_n sentence_n appeal_n do_v make_v use_n of_o the_o law_n of_o equity_n moderate_v even_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o also_o with_o all_o due_a subordination_n to_o other_o superior_a law_n according_a to_o equity_n our_o church_n desire_v all_o its_o law_n may_v be_v interpret_v responsum_fw-la interpret_v benignius_fw-la leges_fw-la interpretandae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quo_fw-la voluntas_fw-la earum_fw-la conservetur_fw-la capienda_fw-la est_fw-la occasio_fw-la quae_fw-la praebet_fw-la benignius_fw-la responsum_fw-la she_o admit_v of_o a_o mitigation_n of_o a_o rigid_a sentence_n she_o do_v sometime_o dispense_v with_o her_o general_n rule_v upon_o the_o exception_n of_o a_o particular_a case_n just_a reason_n require_v she_o admit_v a_o commutation_n of_o her_o censure_n when_o there_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n she_o be_v ready_a to_o abrogate_v any_o such_o law_n as_o be_v find_v inexpedient_a and_o inconvenient_a the_o reason_n of_o her_o law_n cease_v they_o be_v make_v to_o cease_v also_o and_o to_o take_v cognizance_n of_o their_o desire_n who_o ask_v a_o relaxation_n of_o strict_a or_o rigid_a law_n there_o
be_v a_o court_n of_o faculty_n constitute_v on_o purpose_n to_o grant_v in_o many_o case_n not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 110._o god_n camden_n britan._n p._n 110._o a_o dispensation_n of_o some_o canon_n and_o if_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n among_o the_o disciplinarian_o may_v for_o the_o great_a good_a of_o the_o church_n dispense_v with_o a_o rigid_a law_n why_o 85._o altar_n damasc_n p._n 85._o may_v not_o the_o same_o be_v do_v in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n by_o such_o authority_n as_o the_o king_n and_o the_o law_n have_v constitute_v and_o we_o count_v it_o a_o great_a moderation_n in_o our_o establishment_n that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o a_o right_a of_o appeal_n allow_v in_o case_n of_o unjust_a censure_n and_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o public_a government_n have_v be_v such_o that_o permission_n which_o have_v be_v sometime_o know_v upon_o occasion_n be_v never_o allow_v to_o make_v void_a the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o the_o church_n it_o may_v be_v add_v that_o in_o the_o separation_n and_o division_n of_o cause_n which_o be_v make_v between_o our_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a court_n as_o excellent_a proportion_n and_o measure_n be_v observable_a so_o instead_o of_o all_o be_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a practice_n be_v with_o all_o reserve_n and_o subordination_n to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o our_o church_n use_v no_o other_o voluntary_a jurisdiction_n than_o what_o be_v establish_v or_o confirm_v and_o limit_v by_o the_o statute_n or_o municipal_a law_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o which_o and_o to_o correct_v the_o excess_n and_o defect_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v among_o the_o minister_n or_o people_n and_o to_o promote_v piety_n righteousness_n and_o sobriety_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n there_o be_v among_o we_o frequent_a visitation_n appoint_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o arch-deacon_n chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n refer_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o public_a law_n towards_o offender_n §_o 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o mistake_v which_o be_v concern_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o coercion_n in_o case_n which_o concern_v religion_n §_o 2._o it_o may_v be_v very_o well_o consistent_a with_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o her_o own_o censure_n to_o approve_v and_o sometime_o desire_v such_o coercion_n §_o 3._o the_o use_v thereof_o in_o many_o case_n relate_v to_o religion_n the_o undeniable_a right_n of_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n §_o 4._o some_o of_o the_o chief_a objection_n hereunto_o answer_v §_o 5._o sundry_a proper_a instance_n of_o the_o great_a gentleness_n and_o most_o indulgent_a care_n of_o our_o church_n towards_o all_o its_o member_n §_o 6._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n not_o without_o their_o requisite_a and_o just_a bound_n §_o 7._o the_o recourse_n which_o our_o church_n desire_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o secular_a arm_n be_v not_o but_o upon_o urgent_a and_o good_a occasion_n §_o 8._o our_o government_n defend_v from_o unjust_a clamour_n of_o persecution_n of_o the_o romanist_n on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o separatist_n on_o the_o other_o §_o 9_o the_o king_n of_o england_n since_o the_o reformation_n and_o especial_o his_o present_a majesty_n glorious_a example_n of_o this_o moderation_n the_o effect_n of_o this_o moderation_n yet_o much_o desire_v and_o want_v §_o 1._o as_o the_o nature_n of_o moderation_n have_v be_v explain_v ch._n 1._o the_o most_o proper_a instance_n thereof_o be_v such_o as_o show_v the_o gentleness_n and_o mildness_n of_o the_o church_n with_o reference_n to_o such_o censure_n and_o punishment_n as_o be_v use_v and_o approve_v by_o she_o which_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v because_o the_o most_o general_a but_o groundless_a objection_n against_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n have_v be_v upon_o this_o occasion_n which_o if_o we_o true_o consider_v arise_v either_o from_o a_o mistake_n in_o judgement_n that_o all_o coercion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v unlawful_a or_o else_o from_o a_o impression_n which_o on_o the_o fancy_n and_o affection_n of_o easy_a and_o soft_a disposition_n have_v be_v make_v from_o the_o complaint_n of_o several_a to_o who_o whatever_n look_v like_o penalty_n be_v common_o irksome_a and_o very_a unpleasing_a especial_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o wherefore_o they_o seem_v in_o haste_n to_o fly_v unto_o religion_n as_o their_o sanctuary_n against_o punishment_n as_o if_o god_n religion_n and_o his_o church_n have_v different_a altar_n among_o we_o therefore_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o when_o the_o prejudice_n against_o the_o former_a mistake_n be_v take_v off_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n will_v appear_v to_o have_v the_o same_o interest_n and_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v fair_o acknowledge_v §_o 2._o for_o the_o distinct_a understanding_n what_o be_v right_a in_o this_o case_n we_o may_v first_o consider_v how_o far_o towards_o this_o coercion_n the_o church_n can_v move_v of_o itself_o 1._o we_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n as_o a_o society_n establish_v by_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n have_v ruler_n therein_o appoint_v with_o authority_n and_o power_n to_o effect_v the_o necessary_a end_n of_o government_n which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o power_n of_o discipline_n to_o rebuke_v article_n 33_o and_o censure_n and_o exclude_v from_o such_o a_o society_n those_o who_o will_v not_o observe_v its_o just_a law_n which_o proceed_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o apostolical_a practice_n and_o command_v with_o relation_n to_o offender_n and_o agreeable_a to_o what_o be_v practise_v among_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o synagogue_n the_o common_a reason_n of_o which_o be_v perpetual_o the_o same_o namely_o that_o such_o a_o community_n and_o fellowship_n as_o the_o church_n be_v be_v maintain_v in_o unity_n peace_n and_o purity_n since_o without_o these_o no_o such_o society_n can_v subsist_v and_o that_o such_o offender_n may_v if_o possible_a be_v reduce_v and_o amend_v who_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o such_o censure_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o first_o consent_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o be_v admit_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o privilege_n of_o such_o a_o communion_n but_o in_o that_o general_a contempt_n which_o be_v cast_v on_o sacred_a thing_n through_o the_o grievous_a corruption_n of_o the_o age_n since_o many_o be_v insensible_a of_o their_o duty_n and_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n as_o member_n and_o also_o be_v apt_a to_o despise_v the_o church_n and_o her_o spiritual_a discipline_n therefore_o the_o church_n in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n be_v in_o other_o circumstance_n than_o consider_v alone_o by_o itself_o receive_v thereby_o defence_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o its_o power_n so_o far_o that_o many_o time_n the_o christian_a magistrate_n be_v please_v to_o add_v to_o the_o spiritual_a censure_n of_o the_o church_n if_o need_v be_v such_o outward_a and_o sensible_a punishment_n as_o may_v touch_v the_o body_n or_o good_n or_o temporal_a interest_n of_o such_o delinquent_n in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o church_n have_v reason_n to_o accept_v of_o such_o defence_n and_o to_o approve_v also_o and_o defend_v the_o same_o civil_a animadversion_n on_o offender_n since_o they_o be_v very_o lawful_a and_o useful_a and_o worthy_a a_o christian_a magistrate_n §_o 3._o he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil-doer_n and_o to_o execute_v wrath_n on_o they_o since_o they_o on_o who_o the_o church_n right_o inflict_v her_o censure_n be_v evil-doer_n therefore_o such_o also_o the_o more_o they_o undervalue_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n the_o more_o just_o be_v they_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n punishment_n and_o since_o offence_n which_o affront_v the_o majesty_n of_o heaven_n be_v of_o the_o high_a nature_n the_o more_o religious_a a_o magistrate_n be_v the_o more_o care_n he_o will_v take_v to_o see_v such_o punish_v and_o since_o christian_a magistrate_n owe_v that_o duty_n to_o god_n from_o who_o alone_o they_o receive_v their_o power_n and_o sovereignty_n they_o be_v therefore_o especial_o to_o take_v care_n of_o religion_n and_o common_a reason_n and_o experience_n instruct_v we_o this_o can_v be_v do_v unless_o such_o law_n be_v guard_v with_o sanction_n of_o punishment_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v indeed_o a_o terror_n to_o those_o who_o will_v break_v the_o peace_n and_o order_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o when_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n have_v so_o great_a a_o influence_n on_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o public_a state_n or_o kingdom_n which_o when_o it_o be_v christian_a the_o religion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o its_o law_n this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o no_o other_o power_n than_o what_o
case_n such_o omission_n be_v pursue_v with_o more_o care_n and_o strictness_n because_o they_o destroy_v the_o very_a end_n for_o which_o the_o power_n be_v give_v the_o church_n to_o punish_v which_o be_v the_o preservation_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n §_o 5._o wherefore_o now_o it_o remain_v for_o we_o to_o observe_v the_o excellent_a measure_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n in_o that_o gentleness_n and_o benignity_n which_o be_v show_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o her_o law_n 1._o religion_n be_v not_o where_o allow_v or_o desire_v to_o be_v more_o voluntary_a than_o among_o we_o and_o no_o where_o be_v any_o more_o require_v by_o their_o own_o choice_n and_o free_a use_n of_o their_o own_o understanding_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o religion_n 2._o none_o by_o our_o church_n be_v ever_o compel_v to_o the_o faith_n when_o do_v ever_o our_o church_n encourage_v any_o christian_a king_n to_o send_v his_o arm_n to_o compel_v any_o pagan_n or_o infidel_n to_o the_o faith_n 3._o let_v it_o be_v remember_v none_o in_o our_o church_n be_v punish_v only_o for_o their_o opinion_n even_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v say_v opinion_n may_v accidental_o disturb_v 4._o sect._n 16._o num._n 4._o the_o public_a peace_n through_o the_o overactiveness_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o confidence_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o its_o appendant_a necessity_n and_o therefore_o toleration_n of_o differ_v persuasion_n in_o these_o case_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v upon_o political_a ground_n and_o be_v just_a to_o be_v admit_v or_o deny_v as_o the_o opinion_n or_o toleration_n of_o they_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o public_a and_o necessary_a end_n of_o government_n let_v it_o also_o be_v remember_v that_o our_o church_n and_o law_n do_v allow_v a_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o which_o be_v more_o a_o liberty_n of_o practice_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n judge_v safe_a for_o the_o public_a interest_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o already_o allow_v a_o large_a and_o real_a toleration_n within_o such_o bound_n as_o they_o have_v judge_v the_o public_a peace_n may_v be_v secure_v which_o large_a liberty_n all_o be_v not_o sensible_a of_o who_o enjoy_v they_o because_o they_o compare_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n in_o our_o church_n with_o the_o cut_n of_o those_o rod_n and_o axe_n too_o i_o may_v say_v which_o have_v be_v prepare_v both_o by_o the_o romish_a communion_n and_o by_o other_o disciplinarian_o and_o by_o the_o few_o thing_n which_o our_o church_n have_v determine_v since_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o liberty_n leave_v for_o mutual_a toleration_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o divine_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n consider_v the_o frame_n of_o man_n and_o the_o uncertainty_n difficulty_n and_o imperfection_n of_o humane_a knowledge_n the_o weakness_n and_o variety_n of_o humane_a understanding_n she_o allow_v much_o to_o the_o force_n of_o prejudice_n education_n and_o the_o power_n and_o artifice_v of_o seducer_n our_o church_n make_v a_o great_a reserve_n of_o dispensation_n to_o person_n of_o modest_a humble_a docible_a and_o peaceful_a spirit_n and_o proportion_n its_o censure_n to_o the_o degree_n of_o malice_n and_o the_o unchristian_a temper_n which_o appear_v in_o offender_n and_o chief_o design_n secure_v peace_n and_o the_o true_a end_n of_o government_n and_o the_o common_a interest_n of_o her_o communion_n 4._o all_o christian_a care_n be_v use_v to_o inform_v and_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a and_o those_o who_o be_v in_o error_n with_o all_o meekness_n and_o patience_n 5._o patience_n blandâ_fw-la pielate_fw-la portandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la increpari_fw-la pro_fw-la suâ_fw-la infirmitate_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la prosper_n de_fw-fr vitâ_fw-la contempl._n c._n 5._o counsel_n debate_n persuasion_n concession_n indulgence_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v be_v use_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v our_o church_n and_o leave_v her_o obstinate_a adversary_n the_o more_o inexcusable_a the_o infirm_a and_o 4._o and_o veluti_fw-la pveris_fw-la absinthia_fw-la tetra_fw-la cum_fw-la dare_v conantur_fw-la pri●●_n or_o as_o pocula_fw-la circum_fw-la lucret._n l._n 4._o weak_a our_o church_n receive_v with_o a_o apostolic_a care_n and_o earnest_o provide_v they_o be_v not_o lead_v into_o doubtful_a disputation_n it_o do_v not_o only_o pray_v that_o all_o such_o as_o have_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v may_v be_v lead_v into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n but_o require_v her_o minister_n to_o use_v all_o private_a conference_n and_o mean_n that_o may_v be_v to_o reduce_v the_o dissent_v brother_n which_o method_n at_o large_a be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o 3_o d_o canon_n 1640._o for_o the_o suppress_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n and_o be_v also_o provide_v for_o in_o the_o 66_o canon_n 1603._o it_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n say_v king_n james_n court_n james_n confer_v at_o hampt_a court_n and_o i_o dare_v say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n intent_n present_o and_o out_o of_o hand_n to_o enforce_v these_o thing_n without_o fatherly_a admonition_n conference_n 3._o v._o refor_n leg._n eccl._n de_fw-fr jud_v contr_n har_z c._n 3._o and_o persuasion_n wherefore_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o church_n require_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o her_o authority_n great_a gravity_n temper_n and_o wariness_n there_o be_v no_o earthly_a providence_n so_o likely_a to_o secure_v the_o obedience_n of_o child_n as_o that_o of_o parent_n not_o provoke_v they_o and_o the_o difference_n be_v not_o great_a and_o the_o danger_n equal_a whether_o that_o be_v do_v by_o too_o great_a severity_n of_o punishment_n or_o levity_n of_o command_n the_o one_o abate_v the_o love_n the_o other_o the_o reverence_n due_a to_o the_o parent_n controversy_n parent_n dr._n ham._n of_o resolve_n controversy_n our_o church_n therefore_o maintain_v the_o reverence_n due_a to_o she_o by_o lay_v great_a stress_n on_o the_o weight_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o declare_v the_o keep_n or_o omit_v of_o a_o ceremony_n in_o itself_o consider_v be_v but_o a_o small_a thing_n set_v aside_o wilfulness_n and_o contempt_n cerem_fw-la contempt_n pref._n of_o cerem_fw-la and_o which_o may_v in_o reason_n gain_v love_n to_o our_o church_n her_o punishment_n be_v as_o mild_a as_o her_o command_n be_v reasonable_a 5._o the_o punishment_n for_o any_o error_n yea_o heresy_n itself_o which_o by_o our_o law_n be_v allow_v or_o by_o our_o church_n be_v approve_v be_v so_o moderate_a as_o thereby_o may_v appear_v their_o design_n be_v not_o destruction_n but_o amendment_n and_o edification_n as_o our_o church_n do_v earnest_o commend_v gentleness_n so_o it_o practise_v the_o same_o for_o as_o our_o church_n say_v matrimony_n say_v homily_n of_o the_o state_n of_o matrimony_n honest_a nature_n will_v soon_o be_v retain_v in_o their_o duty_n by_o gentle_a word_n than_o by_o extremity_n and_o severity_n and_o frowardness_n be_v not_o mend_v with_o frowardness_n but_o with_o softness_n wherefore_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n say_v the_o bishop_n be_v not_o bind_v so_o precise_o but_o they_o may_v attemper_v and_o forbear_v the_o execution_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n when_o by_o so_o do_v the_o cure_n of_o the_o offender_n and_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v further_v our_o church_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o those_o father_n of_o the_o church_n who_o when_o the_o donatist_n be_v intolerable_a they_o consent_v to_o some_o lesser_a penalty_n but_o constant_o condemn_v take_v away_o their_o life_n 21._o life_n semper_fw-la tamen_fw-la augustinus_n excipit_fw-la supplicium_fw-la mortis_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la illos_fw-la hoc_fw-la non_fw-la mereri_fw-la putaret_fw-la sed_fw-la tùm_fw-la quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la decere_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la mansuetudinem_fw-la putaret_fw-la c._n bellarm._n de_fw-fr laicis_fw-la tom._n 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 21._o at_o other_o time_n our_o church_n moderate_v her_o censure_n in_o proportion_n to_o the_o offence_n for_o the_o reduce_v the_o transgressor_n use_v a_o medicinal_a censure_n before_o a_o precisive_n a_o less_o to_o prevent_v a_o great_a excommunication_n 115._o excommunication_n canon_n 48._o 88_o 109._o 115._o this_o she_o resort_v to_o as_o the_o last_o remedy_n 315._o remedy_n monitio_fw-la omnes_fw-la ferè_fw-la censuras_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la pracedit_fw-la de_fw-fr polit._n eccl._n anglic_a p._n 315._o and_o so_o also_o that_o the_o church_n have_v her_o bosom_n open_a to_o any_o who_o return_n and_o repent_v of_o their_o wicked_a error_n and_o practice_n and_o upon_o repentance_n our_o church_n be_v more_o ready_a to_o absolve_v than_o otherwise_o to_o bound_v and_o delight_n to_o give_v her_o son_n to_o god_n but_o very_o unwilling_o excommunic_n unwilling_o form_n senten_n excommunic_n deliver_v they_o over_o to_o satan_n 27._o satan_n sic_fw-la episcopi_fw-la affectus_fw-la boni_fw-la est_fw-la postremò_fw-la quod_fw-la sanari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la cum_fw-la dolore_fw-la abscindere_fw-la
s._n ambros_n offic._n l._n 2._o c._n 27._o wherefore_o those_o who_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o church-discipline_n abuse_v the_o most_o excellent_a temper_v of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o her_o law_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n very_o they_o most_o of_o all_o deserve_v the_o church_n rod_n and_o the_o dire_a point_n of_o her_o anathema_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v say_v bishop_n taylor_n 259._o taylor_n ductor_n dub._n l._n 3._o p._n 259._o how_o great_a a_o reproach_n it_o be_v to_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n if_o it_o be_v make_v to_o minister_v to_o covetousness_n and_o to_o the_o need_n of_o proctor_n and_o advocate_n the_o more_o shame_n for_o the_o over-easie_a denouncer_n of_o that_o censure_n that_o inflict_v it_o for_o every_o trivial_a commission_n without_o consideration_n whither_o or_o no_o repent_v of_o or_o that_o use_v this_o sovereign_a recipe_n unadvised_o for_o any_o other_o end_n than_o reform_v of_o the_o profane_a 18._o profane_a doctor_n hammond_n of_o the_o key_n c._n 5._o §._o 18._o where_o this_o discipline_n be_v due_o exercise_v if_o it_o have_v not_o that_o effect_n as_o it_o may_v and_o aught_o much_o may_v be_v impute_v to_o the_o immoderate_a refractoriness_n of_o the_o recusant_n among_o we_o who_o be_v so_o devote_v to_o their_o will_n that_o they_o have_v render_v our_o discipline_n more_o useless_a than_o it_o will_v be_v yet_o sundry_a abuse_n refer_v hereunto_o our_o canon_n have_v endeavour_v to_o redress_v §_o 6._o but_o there_o be_v a_o moderation_n in_o moderation_n itself_o 6._o itself_o solertèr_fw-la cavendum_fw-la ne_fw-la dum_fw-la moderatius_fw-la custoditur_fw-la virtus_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la solvantur_fw-la jura_fw-la regiminis_fw-la s._n greg._n m._n pastor_n cur_n par_fw-fr 2._o c._n 6._o wherefore_o it_o be_v one_o great_a commendation_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o her_o supreme_a governor_n when_o the_o case_n have_v require_v their_o moderation_n have_v be_v necessary_o and_o convenient_o govern_v because_o of_o the_o danger_n thereof_o otherwise_o for_o god_n use_v samuel_n as_o a_o messenger_n against_o eli_n for_o his_o excess_n of_o indulgence_n to_o his_o son_n 1_o sam._n 3._o 13._o and_o yet_o samuel_n himself_o seem_v scarce_o free_a from_o the_o very_a same_o fault_n concern_v his_o son_n 1_o sam._n 8._o 3_o 15._o and_o this_o indulgence_n occasion_v the_o change_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n as_o the_o former_a be_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o priesthood_n 55._o priesthood_n iram_fw-la benignitas_fw-la mitiget_fw-la benignitatem_fw-la zelus_fw-la exacuat_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la alterum_fw-la condiatur_fw-la ex_fw-la altero_fw-la ut_fw-la nec_fw-la immoderata_fw-la ultio_fw-la plasquam_fw-la opert●t_fw-la affligat_fw-la nec_fw-la iterum_fw-la frangat_fw-la rectitudinem_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la remissio_fw-la greg._n m._n l._n 4._o epist_n 55._o moderation_n be_v confess_v a_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o much_o to_o be_v desire_v but_o than_o it_o be_v in_o a_o subject_a capable_a of_o it_o wherein_o there_o be_v extreme_n and_o excess_n to_o be_v moderate_v as_o certain_o there_o be_v in_o all_o our_o passion_n there_o it_o be_v proper_a only_o this_o caution_n 11._o bishop_n lany●n_n ●n_z 1_o thess_n 4._o 11._o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o lenity_n that_o it_o be_v such_o as_o may_v win_v man_n into_o the_o church_n not_o such_o as_o may_v secure_v and_o encourage_v they_o to_o stay_v without_o yet_o lenity_n and_o gentleness_n be_v so_o good_a a_o virtue_n that_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o cast_v water_n upon_o it_o or_o seem_v to_o temper_v it_o but_o for_o man_n of_o moderate_a opinion_n i_o be_o at_o a_o loss_n to_o know_v what_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o moderation_n there_o can_v be_v but_o between_o extreme_n now_o what_o extreme_n be_v there_o of_o opinion_n in_o a_o settle_a church_n unless_o the_o church_n be_v one_o extreme_a and_o the_o schismatic_a another_o and_o then_o the_o man_n of_o moderate_a opinion_n be_v he_o that_o be_v part_n churchman_n and_o part_n schismatic_a possible_o they_o may_v bestow_v that_o good_a word_n moderation_n upon_o such_o as_o care_v little_a to_o observe_v the_o law_n themselves_o or_o to_o require_v it_o of_o other_o but_o if_o the_o law_n itself_o be_v too_o rigorous_a in_o god_n name_n let_v it_o be_v amend_v and_o not_o leave_v to_o the_o arbitrary_a power_n of_o other_o to_o do_v it_o for_o that_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o remedy_n ten_o time_n worse_o than_o the_o disease_n omne_fw-la disease_n bishop_n ward_n nou._n 5._o 1661._o praestat_fw-la vivere_fw-la ubi_fw-la nihil_fw-la licet_fw-la quàm_fw-la ubi_fw-la omne_fw-la there_o be_v no_o cruelty_n so_o great_a as_o that_o of_o laxness_n of_o government_n nor_o any_o tyranny_n in_o the_o world_n like_o the_o rage_n of_o subject_n let_v loose_a and_o the_o little_a finger_n of_o licentiousness_n be_v hard_a than_o the_o loin_n of_o the_o severe_a law_n and_o strict_a government_n §_o 7._o yet_o our_o church_n have_v not_o recourse_n to_o the_o secular_a arm_n but_o upon_o urgent_a and_o good_a occasion_n when_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n can_v have_v all_o the_o effect_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o keep_v man_n in_o order_n for_o their_o own_o good_a and_o the_o common_a peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n the_o supreme_a political_a governor_n have_v right_a to_o restrain_v and_o animadvert_v on_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n that_o the_o contagion_n may_v not_o spread_v as_o do_v a_o cancer_n and_o that_o the_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o influence_n the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o when_o great_a reason_n move_v the_o church_n be_v glad_a when_o the_o civil_a power_n will_v be_v friend_n it_o so_o far_o as_o to_o defend_v and_o protect_v it_o in_o its_o office_n and_o sometime_o to_o render_v the_o same_o effectual_a to_o enforce_v a_o common_a and_o public_a order_n even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n for_o 46._o for_o institu_fw-la of_o a_o christian-man_n p._n 46._o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n never_o have_v any_o authority_n by_o the_o gospel_n to_o punish_v any_o man_n by_o corporal_a punishment_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o move_v of_o necessity_n to_o require_v christian_a prince_n to_o interpose_v their_o authority_n and_o by_o the_o same_o to_o reduce_v the_o inobedient_a to_o the_o good_a order_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 8._o wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o improper_a here_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o wrong_a notion_n which_o the_o romanist_n and_o other_o separatist_n have_v entertain_v not_o only_o of_o moderation_n but_o of_o persecution_n as_o if_o every_o spiritual_a censure_n of_o the_o church_n or_o punishment_n of_o the_o magistrate_n for_o the_o great_a inconformity_n and_o disorder_n and_o breach_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v persecution_n when_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o defend_v the_o faith_n and_o the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o noble_a privilege_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o the_o most_o worthy_a execution_n of_o their_o power_n yet_o herein_o the_o immoderate_a calumny_n of_o our_o adversary_n appear_v more_o grievous_a that_o upon_o any_o execution_n of_o this_o power_n the_o offender_n instead_o of_o accuse_v themselves_o and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o lenity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o preserver_n of_o its_o law_n they_o accuse_v at_o one_o blow_v the_o whole_a frame_n of_o government_n of_o direful_a persecution_n as_o if_o they_o have_v erect_v some_o terrible_a tribunal_n of_o inquisitor_n which_o our_o church_n do_v most_o of_o all_o abhor_v and_o do_v declare_v against_o punish_v even_o heretic_n as_o such_o only_a with_o death_n much_o less_o those_o who_o be_v false_o brand_v with_o that_o name_n which_o be_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o romish_a inquisition_n and_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n have_v no_o other_o punishment_n but_o what_o be_v just_a and_o proper_a to_o convince_v such_o and_o reduce_v they_o and_o secure_v their_o own_o but_o indeed_o if_o heretical_a and_o erroneous_a person_n cause_v a_o schism_n and_o division_n and_o make_v a_o breach_n upon_o the_o church_n peace_n if_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n restrain_v or_o punish_v such_o they_o do_v but_o as_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o christian_a emperor_n have_v do_v as_o when_o st._n austin_n 50._o austin_n insectamur_fw-la vipotestatis_fw-la secularis_fw-la haereticos_fw-la non_fw-la quia_fw-la fidem_fw-la deseruerunt_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la illi_fw-la catholicos_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la necem_fw-la persequuntur_fw-la st._n aug._n ep._n 50._o be_v force_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o imperial_a arm_n for_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n against_o those_o kind_n of_o donatist_n call_v the_o circumcelliones_fw-la 1._o the_o romanist_n set_v up_o this_o cry_n of_o persecution_n and_o the_o other_o separatist_n
different_a judgement_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o divide_a world_n be_v now_o a_o reconciliation_n be_v think_v impossible_a and_o general_o impracticable_a but_o because_o the_o very_a speculation_n of_o peace_n be_v delightful_a we_o make_v in_o the_o idea_n this_o supposition_n §_o 8._o admit_v which_o be_v a_o case_n possible_a some_o few_o family_n of_o well-bred_a and_o better_o dispose_v person_n but_o of_o as_o different_a persuasion_n in_o the_o extreme_n as_o any_o be_v among_o we_o be_v to_o settle_v together_o in_o some_o remote_a island_n and_o have_v a_o singular_a inclination_n to_o compass_v a_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o in_o what_o they_o may_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n the_o mean_n to_o bring_v this_o about_o one_o will_v think_v must_v be_v the_o same_o which_o all_o wise_a person_n will_v take_v to_o convince_v another_o of_o a_o different_a persuasion_n namely_o by_o move_v upon_o such_o principle_n as_o both_o agree_v in_o which_o be_v improve_v to_o the_o utmost_a they_o be_v capable_a of_o must_v be_v between_o they_o the_o common_a foundation_n of_o a_o possibility_n of_o agreement_n suppose_v then_o upon_o this_o score_n a_o romanist_n and_o a_o extreme_a dissenter_n shall_v yet_o agree_v in_o the_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o receive_a creed_n and_o in_o acknowledge_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o their_o original_a or_o admit_v the_o vulgar_a version_n or_o the_o like_a and_o if_o they_o admit_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n so_o much_o the_o better_o upon_o this_o stock_n a_o accommodation_n must_v be_v negotiate_v among_o they_o 1._o neither_o pretend_v to_o be_v dictator_n one_o to_o the_o other_o for_o that_o will_v spoil_v all_o but_o to_o acquiesce_v as_o these_o principle_n and_o their_o best_a reason_n shall_v govern_v they_o to_o a_o fair_a intercourse_n in_o common_a for_o union_n in_o practice_n 2._o no_o unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n must_v be_v enjoin_v on_o either_o hand_n nor_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v very_o necessary_a and_o clear_a as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v agree_v on_o according_a to_o those_o first_o rule_n 3._o both_o must_v sincere_o bear_v with_o one_o another_o in_o what_o they_o appear_v to_o differ_v and_o to_o forbear_v all_o occasion_n of_o give_v mutual_a distaste_n that_o may_v be_v 4._o sufficient_a security_n must_v be_v mutual_o give_v against_o such_o principle_n the_o profess_v and_o pursue_v of_o which_o necessary_o destroy_v all_o civil_a and_o spiritual_a communion_n as_o for_o instance_n that_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o those_o who_o one_o part_n call_v heretic_n or_o that_o right_a of_o dominion_n one_o over_o the_o other_o be_v found_v in_o saint-ship_n etc._n etc._n 5._o for_o accommodation_n in_o peace-sake_n if_o these_o and_o the_o like_a principle_n and_o doctrine_n be_v public_o and_o sufficient_o renounce_v than_o they_o must_v mutual_o take_v care_n that_o the_o evil_a consequence_n of_o either_o shall_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o those_o particular_a person_n who_o do_v detest_v they_o and_o acknowledge_v they_o most_o impious_a this_o be_v the_o proper_a foundation_n for_o communion_n together_o in_o doctrine_n sacrament_n and_o discipline_n the_o consequent_a business_n be_v to_o convince_v such_o as_o will_v admit_v of_o the_o debate_n that_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v receive_v above_o and_o beside_o what_o be_v mutual_o agree_v in_o do_v real_o contradict_v the_o clear_a content_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o be_v not_o of_o safe_a influence_n on_o the_o christian_a religion_n it_o may_v do_v well_o to_o be_v show_v by_o instance_n of_o fact_n and_o the_o light_n of_o concurrent_a tradition_n when_o the_o particular_a innovation_n enter_v in_o by_o what_o occasion_n and_o degree_n and_o the_o evil_a consequence_n of_o they_o all_o which_o will_v more_o effectual_o be_v perform_v if_o it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v that_o most_o of_o this_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o many_o of_o the_o sincere_a among_o themselves_o at_o quiet_a interval_n and_o if_o they_o can_v distinguish_v between_o what_o may_v be_v of_o original_a good_a intent_n or_o have_v at_o least_o a_o plausible_a pretence_n and_o what_o be_v of_o manifest_a corruption_n so_o much_o of_o all_o this_o as_o be_v proper_a and_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o perform_v that_o she_o may_v acquit_v herself_o from_o the_o imputation_n of_o those_o who_o deny_v her_o communion_n let_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n judge_v how_o careful_o and_o how_o peaceable_o she_o have_v do_v her_o part_n but_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v appear_v desirous_a of_o reconciliation_n have_v do_v it_o either_o for_o civility_n of_o conversation_n or_o out_o of_o design_n or_o without_o leave_n of_o their_o superior_n for_o admit_v protestant_n can_v open_v a_o door_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n the_o romanist_n 13._o romanist_n num_fw-la verò_fw-la spem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la ostendunt_fw-la pontificii_fw-la moderationis_fw-la le●ationis_fw-la &_o emendationis_fw-la nihil_fw-la profecto_fw-la minùs_fw-la quin_fw-la execrandum_fw-la anathema_n dicunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n chemn_a ex_fw-la cone_n trid._n sess_n 7._o can._n 13._o set_v a_o bolt_n on_o their_o side_n by_o their_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n however_o they_o place_v it_o whereby_o they_o seem_v to_o think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o correct_v themselves_o of_o such_o error_n as_o most_o grievous_o divide_v the_o church_n therefore_o as_o the_o case_n stand_v the_o learned_a thorndike_n 38._o thorndike_n forbearance_n of_o penalty_n ch._n 8._o p._n 38._o profess_v himself_o free_o to_o be_v without_o any_o manner_n of_o hope_n that_o ever_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n will_v abate_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o rigour_n though_o the_o reformation_n shall_v content_v themselves_o with_o these_o term_n for_o i_o find_v by_o the_o proceed_n of_o former_a time_n that_o it_o be_v their_o maxim_n to_o stand_v to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v once_o do_v and_o to_o mark_v those_o pope_n to_o posterity_n that_o have_v abate_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o rigour_n of_o their_o predecessor_n for_o be_v arrive_v at_o this_o greatness_n by_o this_o rigour_n and_o obstinacy_n in_o all_o pretence_n right_a or_o wrong_n they_o will_v always_o think_v themselves_o oblige_v in_o reason_n of_o state_n not_o to_o yield_v so_o much_o as_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o eucharist_n not_o consider_v all_o this_o while_n that_o this_o rigour_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o division_n the_o remedy_n therefore_o must_v begin_v from_o those_o party_n which_o have_v give_v cause_n of_o the_o breach_n if_o they_o shall_v remit_v of_o their_o undue_a height_n and_o rigour_n and_o be_v content_a with_o those_o moderate_a bound_n which_o god_n have_v set_v they_o both_o for_o doctrine_n and_o government_n and_o yield_v themselves_o but_o capable_a of_o error_n there_o may_v be_v a_o possibility_n of_o union_n and_o peace_n but_o while_o they_o persist_v to_o challenge_v a_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o uncontroulableness_n of_o practice_n they_o do_v wilful_o block_n up_o the_o way_n to_o all_o reconciliation_n and_o concord_n and_o stand_v guilty_a of_o all_o that_o grievous_a schism_n under_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n thus_o long_o and_o miserable_o suffer_v 410._o suffer_v bp._n hall_n remain_v p._n 410._o 147._o 410._o casaubon_n of_o reformation_n p._n 147._o but_o this_o be_v the_o grand_a mystery_n of_o jesuitism_n and_o politic_n popery_n at_o this_o day_n to_o look_v upon_o all_o moderate_a counsel_n as_o pernicious_a and_o destructive_a §_o 9_o the_o design_n of_o peace_n be_v general_o applaud_v by_o all_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v so_o excellent_a a_o undertake_n it_o seem_v a_o great_a pity_n that_o any_o endeavour_n for_o it_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n be_v blast_v with_o suspicion_n misconstruction_n and_o ill_a success_n and_o whereas_o some_o have_v object_v against_o we_o that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o choose_v pacisication_n with_o the_o romish_a rather_o than_o with_o the_o protestant_a dissenter_n we_o answer_v 1._o in_o general_a with_o respect_n to_o both_o that_o true_a christianity_n require_v we_o to_o be_v enemy_n to_o no_o one_o if_o any_o will_v be_v to_o we_o and_o to_o truth_n the_o blame_n must_v lie_v at_o their_o door_n who_o give_v the_o just_a cause_n if_o any_o require_v plain_o sinful_a condition_n indispensable_a to_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o command_n hold_v good_a come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o be_v you_o separate_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o disputation_n reconciliation_n with_o the_o romanist_n have_v upon_o such_o term_n mention_v be_v speak_v of_o be_v because_o they_o be_v they_o who_o have_v lay_v the_o obstruction_n to_o all_o union_n by_o their_o enormous_a corruption_n and_o it_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o remove_v the_o obstruction_n and_o no_o
wonder_n if_o they_o be_v call_v on_o so_o to_o do_v and_o who_o will_v not_o consent_v to_o that_o however_o hopeless_a desire_v if_o they_o will_v lay_v aside_o their_o corruption_n we_o may_v be_v all_o one_o sheepfold_v under_o one_o shephard_n christ_n jesus_n concern_v such_o project_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v be_v make_v long_o since_o by_o some_o of_o the_o most_o moderate_a of_o their_o own_o communion_n and_o some_o other_o learned_a man_n among_o protestant_n of_o which_o cassander_n consultation_n 19_o consultation_n ergo_fw-la istipii_fw-la &_o pacifici_fw-la viri_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la ficti_fw-la &_o simulati_fw-la c._n bellarm._n tom._n 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 19_o with_o grotius_n annotation_n also_o thereon_o be_v most_o common_a and_o famous_a of_o these_o this_o may_v safe_o be_v say_v whether_o and_z to_o what_o degree_n their_o design_n be_v approve_v or_o condemn_v however_o they_o have_v give_v abundant_a proof_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o present_a appear_v the_o more_o irreconcilable_a the_o more_o she_o be_v opposite_a to_o all_o such_o term_n of_o reconciliation_n which_o they_o have_v discourse_v if_o some_o other_o discourse_n have_v be_v at_o any_o time_n make_v by_o any_o of_o our_o communion_n refer_v to_o such_o reconciliation_n with_o some_o romanist_n they_o may_v be_v look_v upon_o only_a as_o such_o supposition_n as_o have_v be_v among_o learned_a man_n general_o discourse_v thereby_o the_o more_o clear_o to_o show_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o the_o romish_a rigour_n but_o whatever_o may_v be_v propose_v as_o a_o mere_a speculation_n the_o vanity_n of_o conclude_v upon_o any_o such_o union_n as_o likely_a may_v appear_v from_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v such_o if_o we_o take_v away_o her_o corruption_n we_o take_v away_o popery_n itself_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v the_o art_n of_o the_o romanist_n even_o in_o such_o seem_a concession_n be_v very_o notorious_a to_o gain_v such_o point_n for_o themselves_o as_o may_v serve_v their_o present_a turn_n and_o may_v make_v afterwarward_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o own_o rigour_n but_o whatsoever_o some_o few_o among_o they_o promise_v what_o shall_v be_v consent_v to_o by_o they_o be_v like_o a_o agreement_n make_v by_o a_o minor_a which_o be_v void_a as_o the_o tutor_n and_o governor_n shall_v please_v for_o we_o know_v not_o only_o what_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o gift_n be_v but_o also_o how_o they_o receive_v and_o return_v concession_n and_o indulgence_n wherefore_o such_o proposal_n from_o any_o of_o our_o communion_n be_v the_o more_o needless_a because_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o reformation_n be_v already_o so_o prudent_a and_o moderate_a as_o to_o some_o who_o have_v suspect_v a_o inclination_n in_o those_o of_o our_o communion_n to_o pacification_n rather_o with_o the_o romanist_n than_o with_o they_o we_o answer_v 1._o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o emulous_a party_n to_o be_v always_o thus_o jealous_a of_o any_o sort_n of_o communication_n with_o their_o adversary_n but_o so_o long_o as_o the_o romanist_n and_o sectary_n have_v have_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o jealousy_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n of_o person_n it_o be_v but_o a_o good_a proof_n of_o the_o real_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n and_o of_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n in_o opposition_n to_o all_o undue_a extreme_n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v interpret_v indifference_n neutrality_n and_o lukewarmness_n but_o impartial_a constancy_n to_o such_o truth_n as_o be_v espouse_v for_o she_o own_o sake_n sometime_o that_o jealousy_n have_v be_v raise_v of_o design_n to_o make_v the_o indiscreet_a sort_n of_o man_n among_o we_o the_o more_o out_o of_o charity_n with_o our_o church_n notwithstanding_o it_o will_v be_v make_v out_o ch._n 17._o §_o 7._o that_o those_o who_o conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o papist_n so_o real_o as_o our_o dissenter_n do_v our_o dissent_v brethren_n often_o forget_v what_o have_v be_v perform_v by_o our_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o romish_a corruption_n and_o error_n and_o also_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o themselves_o they_o forget_v how_o often_o their_o jealousy_n have_v prove_v groundless_a and_o untrue_a and_o it_o will_v do_v well_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v if_o the_o sincere_a among_o they_o will_v set_v down_o in_o some_o place_n by_o itself_o such_o jealousy_n of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o next_o column_n over_o against_o will_v remark_n their_o own_o frequent_a mistake_n such_o forget_v also_o or_o seem_v never_o to_o have_v know_v how_o our_o reformation_n have_v be_v approve_v of_o by_o the_o best_a protestant_n and_o whereas_o they_o seem_v to_o pity_v the_o first_o reformer_n as_o man_n but_o half_a so_o much_o enlighten_v as_o themselves_o who_o look_v upon_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n but_o proportionable_a to_o the_o first_o crepuscular_a and_o duskish_a light_n of_o those_o time_n in_o this_o matter_n they_o speak_v like_o those_o who_o have_v receive_v some_o tradition_n at_o second-hand_n from_o cartwright_n but_o never_o compare_v his_o write_n with_o archbishop_n whitgift_n and_o as_o they_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o consider_v the_o full_a knowledge_n and_o consideration_n which_o our_o reformer_n have_v of_o the_o principle_n and_o abuse_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o diligent_a eye_n they_o have_v also_o to_o such_o other_o reformation_n as_o before_o we_o have_v their_o perfection_n so_o they_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o our_o present_a establishment_n be_v constitute_v with_o respect_n to_o our_o protestant_n of_o the_o great_a aversation_n from_o rome_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o those_o that_o clamour_n most_o of_o we_o for_o pacification_n with_o the_o romanist_n so_o little_o understand_v what_o they_o will_v have_v that_o because_o the_o romanist_n hold_v as_o mr._n perkins_n show_v catholic_a reform_a catholic_a the_o same_o necessary_a head_n of_o religion_n with_o we_o they_o seem_v willing_a and_o content_a we_o shall_v renounce_v sundry_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n that_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o this_o be_v speak_v upon_o good_a ground_n for_o many_o of_o our_o protestant_a dissenter_n as_o they_o be_v call_v do_v as_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v not_o by_o consequence_n only_o but_o in_o direct_a term_n deny_v many_o i_o may_v say_v of_o these_o few_o first_o fundamental_a verity_n of_o common_a christianity_n as_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a thing_n to_o say_v it_o may_v be_v show_v at_o large_a and_o yet_o nevertheless_o what_o kindness_n what_o friendship_n what_o correspondence_n be_v practise_v and_o encourage_v by_o they_o daily_o with_o these_o friend_n who_o be_v less_o suspect_v or_o revile_v than_o the_o true_a and_o firm_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o whereas_o they_o common_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o her_o communion_n be_v unwilling_a to_o allow_v any_o pacification_n with_o or_o concession_n to_o protestant_a dissenter_n as_o may_v be_v reasonable_a for_o public_a concord_n we_o answer_v 1._o they_o be_v utter_o mistake_v in_o say_v so_o for_o beside_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n be_v very_o equal_a and_o just_a we_o may_v presume_v to_o say_v also_o from_o what_o our_o church_n have_v do_v and_o have_v declare_v she_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v and_o from_o the_o disposition_n of_o her_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o our_o church_n will_v glad_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o she_o may_v remit_v of_o what_o she_o judge_v otherwise_o expedient_a for_o the_o end_n of_o peace_n and_o universal_a concord_n if_o she_o can_v be_v assure_v any_o reasonable_a concession_n shall_v have_v that_o effect_n as_o may_v suit_v with_o the_o true_a honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o real_a good_a of_o the_o church_n uniformity_n in_o religious_a and_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n sure_o be_v so_o excellent_a and_o desirable_a a_o gain_n that_o certain_o a_o establishment_n somewhat_o less_o perfect_a with_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v attain_v and_o with_o a_o regular_a and_o effectual_a observation_n of_o good_a law_n be_v more_o expetible_a than_o a_o appointment_n in_o some_o circumstance_n more_o perfect_a without_o the_o same_o uniform_a order_n and_o peace_n therewith_o but_o how_o unequal_a be_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a arbiter_n and_o judge_n of_o union_n who_o not_o only_o be_v great_a author_n of_o our_o dissension_n but_o be_v at_o such_o great_a disagreement_n among_o themselves_o v._n ch._n 18._o §_o 2._o rule_n 10._o and_o be_v so_o imperious_a and_o tyrannical_a in_o their_o disobedience_n as_o some_o of_o they_o be_v chap._n xv._o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n towards_o other_o church_n and_o profession_n
of_o woman_n burial-service_n the_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la to_o come_v under_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n although_o by_o no_o instance_n be_v it_o ever_o make_v to_o appear_v that_o our_o church_n agree_v with_o the_o romanist_n in_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o she_o be_v true_o also_o most_o remove_v from_o fanaticism_n neither_o use_v nor_o encourage_v any_o enthusiastic_a way_n of_o religion_n nor_o allow_v any_o resist_n of_o authority_n under_o any_o religious_a pretence_n whatsoever_o any_o one_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o no_o form_a church_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v more_o true_o protestant_a than_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o any_o which_o all_o thing_n compare_v less_o compromise_v with_o rome_n if_o they_o will_v but_o consider_v in_o our_o article_n liturgy_n canon_n constitution_n practice_n oath_n of_o supremacy_n etc._n etc._n how_o firm_o our_o church_n preserve_v and_o enforce_v the_o reformation_n yea_o the_o canon_n of_o 1640_o do_v excellent_o take_v care_n for_o the_o suppress_n the_o growth_n of_o popery_n canon_n 3._o 6._o and_o also_o of_o socinianism_n canon_n 4._o which_o seed_n of_o socinianism_n have_v be_v scatter_v among_o our_o sectary_n and_o have_v of_o late_o have_v great_a growth_n among_o they_o yet_o nevertheless_o if_o such_o friend_n as_o they_o shall_v slip_v into_o great_a heresy_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o schism_n there_o be_v a_o special_a respect_n due_a to_o they_o rather_o than_o to_o the_o close_a adherent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o because_o they_o run_v not_o into_o the_o madness_n of_o their_o extreme_n and_o be_v not_o outrageous_a too_o in_o that_o madness_n they_o be_v forward_o to_o clamour_n against_o our_o church_n itself_o as_o popish_a and_o turn_v their_o own_o silly_a surmise_n into_o powerful_a calumny_n neither_o do_v those_o who_o reproach_n our_o constitution_n sufficient_o call_v to_o mind_v what_o have_v be_v do_v all_o along_o since_o the_o reformation_n by_o our_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o industry_n of_o our_o bishop_n for_o the_o suppression_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n §_o 2._o but_o as_o a_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o our_o church_n according_a to_o its_o establishment_n do_v in_o no_o sort_n favour_n popery_n they_o must_v be_v very_o disingenuous_a and_o want_v to_o truth_n who_o will_v not_o ready_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o labour_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o our_o conformable_a clergy_n remain_v the_o most_o impregnable_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n for_o who_o i_o pray_v have_v more_o strenuous_o and_o constant_o oppose_v the_o innovation_n and_o immoderate_a extravagancy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o our_o bishop_n and_o the_o learned_a man_n in_o firm_a communion_n with_o our_o church_n even_o since_o queen_n mary_n day_n when_o some_o be_v martyr_n and_o confessor_n and_o who_o write_n but_o they_o who_o have_v hold_v firm_a communion_n with_o our_o church_n remain_v as_o the_o constant_a bulwark_n of_o our_o protestant_a reformation_n wherefore_o the_o romanist_n keen_a displeasure_n 15._o displeasure_n immortal_a odium_fw-la &_o nunquam_fw-la sanabile_fw-la vulnus_fw-la ardet_fw-la adhuc_fw-la combos_fw-la &_o tentyra_n juven_n sat._n 15._o and_o jealousy_n have_v be_v always_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o from_o she_o they_o have_v always_o receive_v as_o forcible_a repulse_n as_o any_o as_o nothing_o do_v more_o stir_v up_o the_o anger_n of_o a_o zealous_a enemy_n than_o the_o equal_a behaviour_n of_o those_o they_o malign_v and_o a_o moderate_a carriage_n do_v sometime_o provoke_v their_o sharp_a hatred_n so_o certain_o nothing_o have_v more_o stir_v up_o the_o jealousy_n of_o the_o romanist_n than_o the_o excellent_a temper_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o our_o church_n constitution_n it_o be_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o poor_a church_n alone_o say_v our_o most_o noble_a lord_n chancellor_n †_o that_o the_o 1678._o march_n 6._o 1678._o state_n have_v be_v so_o much_o disturb_v it_o be_v her_o truth_n and_o peace_n her_o decency_n and_o order_n which_o they_o labour_v to_o undermine_v and_o pursue_v with_o so_o restless_a a_o malice_n and_o since_o they_o do_v so_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o distinguish_v between_o popish_a and_o other_o recusant_n between_o they_o that_o will_v destroy_v the_o whole_a flock_n and_o they_o that_o only_o wander_v from_o it_o as_o for_o those_o of_o our_o separatist_n who_o have_v sometime_o manage_v debate_n with_o the_o romanist_n the_o cunning_a adversary_n common_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o how_o seldom_o do_v we_o see_v a_o romanist_n write_v against_o or_o oppose_v a_o nonconformist_n and_o be_v in_o much_o earnest_n against_o he_o not_o mere_o because_o he_o think_v such_o inconsiderable_a but_o because_o these_o be_v do_v their_o work_n for_o they_o as_o fast_o as_o they_o can_v atrida_fw-la can_v hoc_fw-la ithacu●_n velit_fw-la &_o magno_fw-la mercentur_fw-la atrida_fw-la whereas_o those_o contest_v which_o have_v be_v manage_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o church_n reformation_n have_v give_v the_o romanist_n great_a awe_n and_o have_v always_o exercise_v their_o utmost_a strength_n §_o 3._o wherefore_o those_o of_o the_o separation_n who_o have_v be_v concern_v in_o these_o clamour_n and_o surmise_n of_o our_o church_n favour_v popery_n have_v act_v therein_o as_o appear_v first_o very_o false_o and_o then_o very_o imprudent_o in_o reproach_v so_o excellent_a a_o reformation_n and_o by_o join_v with_o they_o in_o their_o oppose_v our_o church_n they_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o romanist_n who_o they_o pretend_v to_o oppose_v to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o great_a mischief_n to_o the_o true_a protestant_a interest_n which_o cause_v bishop_n morton_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o nonconformist_n to_o tell_v they_o beside_o their_o notorious_a scandal_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n itself_o of_o their_o break_v the_o hedge_n of_o peace_n and_o open_v the_o gap_n for_o the_o wild_a boar_n out_o of_o the_o romish_a forest_n to_o enter_v in_o and_o root_v out_o that_o goodly_a vine_n which_o many_o paul_n industrious_a bishop_n many_o apollo_n faithful_a martyr_n have_v plant_v and_o water_v even_o as_o josephus_n *_o note_n the_o division_n of_o the_o jew_n lay_v jud._n †_o prol._n ad_fw-la bell_n jud._n they_o open_a to_o their_o overthrow_n and_o by_o their_o several_a division_n which_o they_o help_v to_o propagate_v among_o we_o they_o join_v with_o the_o romanist_n in_o endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v and_o destroy_v our_o constitution_n while_o they_o be_v crumble_a into_o faction_n bite_v and_o devour_v one_o another_o a_o vigilant_a adversary_n who_o be_v intent_n upon_o his_o advantage_n and_o opportunity_n may_v when_o he_o spi_v his_o time_n overmaster_v they_o with_o much_o more_o ease_n and_o less_o resistance_n victori_fw-la resistance_n bishop_n sanderson_n preface_n to_o his_o sermon_n ad_fw-la rerum_fw-la momenta_fw-la cliens_fw-la seseque_fw-la daturus_fw-la victori_fw-la and_o the_o more_o unreasonable_a and_o vehement_a they_o be_v in_o their_o clamour_n the_o more_o they_o help_v the_o roman_a engineer_n to_o confound_v and_o overturn_v therefore_o archbishop_n whitgift_n 9_o whitgift_n archbp_a whitgift_n answ_n to_o the_o admon_n p._n 55._o see_v his_o letter_n to_o q._n eliz._n fuller_n hist_o l._n 9_o now_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o say_v i_o be_o persuade_v you_o and_o they_o do_v the_o pope_n great_a good_a service_n and_o he_o will_v not_o miss_v you_o for_o any_o thing_n for_o what_o be_v his_o desire_n but_o to_o have_v this_o church_n of_o england_n which_o he_o have_v curse_v utter_o deface_v and_o discredit_v to_o have_v it_o by_o any_o mean_v overthrow_v if_o not_o by_o foreign_a enemy_n yet_o by_o domestic_a dissension_n and_o what_o apt_a instrument_n can_v he_o have_v for_o that_o purpose_n than_o you_o who_o under_o pretend_a zeal_n overthrow_v what_o other_o have_v build_v under_o colour_n of_o purity_n seek_v to_o bring_v in_o deformity_n under_o clo●e_n of_o equality_n will_v usurp_v as_o great_a tyranny_n and_o lofty_a lordliness_n over_o your_o parish_n as_o ever_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o also_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n 1603._o very_o these_o man_n be_v like_o samson_n be_v fox_n they_o have_v their_o head_n sever_v indeed_o the_o one_o sort_n look_v towards_o the_o papacy_n the_o other_o to_o the_o presbytery_n but_o they_o be_v tie_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n with_o firebrand_n between_o they_o to_o the_o injury_n of_o the_o church_n who_o will_v ever_o have_v think_v say_v bishop_n bancroft_n 1588._o in_o a_o sermon_n at_o st._n paul_n that_o we_o shall_v ever_o have_v live_v
faction_n how_o prone_a be_v they_o and_o sequacious_a 13._o both_o the_o romanist_n and_o sectary_n to_o serve_v their_o turn_n upon_o occasion_n cast_v off_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n wherein_o god_n have_v make_v it_o a_o guide_n therefore_o they_o both_o reproach_n our_o faith_n as_o a_o humane_a probable_a natural_a fallible_a faith_n the_o one_o because_o we_o will_v not_o receive_v oral_a tradition_n and_o the_o like_a uncertainty_n the_o other_o because_o we_o do_v not_o think_v a_o immediate_a extraordinary_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n necessary_a to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n we_o have_v of_o our_o faith_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o afford_v we_o also_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n 14._o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v notorious_a and_o also_o of_o our_o sectary_n and_o so_o many_o they_o be_v not_o here_o to_o be_v number_v if_o superstition_n be_v go_v beyond_o all_o measure_n their_o humour_n be_v to_o keep_v no_o measure_n nor_o order_n but_o to_o heap_v one_o superfluous_a thing_n upon_o another_o and_o then_o they_o think_v god_n be_v please_v because_o they_o be_v many_o of_o they_o account_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o matter_n of_o great_a conscience_n not_o to_o hear_v or_o use_v common_a prayer_n nor_o any_o decent_a rite_n or_o practice_n require_v by_o the_o church_n the_o romanist_n invoke_v saint_n of_o uncertain_a sanctity_n many_o of_o the_o separatist_n call_v those_o of_o their_o own_o party_n the_o only_a saint_n and_o judge_v they_o to_o have_v the_o right_n to_o judge_n the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o rule_v it_o if_o they_o can_v do_v that_o they_o must_v censure_v what_o be_v do_v by_o other_o 15._o the_o romanist_n and_o our_o enthusiast_n be_v very_o much_o the_o same_o in_o their_o pharisaical_a humour_n describe_v at_o large_a and_o reprehend_v by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 23._o 4._o to_o name_v only_o their_o bind_a heavy_a burden_n and_o grievous_a to_o be_v bear_v and_o lay_v they_o on_o man_n shoulder_n as_o the_o romanist_n add_v twelve_o article_n to_o their_o creed_n a_o wondrous_a number_n of_o ceremony_n to_o their_o seven_o sacrament_n not_o to_o mention_v more_o of_o their_o load_n of_o injunction_n their_o festival_n their_o auricular_a confession_n their_o vow_n their_o scourge_n and_o fast_n and_o penance_n which_o they_o lie_v upon_o the_o poor_a when_o the_o imposer_n do_v not_o touch_v they_o with_o one_o of_o their_o finger_n or_o with_o wet_v the_o least_o of_o they_o they_o can_v get_v themselves_o a_o easy_a dispensation_n do_v not_o the_o same_o pharisaical_a spirit_n possess_v many_o who_o make_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o their_o peculiar_a doctrine_n who_o make_v all_o they_o can_v think_v it_o a_o sin_n to_o come_v to_o common-prayer_n to_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v baptise_a according_a to_o order_n of_o the_o church_n to_o pray_v in_o a_o form_n to_o wear_v a_o surplice_n instead_o of_o make_v broad_a their_o philactery_n and_o enlarge_a the_o fringe_n of_o their_o garment_n they_o have_v have_v another_o sort_n of_o superstition_n in_o wear_v their_o hair_n in_o a_o precise_a cut_n somewhat_o like_o the_o tonsure_n of_o the_o romanist_n some_o will_v not_o wear_v a_o ribbon_n other_o not_o starch_n in_o their_o band_n nor_o pull_v off_o their_o hat_n 16._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n necessary_a to_o the_o sacrament_n many_o of_o the_o separation_n make_v the_o spiritual_a grace_n of_o the_o minister_n absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o people_n receive_v benefit_n from_o the_o same_o 17._o both_o the_o romanist_n and_o the_o separatist_n use_v much_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o art_n to_o blast_v their_o adversary_n the_o romanist_n have_v their_o legend_n and_o fable_n just_o so_o our_o separatist_n love_v to_o pick_v up_o story_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o clergy_n and_o to_o patch_v they_o together_o in_o enmity_n to_o our_o church_n with_o these_o they_o keep_v up_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o people_n who_o entertain_v they_o with_o good_a thing_n i_o wish_v such_o will_v remember_v what_o in_o levit._n 19_o 16._o the_o command_n be_v thou_o shall_v not_o go_v up_o and_o down_o a_o tale-bearer_n among_o thy_o people_n which_o the_o ghaldee_n paraphrase_n interpret_v non_fw-la comedes_fw-la placentas_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la tuo_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o go_v up_o and_o down_o among_o the_o people_n pacify_v thy_o appetite_n eat_v of_o their_o delicate_n and_o to_o please_v they_o again_o tell_v tale_n of_o governor_n 3._o governor_n apud_fw-la anglos_n est_fw-la simile_n genus_fw-la hominum_fw-la quoscirculatores_fw-la itali_fw-la vocant_fw-la qui_fw-la irrumpunt_fw-la in_o convivia_fw-la etc._n etc._n erasm_n eccles_n l._n 3._o 18._o most_o of_o our_o 367._o our_o ineptè_fw-la nobis_fw-la tribuis_fw-la catharorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la cùm_fw-la cathari_n suos_fw-la habuerint_fw-la episcopos_fw-la quos_fw-la nos_fw-la omnes_fw-la sublatos_fw-la ex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la optamus_fw-la altar_n damasc_n p._n 367._o separatist_n be_v high_o against_o the_o government_n in_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o covenant_n the_o same_o be_v rank_v with_o superstition_n heresy_n and_o schism_n even_o so_o the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v the_o great_a exalter_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n declare_v common_o against_o bishop_n as_o if_o the_o source_n of_o all_o disorder_n come_v from_o bishop_n contend_v for_o their_o jurisdiction_n which_o say_v they_o make_v so_o many_o small_a pope_n thus_o the_o jesuit_n argue_n 25._o argue_n v._o c._n palavicini_n hist_o conc._n trid._n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o then_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispose_v of_o thing_n belong_v to_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o then_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v oppose_v by_o these_o bishop_n which_o may_v be_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o overthrow_v the_o papacy_n so_o that_o the_o controversy_n who_o have_v the_o jurisdiction_n which_o belong_v to_o bishop_n in_o common_a nay_o who_o have_v such_o jurisdiction_n by_o divine_a right_n be_v drive_v between_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o challenge_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o consistory_n among_o we_o in_o division_n from_o our_o church_n wherefore_o in_o opposition_n to_o bishop_n the_o high_a papalin_n talk_v most_o of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o people_n because_o they_o hold_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v uphold_v by_o their_o veneration_n and_o by_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o jesuit_n for_o many_o year_n of_o late_a the_o popish_a faction_n in_o england_n have_v be_v withhold_v from_o have_v any_o titular_a bishop_n and_o most_o of_o our_o separatist_n will_v be_v glad_a there_o be_v no_o other_o thus_o in_o their_o opposition_n to_o bishop_n they_o agree_v 19_o both_o the_o romanist_n and_o separatist_n extreme_o agree_v in_o their_o principle_n against_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n according_a to_o that_o of_o bishop_n lany_n 11._o lany_n serm._n on_o 1_o thess_n 4._o 11._o the_o papist_n and_o presbyterian_o hunt_v in_o couple_n against_o the_o king_n power_n and_o supremacy_n it_o be_v admirable_a to_o see_v how_o the_o commonwealth_n man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o late_a rebellion_n receive_v their_o principle_n from_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a writer_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o other_o papist_n and_o still_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o most_o of_o the_o republican_n doctrine_n and_o tendency_n of_o they_o to_o the_o like_a practice_n both_o the_o papist_n and_o the_o other_o infringe_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n within_o his_o own_o dominion_n both_o deny_v the_o right_n of_o king_n to_o call_v synod_n and_o ecclesiastical_a convocation_n both_o hold_v that_o king_n may_v be_v put_v out_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n both_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o king_n one_o attribute_n it_o to_o the_o pope_n original_o the_o other_o to_o the_o people_n and_o the_o same_o argument_n which_o the_o pope_n use_v for_o his_o supremacy_n over_o king_n the_o disciplinarian_o use_v for_o establish_v their_o sovereignty_n the_o one_o exempt_v all_o the_o clergy_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n and_o the_o other_o disciplinarian_o in_o scotland_n have_v now_o a_o long_a time_n endeavour_v to_o have_v their_o minister_n exempt_v from_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o civil_a governor_n the_o pretence_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n against_o his_o person_n be_v hatch_v under_o the_o roman_a territory_n and_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o holy_a league_n of_o france_n &c._n france_n chr._n loyalty_n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o v._o fowlis_n of_o pop._n treason_n &c._n &c._n the_o rule_n for_o make_v a_o king_n become_v a_o tyrant_n and_o then_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o king_n that_o it_o may_v
bull_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n they_o will_v cry_v out_o god_n have_v set_v they_o over_o all_o prince_n and_o nation_n to_o pluck_v up_o and_o destroy_v and_o to_o scatter_v to_o plant_v and_o to_o build_v they_o will_v present_o be_v for_o bind_v king_n in_o chain_n and_o our_o noble_n in_o fetter_n of_o iron_n that_o the_o saint_n may_v rule_v and_o that_o the_o mountain_n of_o his_o holiness_n may_v be_v exalt_v 9_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o they_o have_v among_o they_o such_o a_o political_a and_o artificial_a dependence_n on_o their_o principal_a leader_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o their_o body_n be_v cast_v into_o such_o a_o method_n for_o communication_n of_o news_n and_o 4._o and_o tantum_n vaferrimi_fw-la veteratores_fw-la ex_fw-la solâ_fw-la correspondentiâ_fw-la utilitatem_fw-la ad_fw-la unio●em_fw-la tuendam_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la hospin_n de_fw-fr jesuitis_fw-la l._n 4._o intelligence_n of_o their_o affair_n and_o interest_n as_o we_o may_v be_v sure_o be_v contrive_v and_o manage_v and_o direct_v by_o more_o subtle_a wit_n than_o their_o own_o be_v so_o very_a like_o the_o same_o method_n which_o the_o agent_n of_o rome_n use_v themselves_o for_o the_o propagation_n and_o disposition_n of_o their_o matter_n to_o mention_v nothing_o now_o further_o of_o their_o agreement_n with_o the_o severe_a emissary_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o pretence_n to_o all_o mortification_n of_o spirit_n and_o mildness_n in_o their_o pretence_n to_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a gift_n in_o their_o many_o kind_n of_o superstition_n and_o pharisaicalness_n in_o their_o clamour_n also_o of_o persecution_n in_o their_o grievous_a anathema_n and_o curse_n they_o use_v against_o we_o too_o like_o the_o roman_a curse_n by_o bell_n book_n and_o candle_n which_o show_v what_o be_v the_o light_n within_o they_o §_o 9_o it_o may_v be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n to_o show_v some_o of_o those_o step_n and_o degree_n by_o which_o some_o common_o advance_v to_o popery_n who_o separate_v from_o communion_n with_o our_o church_n the_o first_o step_n to_o division_n be_v when_o what_o be_v amiss_o in_o government_n and_o governor_n in_o church_n or_o state_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o full_a advantage_n of_o dissatisfaction_n as_o may_v make_v withal_o the_o most_o lamentable_a outcry_n that_o may_v be_v unto_o which_o there_o shall_v never_o be_v want_v arch_a and_o cunning_a instrument_n who_o by_o all_o plausible_a mean_n shall_v stir_v up_o the_o humour_n and_o passion_n and_o zeal_n of_o the_o people_n under_o such_o pretence_n as_o shall_v most_o inflame_v and_o excite_v they_o then_o in_o the_o next_o place_n be_v make_v such_o immoderate_a pretence_n to_o purity_n and_o profession_n of_o saintship_n as_o when_o poor_a simple_a people_n experience_n upon_o trial_n the_o same_o to_o be_v false_a and_o not_o to_o answer_v their_o expectation_n they_o run_v and_o seek_v from_o one_o sect_n to_o another_o till_o they_o come_v to_o be_v quaker_n and_o so_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o next_o preparation_n to_o popery_n 3._o have_v thus_o cast_v off_o all_o form_n as_o dangerous_a and_o unlawful_a be_v raise_v to_o expect_v everywhere_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o spirit_n extraordinary_a they_o be_v make_v so_o enthusiastical_a it_o be_v hard_a to_o contain_v they_o within_o ordinary_a bound_n till_o they_o arrive_v at_o the_o perfection_n of_o enthusiasm_n the_o light_n within_o 4._o by_o the_o way_n we_o must_v note_v there_o be_v no_o one_o principle_n which_o have_v be_v the_o original_a of_o all_o this_o enthusiasm_n and_o division_n more_o than_o that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v do_v but_o for_o which_o there_o be_v a_o express_a example_n or_o precept_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o perfection_n which_o be_v beside_o the_o end_n of_o they_o do_v tend_v by_o consequence_n to_o take_v away_o the_o true_a perfection_n of_o they_o which_o they_o have_v which_o have_v be_v consider_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n which_o have_v be_v find_v true_a for_o all_o these_o sub-division_n of_o sect_n have_v tend_v in_o the_o conclusion_n to_o cast_v off_o holy_a scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n by_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o principle_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v what_o archbishop_n whitgift_n and_o hooker_n and_o other_o foretell_v if_o puritanism_n shall_v prevail_v it_o will_v soon_o draw_v in_o anabaptism_n from_o they_o we_o have_v have_v quaker_n and_o seekers_n and_o other_o sect_n which_o divide_v we_o and_o be_v ready_a to_o destroy_v we_o and_o to_o bring_v in_o popery_n as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o back_n door_n i_o may_v not_o dissemble_v my_o own_o fear_n say_v bishop_n sanderson_n speech_n sanderson_n pref._n to_o his_o serm_n v._o arch._n bp._n laud'_v die_v speech_n if_o thing_n still_o go_v on_o as_o they_o have_v hitherto_o proceed_v the_o application_n that_o some_o have_v make_v of_o that_o passage_n john_n 11._o 48._o the_o roman_n will_v come_v and_o take_v away_o both_o our_o place_n and_o nation_n will_v prove_v but_o a_o true_a prophecy_n and_o popery_n will_v overrun_v all_o at_o the_o last_o 5._o but_o when_o they_o be_v run_v out_o of_o all_o possibility_n of_o pretend_v any_o scripture_n to_o justify_v their_o action_n they_o then_o warrant_v they_o by_o providence_n and_o such_o a_o necessity_n as_o god_n have_v call_v they_o unto_o by_o extraordinary_a revelation_n and_o impulse_n which_o in_o the_o next_o remove_n come_v to_o be_v light_n within_o they_o 6._o and_o when_o once_o they_o be_v off_o from_o our_o legal_a establishment_n what_o can_v stop_v the_o division_n of_o several_a sect_n from_o end_v in_o confusion_n and_o be_v make_v a_o prey_n of_o by_o design_v man_n who_o business_n be_v when_o the_o public_a be_v on_o fire_n to_o make_v out_o their_o spoil_n and_o who_o think_v we_o be_v most_o cunning_a and_o industrious_a to_o make_v the_o advantage_n by_o all_o this_o but_o they_o who_o great_a business_n and_o industrious_a design_n be_v to_o have_v our_o church_n ruin_v who_o make_v use_v of_o our_o division_n to_o cry_v up_o also_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n the_o infallible_a private_a spirit_n be_v a_o fair_a preparation_n thereunto_o and_o when_o they_o have_v break_v and_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n they_o have_v that_o take_v away_o which_o give_v they_o most_o hindrance_n and_o opposition_n §_o 10._o what_o have_v be_v in_o so_o many_o instance_n prove_v be_v most_o agreeable_a 1._o to_o the_o art_n industry_n and_o design_n of_o the_o romanist_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o passion_n the_o divide_a principle_n and_o interest_n of_o man_n to_o serve_v their_o purpose_n which_o be_v by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o to_o multiply_v proselyte_n and_o enlarge_v their_o party_n wherefore_o the_o thesis_n of_o bishop_n bramhall_n out_o of_o nilus_n be_v worthy_a such_o a_o assertor_n that_o the_o papacy_n as_o it_o be_v challenge_v and_o usurp_v in_o many_o place_n and_o as_o it_o have_v be_v usurp_v in_o our_o native_a country_n be_v either_o the_o procreant_a or_o conservant_n cause_n or_o both_o procreant_a and_o conservant_n of_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a controversy_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n 74._o world_n bp._n br._n gro._n rel._n p._n 74._o 2._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o most_o common_a experience_n since_o the_o reformation_n and_o have_v be_v note_v with_o great_a authority_n and_o remark_n in_o the_o preamble_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 27._o hen._n 8._o 1536._o the_o public_a authority_n of_o the_o kingdom_n take_v notice_n how_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n emissary_n be_v practise_v up_o and_o down_o the_o kingdom_n and_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o pretend_a authority_n in_o the_o homily_n against_o rebellion_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o their_o disguise_a chaplain_n creep_v into_o house_n in_o laymens_n apparel_n and_o raise_v rebellion_n the_o same_o comenius_n relate_v be_v practise_v by_o they_o in_o the_o bohemian_a church_n 36._o church_n admiscebant_fw-la se_fw-la personati_fw-la quidam_fw-la qui_fw-la papa_n causam_fw-la promoturi_fw-la dissentine_n mutuas_fw-la promovebant_fw-la histor_n §._o 36._o our_o english_a history_n tell_v we_o of_o sundry_a seditious_a motion_n soon_o after_o and_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o receive_v their_o impression_n and_o continuance_n from_o the_o influence_n of_o romish_a agent_n as_o 1306._o as_o v._o act_n and_o monument_n p._n 1086._o 1087_o 1306._o in_o the_o lincolnshire_n and_o yorkshire_n and_o devonshire_n commotion_n and_o rebellion_n which_o be_v actuate_v by_o monk_n priest_n and_o papist_n and_o how_o the_o like_a game_n have_v be_v play_v ever_o since_o especial_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o trouble_n in_o england_n scotland_n ireland_n etc._n etc._n mr._n fowlis_n give_v sundry_a proof_n in_o
be_v know_v to_o have_v do_v more_o real_a and_o faithful_a service_n to_o the_o protestant_a cause_n than_o all_o those_o that_o have_v entertain_v and_o promote_v that_o rumour_n have_v be_v able_a to_o do_v i_o will_v at_o present_a only_a mention_n archbishop_n laud_n who_o labour_n against_o popery_n and_o the_o other_o separation_n be_v equal_o vigilant_a of_o who_o the_o letter_n of_o discovery_n of_o the_o treason_n against_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o the_o protestant_a religion_n octob._n 1640._o thus_o speak_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o remain_v on_o the_o king_n part_n a_o knot_n hard_a to_o be_v untie_v for_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n by_o his_o constancy_n interpose_v himself_o as_o a_o hard_a rock_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o lamentable_a hard_a case_n that_o at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n the_o reproach_n and_o sedition_n of_o the_o people_n be_v inflame_v against_o king_n charles_n i._o of_o bless_a memory_n and_o archbishop_n laud_n under_o suspicion_n of_o their_o favour_a popery_n at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n the_o jesuit_n be_v conspire_v the_o kill_n of_o king_n charles_n i._n and_o also_o archbishop_n laud_n and_o the_o convulsion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o introduce_v of_o popery_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o discovery_n to_o sir_n william_n boswell_n at_o the_o hague_n 1640_o and_o send_v over_o by_o he_o to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o archbishop_n even_o thus_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o romanist_n to_o slander_v prince_n also_o for_o be_v papist_n and_o then_o to_o assassinate_v they_o for_o be_v too_o zealous_a protestant_n 1678._o protestant_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n march_v 6._o 1678._o 4._o whereas_o our_o enthusiastical_a friend_n be_v ready_a to_o object_n unto_o we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v either_o popish_a or_o in_o some_o degree_n prepare_v to_o be_v so_o namely_o because_o she_o have_v bishop_n a_o liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n such_o may_v know_v if_o they_o right_o understand_v thing_n even_o what_o they_o object_n that_o these_o thing_n do_v most_o of_o all_o oppose_v popery_n and_o help_v to_o secure_v we_o from_o it_o for_o 1._o episcopacy_n assert_v in_o our_o church_n be_v the_o great_a opposition_n to_o popery_n that_o be_v for_o the_o very_a formality_n of_o popery_n be_v the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o church_n which_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o where_o so_o much_o contradict_v as_o by_o our_o episcopacy_n to_o say_v nothing_o what_o our_o bishop_n undeniable_o and_o unanswerable_o have_v perform_v against_o popery_n it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v what_o rejoice_v that_o vote_n for_o pull_v down_o episcopacy_n bring_v to_o the_o romish_a party_n how_o in_o rome_n itself_o they_o sing_v their_o io_n paean_n upon_o the_o tiding_n thereof_o and_o say_v triumphant_o the_o day_n be_v we_o 17._o we_o bp._n san_n derson_n preface_n §._o 17._o 2._o a_o reform_a liturgy_n as_o we_o be_v separate_v from_o all_o popish_a soil_n and_o corruption_n must_v needs_o be_v itself_o the_o great_a security_n from_o popery_n since_o the_o want_n of_o it_o tend_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o worst_a part_n of_o popery_n which_o be_v enthusiasm_n and_o fanatical_a pretence_n to_o revelation_n and_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n as_o have_v be_v abundant_o experience_v 3._o our_o ceremony_n reform_v from_o all_o popish_a reason_n and_o end_n of_o their_o institution_n be_v useful_a to_o defend_v christianity_n from_o superstition_n use_v people_n to_o apprehend_v that_o christian_a religion_n consist_v neither_o in_o their_o necessary_a use_n nor_o in_o their_o be_v necessary_o refuse_v either_o of_o which_o be_v a_o equal_a infringe_n of_o christian_a liberty_n much_o more_o may_v be_v add_v in_o defence_n of_o what_o be_v appoint_v in_o our_o church_n as_o the_o mark_n and_o bound_n of_o a_o moderate_a reformation_n and_o do_v afford_v a_o better_a apology_n and_o defence_n against_o the_o romanist_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o general_n church_n than_o they_o can_v have_v who_o fix_v upon_o false_a principle_n and_o therefore_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v turn_v unto_o the_o opposite_a extreme_a whereas_o the_o true_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n give_v her_o establishment_n against_o each_o opposite_a error_n yea_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o church_n of_o england_n thus_o retain_v episcopal_a government_n and_o a_o well-reformed_n liturgy_n and_o while_o it_o observe_v christian_a festival_n and_o a_o moderate_a outward_a decency_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o do_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n have_v a_o fair_a plea_n and_o foundation_n of_o argument_n to_o invite_v and_o persuade_v any_o from_o romish_a corruption_n than_o a_o dissenter_n who_o will_v tell_v such_o a_o one_o that_o all_o that_o be_v popery_n which_o account_n of_o thing_n may_v present_o beat_v he_o back_o and_o make_v he_o conclude_v that_o protestant_n call_v that_o popery_n which_o in_o the_o pure_a and_o most_o primitive_a time_n be_v practise_v in_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n whereas_o how_o easy_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o for_o a_o popish_a priest_n to_o turn_v himself_o into_o a_o gift_a brother_n and_o what_o opinion_n be_v there_o of_o the_o romanist_n which_o may_v not_o come_v forth_o as_o a_o new_a light_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o ill_a character_n of_o a_o schismatic_n he_o be_v a_o papist_n turn_v wrong_a side_n outward_a §_o 12._o wherefore_o a_o easy_a prudence_n which_o be_v a_o perpetual_a kind_n of_o divination_n optimum_fw-la divination_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proverbialis_fw-la senarius_fw-la qui_fw-la sic_fw-la apud_fw-la ciceronem_fw-la redditur_fw-la benè_fw-la qui_fw-la conjici●_n hunc_fw-la vatem_fw-la perhibeto_fw-la optimum_fw-la may_v ready_o foresee_v how_o soon_o if_o occasion_n present_a those_o party_n so_o seem_o opposite_a will_n close_o even_o more_o certain_o than_o they_o themselves_o be_v aware_a of_o for_o man_n of_o wrong_a principle_n know_v not_o where_o to_o find_v themselves_o after_o a_o while_n especial_o in_o changeable_a time_n because_o they_o know_v not_o where_o their_o principle_n will_v lead_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o such_o as_o hold_v a_o steadfast_a communion_n with_o our_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o most_o firm_a protestant_n of_o any_o because_o they_o follow_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o for_o truth_n be_v ever_o find_v among_o the_o modest_a who_o never_o affect_v utmost_a extreme_n which_o the_o vulgar_a of_o which_o our_o dissenter_n consist_v so_o passionate_o and_o hasty_o run_v into_o wherefore_o among_o the_o consideration_n touch_v the_o true_a way_n to_o suppress_v popery_n in_o this_o kingdom*_n it_o be_v well_o lay_v down_o the_o best_a way_n 132._o p._n 132._o for_o the_o suppress_n of_o popery_n in_o this_o kingdom_n be_v to_o get_v our_o church_n to_o be_v better_o understand_v and_o indeed_o if_o all_o who_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n of_o what_o denomination_n soever_o understand_v their_o own_o interest_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v for_o uphold_v our_o church_n of_o england_n for_o if_o it_o be_v overthrow_v it_o must_v either_o be_v by_o division_n and_o certain_o the_o watchful_a adversary_n of_o rome_n will_v chief_o make_v their_o game_n by_o they_o who_o business_n be_v to_o promote_v they_o if_o our_o division_n prevail_v the_o romanist_n will_v prevail_v also_o 37._o also_o thorndike_n forb_n of_o pen._n p._n 37._o or_o 2_o by_o toleration_n by_o which_o the_o same_o romanist_n will_v obtain_v but_o a_o opportunity_n open_o and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o authority_n to_o divide_v and_o work_v their_o will_n which_o without_o a_o toleration_n they_o only_o dare_v attempt_v secret_o or_o 3_o by_o set_v one_o of_o the_o dissent_v party_n uppermost_a but_o they_o all_o have_v give_v such_o proof_n of_o their_o rigour_n already_o that_o all_o other_o party_n will_v think_v themselves_o equal_o grieve_v then_o and_o the_o cry_n for_o toleration_n will_v continue_v to_o be_v as_o loud_o and_o they_o can_v never_o expect_v from_o any_o constitution_n more_o moderation_n than_o what_o our_o present_a establishment_n afford_v therefore_o all_o that_o love_n moderation_n and_o be_v afraid_a of_o popery_n aught_o to_o be_v solicitous_a for_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v now_o settle_a and_o now_o i_o have_v say_v thus_o much_o and_o more_o may_v be_v say_v on_o this_o head_n if_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o convince_v any_o who_o be_v sincere_o dispassionate_a i_o may_v appeal_v to_o all_o the_o world_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v with_o no_o design_n to_o reproach_v any_o one_o person_n or_o incense_v any_o one_o spirit_n but_o in_o the_o real_a spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o most_o affectionate_a regard_n to_o such_o who_o be_v wrought_v upon_o to_o be_v
of_o another_o mind_n most_o hearty_o wish_v and_o pray_v that_o all_o who_o be_v sincere_a in_o this_o nation_n will_v at_o length_n be_v awaken_v to_o see_v from_o whence_o our_o division_n general_o proceed_v who_o they_o be_v who_o have_v nourish_v and_o cherish_v and_o increase_v our_o flame_n and_o cast_v their_o wildfire_n among_o we_o by_o who_o our_o dissenter_n have_v be_v act_v and_o manage_v and_o chief_o make_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v that_o thus_o far_o may_v suffice_v they_o to_o have_v be_v gull_v to_o other_o purpose_n than_o they_o themselves_o have_v know_v that_o those_o who_o be_v honest-hearted_a may_v be_v true_o ashamed_a and_o convince_v and_o see_v their_o error_n and_o may_v repent_v and_o return_v into_o reconciliation_n to_o a_o excellent_a church_n who_o they_o have_v forsake_v and_o endeavour_v with_o common_a enemy_n to_o destroy_v oh_o that_o at_o length_n they_o may_v see_v their_o folly_n and_o their_o imprudence_n &_o may_v make_v some_o amends_o by_o continue_v hereafter_o more_o steadfast_a to_o our_o communion_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o no_o less_o than_o the_o christian_a religion_n unto_o which_o have_v be_v give_v so_o great_a a_o scandal_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o excellent_a reformation_n which_o because_o of_o its_o moderation_n and_o excellent_a temper_n be_v real_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o god_n grant_v it_o may_v long_o long_o so_o continue_v chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n as_o it_o may_v influence_n christian_n practice_n and_o especial_o our_o union_n §_o 1._o some_o proper_a inference_n from_o what_o have_v be_v insist_v on_o at_o large_a §_o 2._o sundry_a general_n rule_v agreeable_a to_o reason_n and_o christianity_n by_o which_o the_o moderation_n of_o private_a person_n may_v be_v measure_v and_o direct_v particular_o of_o our_o dissent_v brethren_n §_o 3._o some_o proper_a mean_n to_o reduce_v dissenter_n into_o union_n with_o the_o church_n with_o all_o moderation_n propose_v §_o 4._o the_o hearty_a profession_n of_o the_o moderate_a and_o sincere_a purpose_n of_o the_o writer_n §_o 5._o one_o or_o two_o caveat_n enter_v to_o prevent_v mistake_n and_o for_o the_o caution_n of_o such_o as_o will_v attempt_v to_o disprove_v the_o main_a proposition_n here_o design_v to_o be_v evince_v §_o 6._o some_o good_a wish_n to_o the_o adversary_n of_o our_o church_n on_o both_o side_n such_o as_o be_v fit_a to_o conclude_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n §_o 1._o as_o from_o the_o very_o be_v of_o moderation_n and_o equity_n we_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o nature_n of_o absolute_a good_a and_o evil_a just_a and_o unjust_a do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o arbitrary_a power_n of_o any_o but_o be_v found_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n and_o circumstance_n or_o else_o the_o assertion_n of_o equity_n will_v be_v very_o ridiculous_a so_o we_o be_v sure_a from_o what_o have_v be_v large_o declare_v especial_o by_o compare_v other_o extreme_n that_o our_o church_n of_o england_n be_v far_o from_o design_v to_o use_v or_o encourage_v any_o arbitrary_a or_o rigorous_a way_n of_o administration_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o natural_a justice_n or_o christianity_n 2._o as_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o moderation_n it_o have_v appear_v that_o benevolence_n be_v the_o true_a fountain_n of_o equity_n and_o answer_v the_o most_o general_a law_n of_o nature_n give_v the_o best_a end_n and_o measure_n to_o all_o action_n especial_o which_o have_v any_o influence_n on_o the_o public_a which_o cause_v law_n themselves_o to_o bend_v by_o all_o gentleness_n and_o benignity_n to_o the_o general_a design_n of_o all_o public_a and_o private_a endeavour_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o peace_n and_o goodwill_n to_o man_n so_o we_o hope_v from_o the_o foregoing_a instance_n it_o appear_v also_o that_o a_o benevolous_a inclination_n be_v implant_v into_o the_o very_a frame_n and_o temper_n of_o our_o church_n constitution_n and_o that_o from_o such_o a_o principle_n it_o pursue_v the_o excellent_a end_n mention_v not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o natural_a justice_n but_o the_o most_o fair_a and_o equal_a measure_n of_o gentleness_n also_o and_o benignity_n wherefore_o it_o concern_v we_o all_o who_o live_v where_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n be_v frame_v and_o interpret_v according_a to_o this_o equity_n to_o acknowledge_v so_o great_a a_o blessing_n the_o same_o consideration_n aggravate_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o those_o who_o pursue_v their_o own_o prejudices_fw-la contrary_a to_o what_o be_v appoint_v even_o so_o equitable_o and_o moderate_o and_o it_o be_v hearty_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o opposer_n of_o our_o church_n can_v give_v any_o such_o testimony_n of_o their_o moderation_n as_o our_o church_n have_v do_v let_v any_o if_o they_o can_v romanist_n or_o separatist_n of_o any_o particular_a denomination_n whatsoever_o as_o they_o be_v general_o know_v among_o we_o show_v as_o much_o proof_n and_o instance_n of_o their_o moderation_n as_o i_o have_v do_v of_o our_o church_n §_o 2._o but_o as_o in_o our_o first_o chapter_n we_o lay_v down_o some_o general_a rule_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o natural_a justice_n and_o goodness_n and_o also_o unto_o christianity_n by_o which_o we_o be_v direct_v to_o judge_n the_o more_o true_o of_o the_o moderation_n 1._o moderation_n nihil_fw-la est_fw-la tam_fw-la praeclarum_fw-la aut_fw-la tam_fw-la magnificum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la moderatione_n temperari_fw-la desideret_fw-la valeria_n max._n de_fw-la animi_fw-la mother_n l._n 4._o c._n 1._o of_o our_o church_n so_o i_o conceive_v there_o be_v some_o such_o rule_n also_o alike_o agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o principle_n by_o which_o the_o moderation_n of_o private_a person_n may_v very_o equitable_o be_v judge_v 1._o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o moderation_n not_o to_o expect_v or_o require_v of_o a_o establishment_n what_o be_v utter_o impossible_a in_o this_o world_n namely_o absolute_a perfection_n and_o for_o any_o to_o withhold_v their_o obedience_n so_o long_o as_o they_o conceive_v some_o thing_n may_v be_v better_o can_v but_o be_v conclude_v very_o unreasonable_a here_o it_o be_v but_o just_a to_o note_v of_o our_o church_n 1._o that_o she_o never_o pretend_v of_o herself_o nor_o any_o i_o know_v of_o for_o she_o that_o she_o be_v or_o be_v so_o perfect_a as_o to_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o 1._o or_o ultra_fw-la etiam_fw-la progreditur_fw-la eorum_fw-la morositas_fw-la &_o fastus_fw-la quia_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la agnoscunt_fw-la nisi_fw-la minimis_fw-la quibusque_fw-la naevis_fw-la puram_fw-la calv._n inst_z l._n 4._o c._n 1._o wrinkle_n as_o the_o brethren_n in_o their_o morning_n lecture_n against_o popery_n deliver_v there_o be_v no_o church_n under_o heaven_n perfect_o beautiful_a that_o remain_v for_o glory_n 870._o glory_n serm._n 25._o p._n 870._o although_o we_o say_v our_o church_n have_v a_o most_o excellent_a temper_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a we_o attribute_v to_o she_o what_o some_o call_v temperamentum_fw-la ad_fw-la pondus_fw-la such_o a_o temperament_n that_o no_o scruple_n one_o way_n or_o other_o can_v alter_v her_o poise_n 2._o i_o hope_v from_o what_o have_v be_v show_v it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o possible_a imperfection_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a so_o great_a as_o sundry_a will_v suppose_v 3._o however_o not_o in_o matter_n of_o any_o principal_a moment_n or_o concern_v to_o religion_n 2._o it_o be_v but_o very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o moderation_n that_o such_o as_o require_v moderation_n so_o desirous_o shall_v give_v very_o good_a example_n of_o their_o own_o moderation_n themselves_o and_o shall_v also_o lay_v aside_o their_o own_o rigour_n in_o unjust_a and_o severe_a thought_n harsh_a word_n and_o immoderate_a act_n and_o not_o make_v those_o rule_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o moderation_n which_o be_v just_a proof_n of_o their_o rigour_n for_o i_o suppose_v the_o observation_n of_o king_n charles_n i._o be_v a_o famous_a truth_n i_o see_v no_o man_n so_o prone_a to_o be_v great_a tyrant_n and_o more_o rigorous_a exacter_n upon_o other_o to_o conform_v to_o their_o illegal_a novelty_n than_o such_o who_o pride_n be_v former_o least_o dispose_a to_o the_o obedience_n of_o lawful_a constitution_n 16._o constitution_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d med._n 16._o and_o even_o in_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v the_o libertine_n themselves_o be_v most_o true_o describe_v 17._o describe_v sect._n 17._o they_o who_o be_v perpetual_o clamorous_a that_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v slacken_v as_o to_o their_o particular_a and_o in_o matter_n adiaphorous_a in_o which_o if_o the_o church_n have_v any_o authority_n she_o have_v power_n to_o make_v such_o law_n to_o indulge_v a_o leave_n to_o they_o to_o do_v as_o they_o listen_v yet_o be_v the_o most_o
last_n will._n walton_n in_o his_o life_n the_o superstition_n which_o the_o puritan_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n lie_v to_o our_o charge_n be_v very_o just_o chargeable_a on_o themselves_o respective_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o its_o legal_a constitution_n which_o i_o defend_v and_o not_o the_o assertion_n and_o practice_n of_o particular_a person_n neither_o have_v i_o undertake_v to_o commend_v the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o equal_a constitution_n nor_o show_v all_o the_o proportion_n and_o instance_n of_o her_o moderation_n neither_o have_v i_o illustrate_v the_o same_o from_o all_o the_o extreme_n and_o immoderate_a extravagance_n of_o other_o profession_n in_o religion_n which_o will_v have_v be_v a_o boundless_a and_o a_o infinite_a task_n but_o if_o i_o have_v make_v out_o this_o excellent_a virtue_n to_o be_v true_o conspicuous_a in_o our_o church_n if_o i_o have_v fair_o wrest_v out_o of_o our_o adversary_n hand_n that_o glorious_a calumny_n in_o which_o so_o many_o have_v cheer_v and_o vaunt_v themselves_o in_o their_o fond_a hope_n strange_a demand_n and_o very_o dismantle_v confidence_n that_o our_o church_n be_v devoy_v of_o all_o true_a moderation_n i_o be_o sure_a i_o have_v do_v reason_n to_o our_o most_o indulgent_a mother_n to_o defend_v she_o from_o the_o imputation_n of_o unjust_a rigour_n which_o our_o church_n just_o disdain_v as_o in_o her_o 8_o canon_n whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o their_o pretend_a schismatical_a church_n have_v a_o long_a time_n groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o certain_a grievance_n impose_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_a §_o 5._o but_o whereas_o some_o forward_a to_o censure_v will_v be_v apt_a to_o judge_n of_o our_o justify_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o endeavour_n to_o prevent_v any_o reformation_n or_o union_n such_o may_v consider_v that_o admit_v our_o superior_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o remit_v or_o at_o any_o time_n change_v any_o thing_n in_o our_o present_a order_n the_o so_o do_v do_v not_o necessary_o infer_v that_o our_o constitution_n be_v not_o very_o moderate_a as_o it_o be_v for_o concession_n which_o be_v for_o the_o future_a ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o accusation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o what_o be_v past_a but_o may_v our_o sin_n never_o bring_v upon_o we_o such_o a_o wretched_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n when_o every_o one_o shall_v judge_v he_o have_v a_o right_a to_o think_v and_o speak_v in_o religion_n what_o he_o please_v pol._n please_v in_o liberâ_fw-la repub._n unicuique_fw-la &_o sentire_fw-la quae_fw-la velit_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la sentiat_fw-la liberè_fw-la dicere_fw-la tractat._n theologo_fw-la pol._n unto_o this_o state_n of_o thing_n or_o unto_o popery_n those_o hasten_v we_o whether_o they_o know_v it_o or_o no_o who_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a satisfy_v with_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n how_o far_o our_o present_a establishment_n may_v be_v any_o way_n moderate_v to_o compass_v a_o more_o general_a and_o last_a uniformity_n we_o hope_v if_o ever_o there_o shall_v be_v occasion_n god_n will_v guide_v our_o governor_n to_o determine_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a as_o the_o present_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v most_o justifiable_a so_o i_o suppose_v the_o change_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v allow_v when_o ever_o the_o generality_n of_o dissenter_n shall_v be_v agree_v and_o resolve_v of_o their_o own_o reason_n among_o themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n if_o any_o will_v undertake_v to_o disprove_v the_o proposition_n which_o this_o treatise_n principal_o do_v ovince_n namely_o that_o the_o great_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v right_o argue_v those_o who_o be_v in_o separation_n from_o the_o same_o to_o be_v the_o more_o unjust_a and_o guilty_a in_o their_o schism_n 2._o schism_n et_fw-la refellere_fw-la sine_fw-la pert●nac●â_fw-la &_o refelli_fw-la sine_fw-la iracun●iá_fw-la para●i_fw-la sumus_fw-la tuscul_fw-la 9_o l._n 2._o i_o hope_v such_o will_n menage_n their_o exception_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o moderation_n especial_o as_o they_o have_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o second_o paragraph_n of_o this_o chapter_n neither_o i_o conceive_v be_v it_o enough_o to_o excuse_v their_o schism_n nor_o to_o render_v our_o church_n so_o immoderate_a as_o not_o to_o be_v communicate_v with_o for_o any_o to_o give_v some_o instance_n which_o according_a to_o some_o judgement_n they_o will_v have_v otherwise_o since_o it_o be_v most_o impossible_a to_o have_v any_o constitution_n of_o thing_n free_a from_o all_o manner_n of_o exception_n and_o also_o against_o the_o most_o perfect_a thing_n great_a enmity_n may_v be_v raise_v for_o want_v of_o equal_o consider_v the_o principle_n rule_n and_o end_v for_o which_o those_o thing_n be_v establish_v neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o except_v against_o what_o be_v faulty_a in_o particular_a person_n when_o the_o same_o be_v no_o vice_n of_o the_o public_a constitution_n sure_o then_o it_o may_v be_v judge_v a_o very_a unreasonable_a manner_n of_o sundry_a sort_n of_o man_n answer_v such_o discourse_n as_o pinch_v they_o namely_o by_o catch_v at_o some_o little_a scatter_a part_n of_o the_o skirt_n and_o margin_n of_o the_o cause_n or_o when_o they_o can_v by_o unbiased_a reason_n have_v victory_n in_o their_o contest_v than_o they_o ready_o fall_v off_o to_o personal_a matter_n which_o in_o no_o sort_n tend_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o any_o cause_n and_o by_o these_o method_n they_o hope_v to_o buoy_v up_o the_o party_n which_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n they_o general_o aim_v at_o §_o 6._o such_o be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n when_o she_o have_v any_o hope_n to_o reduce_v any_o of_o the_o romish_a profession_n unto_o our_o communion_n she_o leave_v out_o of_o the_o public_a litany_n that_o clause_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o his_o detestible_a enormity_n good_a lord_n deliver_v we_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v very_o proper_a now_o to_o make_v the_o same_o our_o petition_n here_o adjoin_v thereunto_o another_o seasonable_a prayer_n of_o isaac_n casaubon_n o_o lord_n jesus_n preserve_v this_o church_n of_o england_n and_o give_v a_o sound_a mind_n to_o those_o nonconformist_n who_o deride_z the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o angliâ_fw-la it_o faxit_fw-la deus_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la san●orem_fw-la mentem_fw-la redeant_fw-la amen_o lud._n capellus_n thes_n 51._o salmur_n de_fw-fr moresis_fw-la in_o angliâ_fw-la and_o since_o i_o have_v name_v the_o learned_a casaubon_n it_o be_v most_o suitable_a here_o also_o to_o add_v some_o of_o his_o word_n to_o king_n james_n d●d_n james_n exercit._n in_o baron_n ep._n d●d_n sir_n you_o have_v a_o church_n in_o these_o kingdom_n partly_o so_o frame_v of_o old_a and_o partly_o by_o great_a labour_n of_o late_a so_o restore_v that_o now_o no_o church_n whatsoever_o come_v near_o than_o you_o to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o primitive_a flourish_a church_n have_v take_v just_o the_o middle_a way_n between_o those_o that_o offend_v in_o excess_n and_o defect_n in_o which_o moderation_n the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v obtain_v this_o first_o of_o all_o that_o those_o very_a person_n who_o envy_v her_o happiness_n yet_o by_o compare_v one_o with_o the_o other_o have_v be_v compel_v to_o praise_v she_o as_o for_o any_o of_o those_o who_o think_v it_o their_o interest_n to_o decry_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n we_o wish_v first_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v once_o take_v advice_n of_o her_o own_o cassander_n 7._o cassander_n de_fw-fr nimio_fw-la ●●origore_fw-la aliquid_fw-la rem●●●ant_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la paci_fw-la aliquid_fw-la concedant_fw-la consult_v ad_fw-la artic._n 7._o to_o remit_v of_o their_o immoderate_a rigour_n and_o harken_v to_o the_o admonition_n of_o pious_a man_n will_v set_v themselves_o to_o correct_v manifest_a abuse_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o divine_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o which_o they_o have_v swerve_v and_o that_o those_o of_o the_o other_o extreme_a will_v practice_v the_o counsel_n which_o 200._o which_o ut_fw-la vos_fw-la ultra_fw-la modum_fw-la rigidos_fw-la esse_fw-la nolim_fw-la ita_fw-la rursus_fw-la altos_fw-la monitos_fw-la esse_fw-la cupio_fw-la ne_fw-la sibi_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la inscitiá_fw-la nimis_fw-la placeant_fw-la ep._n 200._o calvin_n give_v the_o english_a brethren_n at_o frank_n fort_n as_o i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o have_v you_o beyond_o measure_n rigid_a so_o again_o the_o rest_n i_o desire_v they_o will_v be_v advise_v not_o to_o please_v themselves_o too_o excessive_o in_o their_o own_o ignorance_n 1._o ignorance_n off●●sions_n suae_fw-la modum_fw-la statuere_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la nam_fw-la ubi_fw-la dominus_fw-la clementiam_fw-la exigit_fw-la omissâ_fw-la illâ_fw-la totos_fw-la se_fw-la immoderatae_fw-la severitati_fw-la tradunt_fw-la calv._n inst_z l._n 4._o c._n 1._o for_o i_o suppose_v that_o according_a to_o the_o best_a reason_n it_o may_v be_v make_v out_o very_o probable_a that_o as_o the_o overthrow_n of_o popery_n may_v as_o probable_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o growth_n of_o its_o own_o rigour_n and_o immoderate_a claim_n as_o any_o way_n we_o can_v imagine_v pr●pace_n imagine_v ind_n exitium_fw-la imminere_fw-la pontifici●_n imperio_fw-la a._n sall._n votum_fw-la pr●pace_n so_o if_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n endanger_v the_o protestant_n reform_v interest_n it_o will_v be_v the_o immoderate_a behaviour_n of_o those_o of_o the_o separation_n in_o their_o schism_n against_o our_o church_n between_o both_o take_n auspicious_a hope_n from_o the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n we_o trust_v its_o constitution_n be_v most_o primitive_a will_v be_v also_o most_o last_a 1._o last_a e●_n demùm_fw-la tuta_fw-la est_fw-la potentia_fw-la quae_fw-la viribus_fw-la suis_fw-la modum_fw-la impon●t_fw-la val._n max._n de_fw-fr animi_fw-la mother_n l._n 4._o c._n 1._o in_o the_o esteem_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o wise_a and_o good_a christian_n and_o while_o our_o church_n continue_v thus_o moderate_a it_o must_v needs_o argue_v the_o separation_n which_o be_v from_o it_o to_o be_v the_o more_o unequal_a and_o sinful_a for_o the_o same_o moderation_n which_o exonerate_v the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o romanist_n do_v aggravate_v also_o the_o schism_n of_o other_o separatist_n and_o however_o some_o dissent_v brethren_n while_o they_o remain_v drench_v in_o their_o tincture_n will_v not_o be_v forward_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n yet_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o nothing_o will_v more_o tend_v to_o bring_v people_n in_o love_n with_o happy_a peace_n and_o bless_a order_n nothing_o will_v contribute_v more_o to_o the_o quiet_v man_n mind_n to_o reconcile_v all_o party_n and_o to_o accommodate_v the_o most_o and_o great_a difference_n which_o be_v among_o we_o than_o a_o right_n and_o full_a persuasion_n of_o the_o excellent_a temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n i_o can_v close_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n more_o proper_o than_o with_o some_o of_o the_o mild_a and_o pathetical_a soliloquy_n of_o our_o late_a bless_a martyr_n king_n charles_n i._n most_o merciful_a god_n stir_v up_o all_o party_n pious_a 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d §._o 19_o &_o 16._o ambition_n to_o overcome_v each_o other_o with_o reason_n moderation_n and_o such_o self-denial_n as_o become_v those_o who_o consider_v that_o our_o mutual_a division_n be_v our_o common_a distraction_n and_o the_o union_n of_o all_o be_v every_o man_n chief_a interest_n keep_v man_n in_o a_o pious_a moderation_n of_o their_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n give_v we_o wisdom_n to_o amend_v what_o be_v amiss_o within_o we_o and_o there_o will_v be_v less_o to_o mend_v without_o we_o evermore_o defend_v and_o deliver_v thy_o church_n from_o the_o effect_n of_o blind_a zeal_n and_o overbold_a devotion_n glory_n to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a on_o earth_n peace_n good_a will_n towards_o men._n finis_fw-la
though_o it_o be_v a_o significant_a ceremony_n and_o of_o no_o other_o use_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v a_o compliance_n with_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o ancient_a church_n so_o it_o be_v very_o innocent_a in_o itself_o and_o be_v one_o and_o alone_o be_v in_o no_o regard_n troublesome_a i_o say_v she_o have_v only_o one_o ceremony_n of_o her_o own_o appointment_n for_o the_o ring_n in_o marriage_n be_v the_o symbol_n of_o a_o civil_a and_o religious_a contract_n it_o be_v a_o pledge_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o nation_n not_o of_o the_o religion_n and_o other_o circumstance_n of_o her_o worship_n be_v but_o determination_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o manner_n of_o a_o duty_n they_o serve_v for_o other_o purpose_n beside_o signification_n for_o order_n and_o decency_n for_o which_o there_o be_v a_o apostolical_a precept_n and_o a_o natural_a reason_n and_o a_o evident_a necessity_n or_o a_o great_a convenience_n 20._o convenience_n ductor_n dub._n l._n ●_o c._n 4._o r._n 20._o neither_o be_v any_o ceremony_n use_v in_o our_o church_n by_o any_o beside_o the_o minister_n §_o 2._o the_o constant_a moderation_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n 46._o reformation_n instit_fw-la of_o a_o christian_a man_n p._n 46._o have_v always_o faithful_o declare_v its_o rite_n and_o particular_a form_n of_o worship_n to_o be_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a and_o mutable_a that_o they_o may_v be_v limit_v or_o revoke_v every_o particular_a national_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o ordain_v change_n and_o abolish_v ceremony_n article_n of_o religion_n 34._o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o just_a cause_n to_o alter_v change_n or_o mitigate_v or_o recede_v from_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n say_v the_o homily_n of_o fast_v much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o church_n declare_v in_o the_o 20_o article_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o ceremony_n and_o in_o the_o homily_n especial_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o preface_n add_v to_o the_o common_a prayer-book_n 1662._o it_o have_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o her_o first_o compile_n of_o her_o public_a liturgy_n to_o keep_v the_o mean_a between_o the_o two_o extreme_n of_o too_o much_o stiffness_n in_o refuse_v and_o too_o much_o easiness_n in_o admit_v variation_n from_o it_o in_o the_o same_o preface_n it_o be_v add_v in_o which_o review_n we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o observe_v the_o like_a moderation_n as_o we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v use_v in_o like_a case_n in_o former_a time_n as_o this_o be_v a_o unquestionable_a proof_n of_o the_o church_n moderation_n so_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o make_v it_o a_o good_a instance_n also_o thereof_o in_o that_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n she_o do_v wise_o avoid_v the_o other_o extreme_a of_o variableness_n be_v not_o give_v to_o change_v but_o upon_o good_a reason_n thereunto_o move_v because_o of_o the_o many_o inconvenience_n that_o ensue_v upon_o frequent_a unadvised_a mutation_n so_o often_o as_o any_o private_a person_n willing_o and_o purposely_o recede_v from_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o church_n the_o 34_o article_n provide_v for_o their_o open_a rebuke_n neither_o be_v we_o ignorant_a say_v king_n james_n in_o his_o proclamation_n for_o uniformity_n of_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o do_v arise_v in_o government_n by_o admit_v innovation_n in_o thing_n once_o settle_v by_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v to_o use_v constancy_n in_o the_o uphold_v of_o the_o public_a determination_n of_o state_n for_o that_o such_o be_v the_o unquietness_n and_o unstedfastness_n of_o some_o disposition_n affect_v every_o year_n new_a form_n of_o thing_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v follow_v in_o their_o inconstancy_n will_v make_v all_o action_n of_o state_n ridiculous_a and_o contemptible_a and_o if_o authority_n shall_v upon_o all_o wrong_a apprehension_n of_o party_n make_v new_a usage_n nothing_o in_o the_o outward_a worship_n of_o god_n will_v continue_v no_o not_o the_o very_a sacrament_n concordiâ_fw-la sacrament_n illud_fw-la autem_fw-la penitu●_n infixum_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la nec_fw-la tutum_fw-la esse_fw-la nec_fw-la ad_fw-la sovendam_fw-la concordiam_fw-la utile_fw-la temerè_fw-la desciscere_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la quae_fw-la majorum_fw-la autoritate_fw-la tradita_fw-la sunt_fw-la quaeque_fw-la longo_fw-la saeculorum_fw-la usu_fw-la consensuque_fw-la confirmata_fw-la nec_fw-la quicquam_fw-la omnino_fw-la novandum_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la hue_n aut_fw-la cogat_fw-la necessitas_fw-la aut_fw-la insignl_n invi●et_fw-la utilitas_fw-la erasmus_fw-la de_fw-la amabili_fw-la eccl_n concordiâ_fw-la §_o 3._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n further_o appear_v in_o that_o our_o rite_n be_v not_o where_o make_v any_o part_n of_o religion_n or_o worship_n but_o only_o use_v in_o subserviency_n to_o religion_n and_o without_o they_o the_o religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v entire_a this_o be_v manifest_a from_o what_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o of_o their_o indifferent_a and_o mutable_a nature_n and_o to_o prevent_v all_o just_a occasion_n of_o exception_n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v public_o declare_v that_o her_o constitution_n concern_v indifferent_a thing_n be_v make_v without_o any_o opinion_n of_o worship_n by_o they_o or_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o they_o 1547._o they_o theatricum_fw-la ceremoniarum_fw-la apparatum_fw-la nimis_fw-la rigidè_fw-la &_o magnificè_fw-la exaggerant_fw-la ceremoniarum_fw-la magistri_fw-la &_o exactores_fw-la quasi_fw-la sine_fw-la illis_fw-la nec_fw-la veritas_fw-la nec_fw-la dignitas_fw-la nec_fw-la efficaci_fw-la a_o sacramentorum_fw-la consistat_fw-la chemnitii_fw-la examen_fw-la can._n 13._o sess_n 7._o conc._n trid._n king_n edw._n 6._o injunction_n 1547._o yea_o all_o be_v admonish_v to_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v not_o appease_v by_o they_o much_o less_o be_v his_o grace_n by_o they_o merit_v or_o satisfaction_n make_v for_o sin_n in_o the_o 2_o year_n of_o king_n edw._n 6._o in_o the_o article_n of_o archbishop_n cranmer_n it_o be_v inquire_v whether_o the_o minister_n have_v declare_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o true_a use_n of_o ceremony_n that_o they_o be_v no_o worker_n of_o salvation_n but_o only_o outward_a sign_n and_o token_n not_o mystical_a but_o of_o clear_a signification_n not_o sacramental_a but_o natural_o and_o proper_o fit_a to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o thing_n of_o high_a perfection_n then_o it_o be_v also_o declare_v that_o the_o ceremony_n be_v not_o superstitious_o to_o be_v abuse_v as_o thereby_o to_o drive_v away_o devil_n etc._n etc._n or_o by_o put_v trust_n and_o confidence_n for_o health_n and_o salvation_n in_o the_o same_o church_n same_o see_v bishop_n gauden_n before_o bishop_n brownrig_v sermon_n of_o the_o cerem_fw-la in_o our_o church_n thus_o our_o church_n be_v god_n be_v thank_v far_o from_o any_o such_o impious_a tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n over_o man_n conscience_n which_o the_o pharisee_n of_o old_a do_v and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n do_v exercise_v equal_v if_o not_o prefer_v her_o constitution_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v declare_v herself_o by_o solemn_a protestation_n enough_o to_o satisfy_v any_o ingenuous_a impartial_a judgement_n that_o by_o require_v obedience_n to_o these_o ceremonial_a constitution_n she_o have_v no_o other_o purpose_n than_o to_o reduce_v all_o her_o child_n to_o a_o orderly_a conformity_n in_o the_o outward_a worship_n of_o god_n so_o far_o be_v the_o church_n from_o seek_v to_o draw_v any_o opinion_n either_o of_o divine_a necessity_n upon_o the_o constitution_n or_o of_o effectual_a holiness_n upon_o the_o ceremony_n non-conf_a ceremony_n bishop_n sanderson_n judgement_n in_o one_o view_n p._n 99_o v._o bishop_n morton_n ep._n to_o the_o non-conf_a §_o 4._o so_o great_a be_v the_o moderation_n of_o our_o church_n that_o lest_o any_o shall_v lose_v the_o benefit_n of_o her_o communion_n or_o continue_v uneasy_a in_o their_o own_o scruple_n she_o have_v condescend_v to_o expound_v such_o injunction_n as_o can_v be_v foresee_v to_o have_v any_o objection_n expet_n objection_n super_fw-la his_fw-la aliqua_fw-la moderatio_fw-la adhibenda_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la conscientiarum_fw-la sedatione_fw-la etiam_fw-la multitudini_fw-la errantium_fw-la piè_fw-la condescendendo_fw-la aliqua_fw-la declaratio_fw-la facienda_fw-la petr._n de_fw-fr aliaco_n de_fw-fr reform_v eccl._n fascic_n r._n expet_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o office_n for_o the_o holy_a communion_n lest_o kneel_v shall_v by_o any_o person_n either_o through_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n be_v misconstrue_v and_o deprave_v it_o be_v declare_v that_o thereby_o no_o adoration_n be_v intend_v or_o to_o be_v do_v etc._n etc._n as_o there_o may_v be_v see_v more_o at_o large_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v the_o 5._o rubric_n after_o the_o holy_a communion_n to_o take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o dissension_n or_o superstition_n in_o the_o 30_o canon_n the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n be_v copious_o and_o excellent_o explain_v baptism_n explain_v see_v second_o rubric_n after_o public_a baptism_n
for_o remove_v all_o scruple_n and_o for_o sufficient_a caution_n against_o all_o popish_a superstition_n first_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o the_o abolish_n of_o popery_n have_v ever_o hold_v and_o teach_v and_o so_o do_v hold_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 56._o cross_n nec_fw-la nos_fw-la p●det_fw-la crucifixi_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la ubi_fw-la pudori●_n signum_fw-la est_fw-la signum_fw-la crucis_fw-la habemus_fw-la s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 30._o s._n cypr._n ep._n 56._o use_v in_o baptism_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v add_v to_o the_o virtue_n or_o perfection_n of_o baptism_n 2._o that_o the_o infant_n baptize_v be_v by_o virtue_n of_o baptism_n 1604._o baptism_n crucis_fw-la ceremonia_fw-la in_o baptismace_n reti●etur_fw-la &_o explicatur_fw-la in_fw-la constitutionibus_fw-la londini_fw-la 1604._o ●ot_n adhibitis_fw-la cautionibus_fw-la ut_fw-la s._n sancti_fw-la figni_fw-la reverentia_fw-la omnino_fw-la aboleri_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la confirmari_fw-la videatur_fw-la thuanus_n pontificius_n add_v a_o 1604._o before_o it_o be_v sign_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n receive_v into_o the_o congregation_n of_o christ_n flock_n as_o a_o perfect_a member_n thereof_o and_o not_o by_o any_o power_n ascribe_v to_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o no_o invisible_a grace_n or_o virtue_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o sign_n all_o popish_a error_n and_o superstition_n be_v purge_v from_o the_o use_n of_o it_o and_o reduce_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o primary_n institution_n of_o it_o for_o which_o reason_n also_o lest_o any_o mysterious_a operation_n shall_v be_v think_v impute_v to_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n king_n james_n and_o king_n charles_n i._n and_o now_o king_n charles_n ii_o have_v forbear_v the_o use_n of_o that_o sign_n at_o the_o heal_n 8._o heal_n alliance_n of_o divine_a office_n ch_n 8._o though_o therewith_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o reign_v of_o king_n edw._n 6._o and_o queen_n elizabeth_z so_o great_a a_o moderation_n and_o condescension_n have_v the_o king_n of_o england_n use_v as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n of_o their_o people_n in_o the_o 18_o canon_n with_o great_a wisdom_n and_o moderation_n be_v procure_v all_o decent_a orderly_a reverend_a and_o attentive_a behaviour_n in_o time_n of_o divine_a service_n 111._o service_n erunt_fw-la itaque_fw-la recti_fw-la moderatique_a gestus_fw-la qui_fw-la possunt_fw-la servire_fw-la purae_fw-la religioni_fw-la christi_fw-la buceri_fw-la cens_fw-la c._n 5._o canon_n 111._o where_o for_o kneel_v at_o confession_n supplication_n and_o prayer_n stand_v up_o at_o the_o belief_n pay_v a_o due_a lowly_a reverence_n when_o in_o time_n of_o divine_a service_n the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v mention_v 52._o mention_v injunction_n queen_n elizabeth_n §._o 52._o be_v add_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o canon_n viz._n testify_v by_o these_o outward_a ceremony_n and_o gesture_n their_o inward_a humility_n christian_a resolution_n and_o due_a acknowledgement_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n eccl._n jesus_n quae_fw-la sanè_fw-la devotio_fw-la plus_fw-la afficitur_fw-la erg●_fw-la nomen_fw-la jesus_n quia_fw-la nomen_fw-la ipsum_fw-la significat_fw-la nobis_fw-la nostram_fw-la salutem_fw-la arch._n spalat_n l._n 7._o c._n 12._o §._o 49._o de_fw-fr repub._n eccl._n christ_n the_o true_a and_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n in_o who_o alone_o all_o the_o mercy_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o mankind_n for_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v full_o and_o whole_o comprise_v etc._n etc._n ●0_n etc._n hooker_n eccles_n pol._n l._n 5._o ●_o ●0_n which_o harmless_a ceremony_n as_o no_o man_n be_v constrain_v to_o use_v so_o we_o know_v no_o reason_n any_o of_o they_o shall_v withstand_v against_o infidel_n jew_n and_o arrian_n who_o derogate_a from_o the_o honour_n of_o jesus_n christ_n such_o ceremony_n be_v most_o profitable_a in_o the_o canon_n 1640._o with_o all_o moderation_n possible_a the_o church_n do_v declare_v itself_o concern_v the_o situation_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n table_n lest_o any_o shall_v esteem_v it_o otherwise_o than_o a_o figurative_a altar_n supper_n altar_n see_v dr._n cudworth_n of_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o thereon_o be_v have_v a_o commemoration_n of_o that_o full_a perfect_a and_o sufficient_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n wherefore_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n according_a to_o the_o advice_n of_o bucer_n it_o be_v to_o be_v so_o place_v that_o the_o minister_n may_v more_o convenient_o be_v hear_v 457._o hear_v q._n eliz._n injunction_n f●r_v table_n in_o the_o church_n ●uceri_fw-la censura_fw-la inter_fw-la opera_fw-la angl._n ●_o 457._o and_o because_o of_o god_n majesty_n the_o obeisance_n which_o be_v only_o recommend_v have_v so_o great_a a_o allay_n of_o moderation_n that_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v very_o memorable_a to_o our_o purpose_n in_o the_o practice_n or_o omission_n of_o this_o rite_n we_o desire_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v observe_v which_o be_v that_o they_o which_o use_v this_o rite_n despise_v not_o they_o who_o use_v it_o not_o and_o that_o they_o who_o use_v it_o not_o condemn_v not_o those_o that_o use_v it_o 18._o it_o hîc_fw-la igitur_fw-la nullus_fw-la alium_fw-la dijudicet_fw-la vescens_fw-la non_fw-la insultet_fw-la abstinentibus_fw-la abstinentes_fw-la non_fw-la condemnent_fw-la vescentes_fw-la erasm_n de_fw-fr amabili_fw-la eccl._n concordiâ_fw-la p._n 18._o the_o same_o word_n his_o majesty_n king_n charles_n ii_o insert_v in_o one_o of_o his_o royal_a proclamation_n so_o far_o be_v this_o from_o be_v to_o be_v count_v one_o of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o naked_a truth_n call_v it_o of_o this_o bodily_a reverence_n of_o god_n in_o his_o church_n the_o government_n be_v so_o moderate_a god_n grant_v it_o be_v not_o loose_a there-while_n that_o no_o man_n be_v constrain_v no_o man_n question_v only_o religious_o call_v upon_o o_o come_v let_v we_o worship_n kneel_v and_o fall_v down_o before_o god_n our_o maker_n star-chamber_n maker_n archbishop_z laud_n speech_n in_o the_o star-chamber_n §_o 5._o so_o that_o in_o our_o church_n as_o our_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v suitable_a to_o solid_a and_o rational_a devotion_n so_o in_o the_o appointment_n of_o our_o church_n which_o refer_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o same_o our_o church_n appear_v neither_o to_o affect_v vain_a gaiety_n nor_o outward_a splendour_n nor_o such_o luxuriant_a expression_n as_o be_v suit_v to_o feed_v the_o humour_n and_o boundless_a fancy_n of_o man_n retain_v what_o be_v reverend_a and_o become_a yet_o reject_v what_o be_v superstitious_a in_o sundry_a consecration_n benediction_n and_o exorcism_n which_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o mild_a and_o wise_a moderation_n of_o our_o church_n render_v their_o humour_n more_o unaccountable_o foolish_a and_o obstinate_a who_o be_v so_o peremptory_a in_o their_o nonconformity_n to_o the_o order_n of_o our_o church_n since_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v all_o its_o office_n and_o sacrament_n so_o administer_v conformable_o to_o the_o best_a precedent_n in_o word_n understand_v without_o any_o mixture_n of_o dangerous_a or_o superstitious_a encroachment_n and_o with_o that_o gravity_n decency_n and_o solemnity_n which_o befit_v the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o dean_n lingard_n who_o for_o love_n and_o honour_n to_o his_o memory_n i_o name_v in_o a_o sermon_n of_o he_o before_o the_o king_n 1668._o king_n july_n 26._o 1668._o yet_o of_o these_o man_n who_o be_v so_o impatient_a of_o ceremony_n upon_o public_a order_n i_o can_v but_o note_v what_o have_v be_v often_o observe_v 1646._o observe_v see_v friendly_a debate_n p._n 221._o of_o the_o many_o ceremony_n ordain_v in_o the_o take_n of_o the_o covenant_n 1646._o that_o many_o of_o they_o use_v two_o ceremony_n for_o one_o after_o their_o own_o fancy_n as_o not_o only_o their_o emphatic_a look_n antic_a action_n odd_a posture_n but_o further_o they_o require_v of_o their_o disciple_n some_o thing_n of_o a_o ceremonial_a nature_n as_o special_a mark_n of_o admission_n into_o their_o party_n it_o be_v religion_n with_o many_o of_o they_o not_o to_o give_v the_o title_n of_o saint_n but_o to_o their_o own_o people_n and_o many_o think_v no_o prayer_n acceptable_a unless_o it_o be_v very_o long_o especial_o before_o sermon_n and_o that_o no_o sermon_n neither_o except_o it_o be_v in_o the_o pulpit_n as_o aristotle_n observe_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o law_n in_o every_o society_n so_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n and_o order_n may_v be_v further_o prove_v at_o large_a for_o that_o all_o faction_n how_o different_a soever_o do_v frame_n to_o themselves_o some_o peculiar_a mode_n and_o figure_n of_o practice_n in_o which_o they_o be_v so_o strict_a